An ansvvere to a treatise vvritten by Dr. Carier, by way of a letter to his Maiestie vvherein he layeth downe sundry politike considerations; by which hee pretendeth himselfe was moued, and endeuoureth to moue others to be reconciled to the Church of Rome, and imbrace that religion, which he calleth catholike. By George Hakewil, Doctour of Diuinity, and chapleine to the Prince his Highnesse. Hakewill, George, 1578-1649. 1616 Approx. 842 KB of XML-encoded text transcribed from 189 1-bit group-IV TIFF page images. Text Creation Partnership, Ann Arbor, MI ; Oxford (UK) : 2003-01 (EEBO-TCP Phase 1). A02483 STC 12610 ESTC S103612 99839361 99839361 3770 This keyboarded and encoded edition of the work described above is co-owned by the institutions providing financial support to the Early English Books Online Text Creation Partnership. This Phase I text is available for reuse, according to the terms of Creative Commons 0 1.0 Universal . The text can be copied, modified, distributed and performed, even for commercial purposes, all without asking permission. Early English books online. (EEBO-TCP ; phase 1, no. A02483) Transcribed from: (Early English Books Online ; image set 3770) Images scanned from microfilm: (Early English books, 1475-1640 ; 1069:20) An ansvvere to a treatise vvritten by Dr. Carier, by way of a letter to his Maiestie vvherein he layeth downe sundry politike considerations; by which hee pretendeth himselfe was moued, and endeuoureth to moue others to be reconciled to the Church of Rome, and imbrace that religion, which he calleth catholike. By George Hakewil, Doctour of Diuinity, and chapleine to the Prince his Highnesse. Hakewill, George, 1578-1649. Carier, Benjamin, 1566-1614. Treatise written by Mr. Doctour Carier. Carier, Benjamin, 1566-1614. Copy of a letter, written by M. Doctor Carier beyond seas, to some particular friends in England. [2], 30; 130, [4], 131-306, 26, [2] p., folded table : ill. By Iohn Bill, Imprinted at London : 1616. A reprint of and reply to "A treatise written by Mr. Doctour Carier" and "A copy of a letter, written by M. Doctor Carier beyond seas, to some particular friends in England", both by Benjamin Carier. At foot of title: Cum priuilegio. "An ansvvere to D. Cariers letter to the Kings Maiestie" (caption title) has separate pagination and register; "An ansvvere to the materiall points of a second letter of Dr. Cariers .." (caption title) has separate pagination but register is continuous. With a final errata leaf. The illustration, intended to be bound after p. 130, is an engraved plate of a Spanish title page, "Tomo primero de la conueniencia de las dos monarquias catolicas" with a conjugate letterpress English translation. The plate is signed "P.P. fe:". Reproduction of the original in Yale University. Library. Created by converting TCP files to TEI P5 using tcp2tei.xsl, TEI @ Oxford. Re-processed by University of Nebraska-Lincoln and Northwestern, with changes to facilitate morpho-syntactic tagging. Gap elements of known extent have been transformed into placeholder characters or elements to simplify the filling in of gaps by user contributors. EEBO-TCP is a partnership between the Universities of Michigan and Oxford and the publisher ProQuest to create accurately transcribed and encoded texts based on the image sets published by ProQuest via their Early English Books Online (EEBO) database (http://eebo.chadwyck.com). The general aim of EEBO-TCP is to encode one copy (usually the first edition) of every monographic English-language title published between 1473 and 1700 available in EEBO. EEBO-TCP aimed to produce large quantities of textual data within the usual project restraints of time and funding, and therefore chose to create diplomatic transcriptions (as opposed to critical editions) with light-touch, mainly structural encoding based on the Text Encoding Initiative (http://www.tei-c.org). The EEBO-TCP project was divided into two phases. The 25,363 texts created during Phase 1 of the project have been released into the public domain as of 1 January 2015. Anyone can now take and use these texts for their own purposes, but we respectfully request that due credit and attribution is given to their original source. Users should be aware of the process of creating the TCP texts, and therefore of any assumptions that can be made about the data. Text selection was based on the New Cambridge Bibliography of English Literature (NCBEL). If an author (or for an anonymous work, the title) appears in NCBEL, then their works are eligible for inclusion. Selection was intended to range over a wide variety of subject areas, to reflect the true nature of the print record of the period. In general, first editions of a works in English were prioritized, although there are a number of works in other languages, notably Latin and Welsh, included and sometimes a second or later edition of a work was chosen if there was a compelling reason to do so. Image sets were sent to external keying companies for transcription and basic encoding. Quality assurance was then carried out by editorial teams in Oxford and Michigan. 5% (or 5 pages, whichever is the greater) of each text was proofread for accuracy and those which did not meet QA standards were returned to the keyers to be redone. After proofreading, the encoding was enhanced and/or corrected and characters marked as illegible were corrected where possible up to a limit of 100 instances per text. Any remaining illegibles were encoded as s. Understanding these processes should make clear that, while the overall quality of TCP data is very good, some errors will remain and some readable characters will be marked as illegible. Users should bear in mind that in all likelihood such instances will never have been looked at by a TCP editor. The texts were encoded and linked to page images in accordance with level 4 of the TEI in Libraries guidelines. Copies of the texts have been issued variously as SGML (TCP schema; ASCII text with mnemonic sdata character entities); displayable XML (TCP schema; characters represented either as UTF-8 Unicode or text strings within braces); or lossless XML (TEI P5, characters represented either as UTF-8 Unicode or TEI g elements). Keying and markup guidelines are available at the Text Creation Partnership web site . eng Carier, Benjamin, 1566-1614. -- Treatise written by Mr. Doctour Carier. Carier, Benjamin, 1566-1614. -- Copy of a letter, written by M. Doctor Carier beyond seas, to some particular friends in England. Catholic Church -- Controversial literature. 2002-08 TCP Assigned for keying and markup 2002-10 Aptara Keyed and coded from ProQuest page images 2002-11 Judith Siefring Sampled and proofread 2002-11 Judith Siefring Text and markup reviewed and edited 2002-12 pfs Batch review (QC) and XML conversion AN ANSWER TO A TREATISE WRITTEN BY Dr. CARIER , By way of Letter to his MAIESTIE : WHEREIN HE LAYETH DOWNE SVNDRY POLITIKE CONSIDERATIONS ; By which hee pretendeth himselfe was moued , And endeuoureth to moue others to be reconciled to the Church of ROME , and imbrace that Religion , which he calleth CATHOLIKE . By GEORGE HAKEWIL , Doctour of Diuinity , And Chapleine to the PRINCE his Highnesse . B. C. * Mine heart will vtter foorth a good matter , I will intreat in my workes of the King. G. H. Giue thy iudgements to the King , ( O God , ) and thy righteousnesse to the Kings sonne . IMPRINTED AT LONDON by IOHN BILL . 1616. Cum Priuilegio . TO THE KINGS MOST EXCELLENT MAIESTIE . DREAD SOVERAIGNE , HAD this Letter of Dr. Carier beene imparted , or the drift of it onely reached to your Maiestie , it would haue deserued none other answere then your Maiesties priuate censure ; and might well haue beene buried in silence with the Author of it : But now that it not only aymes in particular at all the members of the bodie Politike , First the Nobles , then the Commons , and lastly the Clergie ; but withall is published to the view of the World , and spread through all the quarters of your Land , for the better effecting of that it aymes vnto ; and is not a little magnified by the Romish faction : It must needs argue in vs , either want of wisedome in preuenting a mischiefe , or of power in prouiding for our owne safetie , or of zeale and sinceritie in our loue to the Trueth , if it should passe without some discouery , aswell of the malicious scope to which it tends , as the weakenesse of the arguments by which it endeuours to perswade . The maine end which it driues at , is either a totall reconcilement to the Church of Rome ; or if that cannot be , a partiall toleration of the Romish Religion . The generall meanes by which it striues to compasse this end , are first by working a destraction euen amongst those your Subiects , who euery way conforme themselues aswell to the doctrine , as the discipline of the Church of England , established by publike allowance , in making some Puritanes , and some Protestants , who in his language 1 can endure the state of the Church of England as it is , but could be content it were as it was : ( implying thereby the rest to be Puritanes ) some Caluinists and some temperate men , 2 who cannot but in iudgment approue the trueth of that Religion which he calles Catholike , ( thereby implying the rest to bee Caluinists ) the one he termes the greatest enemies of the Clergie , the other his honest and louing brethren , wherof he professeth he knew many , and himselfe to be one : whereas in trueth if any such there be , the difference should rather haue beene made betwixt Protestants and Papists , English and Romish Catholikes , since they who could be content the Church of England were as it was before the Reformation , can in my iudgement bee none other then Papists ; and those that in their iudgement approue the doctrine of the pretended Catholike Religion , can ( as farre as I apprehend it ) been none other then Romish Catholikes . Thus those whom we call Papists , he calles Temperate Protestants , and those whom we call Protestants , he calles State Puritanes . The second generall meanes for the compassing of his desired end , is an indeuour to worke an vtter seperation betwixt our Church and other reformed Churches , specially those of France , and the Netherlands ; whom therefore in contempt hee calls Hugonots , and Geux , and their doctrine Caluinisme ; intending thereby , ( as I conceiue ) either to weaken our strength , by leauing vs to stand single , or , which is worse , to inforce vs at length to relapse vpon Rome : And to this purpose is hee bold to affirme , that their doctrine makes as much against the Religion of England , as that of Rome ; whereas the writings of the most learned men , aswell on their , as on our side , our harmonies of Confessions , the testimonie of our aduersaries , nay , the 3 Pope himselfe in his Bull against Queene ELIZABETH , your Maiesties 4 Bookes , and practise in the matching of that Noble Ladie , your daughter , and in permitting those Churches the free exercise of their Religion within your dominions , so plainely euince the contrarie , that I wonder , hauing let fall so foule a blot from his pen , he durst present it to your Maiesties view : and yet I neede not wonder , considering hee was not ashamed to tell your Maiesty , that for any thing you haue written in your Apologie , or Premonition , you may when you please , admitte the Popes Supremacie in spirituals : which must needes argue , either that he was meerely ignorant what your Maiesty had written , or cared not at all what himselfe wrote ; regarding rather the euennesse of his Stile , and the cadencie of his sentences , then the trueth of his assertions ; like false windowes , bearing proportion with the rest of the building , but without light . By the trueth of these assertions , your Maiestie may make an estimate of the whole piece ; in which , if I can iudge any thing , I haue not met within the narrow compasse of so short a treatise , so formally pend , and carrying so faire an outside ; so many weake arguments , so many grosse mistakes , so many notorious falshoods , so many irreconciliable contradictions , so many sandie and disioynted consequences : howsoeuer were his proofes neuer so strong , so sure , so true , so consonant , so coherent ; yet was hee a man most vnfit to intermeddle in a businesse of vnion , and pacification ; who was so farre ingaged to one partie , as by his owne acknowledgement hee was perswaded , 5 that all the Religion at this day prescribed , and practised by the Church of Rome , is the true Catholike Religion ; and promiseth particularly to iustifie it from point to point , when time and opportunitie should serue : and your Maiestie , together with vs of the same profession , he rangeth 6 among Iewes , and Infidels , and heretiques , for refusing to ioine with them in the worship of Christ in the Sacrament . But God blessed not his vaine proiect , Mr. Henrie Constable dying within fortnight after he came from Paris , by Cardinall Perrons appointment , to Leidge , to conferre with him ; and himselfe a while after in Paris , within a moneth of his comming thither to conferre with the Cardinall ; yet as the Apostle speakes of Abel , being dead , he yet speaketh , though in a different manner , and the speach of dead men commonly prooues more effectuall , more profitable , or more dangerous then that of the liuing . For your Maiesty , there is ( God be thanked ) no feare at all ; the obligations by which you haue tied your selfe to the Religion established amongst vs , being so many and so strong , and withall his motiues for inducement to the contrary , so weake ; dealing with your Maiesty as the deuill did with our Sauiour , who being beaten from Scripture , fell to the promising of the glory of kingdomes , which notwithstanding was not in his power to performe ; onely for their sakes , some Replie seemed not vnnecessary , of whom it may truely be sayd , which hee falsly affirmes of your Maiesty , that 7 they imbrace shadowes instead of substances , which as a matter of high commendation , he solemnely protests , he gladly wrote , and so gaue it out with all the honour hee could of your Maiesty : But such kinde of commendation , as your Maiesty truely telleth Cardinall Perron , is none other , then if a man should commend a souldier for his faire haire , and call him coward to his face . Now because the Letter , ( though not without some marke of presumption ) is by the Author , not onely dedicated , but throughout directed to your Maiesty , ( as if he meant to fight , neither with small nor great , saue onely against the King ) I was imboldned humbly to submit this my defence of trueth to the Royall arbitrement of the same sacred , and vnpartiall vmpire , hoping to find the censure somewhat more fauourable , in as much , as I haue made bold to borrow the greatest part of my weapons , both offensiue and defensiue , from the rich armourie of your Maiesties writings , wherin already , though seuered , as in the tower of DAVID , built for defence , hang a thousand shields and all the targets of the strong men : but being ranged into one volume as vnited forces , they would doubtlesse haue more strength , aswell to assault as to resist , both the tongues and pens of men , and the teeth of time ▪ Hauing lighted my candle then at your Maiesties torch , I thought my selfe in duety bound to offer it vpon the same altar againe . Hee was your Maiesties seruant , and so am I , both vnworthy , though in a different respect ; hee sworne to serue your Maiestie , which how he performed at last , this Letter can best speake , and your Maiestie best iudge ; my selfe sworne to your Maiestie , for the seruice of your most Noble Sonne the Prince , my most sweete and gracious Master , whose quickenesse of Spirit , loue of Vertue , and sense of true Religion , though I haue now by a good space obserued sensibly to grow faster then his yeeres , yet being but tender in age , and consequently not fully ripened in iudgment ; I tho●ght I might herein doe him some seruice for his better information , to marke out vnto him such passages in your Maiesties writings , as serue for a satisfaction to such passages of the letter as may concerne him ; hoping thereby hee may somewhat the rather bee moued to goe on as hee hath happily begunne , till hee arriue to that perfection which Plinie commends to Traian , Facere scribenda , scribere legenda . I conclude with that repetition of the prayer of Dauid for you both : Giue thy iudgements to the King ( O God ) and thy righteousnesse to the Kings sonne ; that your dayes may bee vpon earth as the dayes of heauen , both for glory and lasting ▪ and for your Maiesty , with that acclamation of the Romans to their Emperours , De nostris annis tibi Iupiter augeat annos . Your MAIESTIES most humbly deuoted subiect and seruant , GEORGE HAKEVVIL . THE AVTHOR to the Reader . WHAT Dr. Carier was for his ranke , the degrees and places of charge hee held and passed through ( expressed at large in the Printers Epistle , prefixed to his Letter ) will speake sufficiently , though I were silent ; what for his learning , this Letter will partly testifie ; and for his other qualities such informations as were offered mee , though by men of credite , and I could haue gathered out of diuers of his Letters and Papers , which I haue in mine hands , I chose rather to suppresse in silence then to publish : His immoderate Ambition alone , ( which himselfe so freely acknowledgeth in diuers places ) was doubtlesse sufficient to corrupt a stronger iudgement then his , in matter of Religion ; specially being crossed in his designes : That was it , which cast the Angels out of heauen , and Adam out of Paradise , and still casteth most Apostates out of the Church . Ambition sayeth one ( whom Master Doctor in his Letter deseruedly commendeth for a worthy Gentleman ) is like choler , which is an humour that maketh men , actiue , earnest , full of alacritie and stirring , if it be not stopped : but if it be stopped and can not haue his way it becommeth adust , and thereby maligne and venemous : so ambitious men if they find the way open for their rising , and still get forward , they are busie rather then dangerous ; but if they be checked in their desires they become secretly discontent and looke vpon men and matters with an euill eye ; and if they rise not with their seruice , they will take order to make their seruice fall with them . Now , what opinion was helde of him abroad by Romish Catholikes , after his departure from vs and our Church , let Pelitier and Fitz-Simon testifie , the one in French , the other in Latine . 1 La memoire de cest homme de bien ( sayeth Pelitier ) estant grandement recommendable pour l' innocence & probité de ses maeures ; qu' ausi pour le graund zeale qu'il a eu de chercher son salut ; Car estant personage de singuliere erudition et fort versé en la lecture des Saincts Peres , il recogneut en fin dans leurs escrits Comme dans vne glace luisante , la viue image de l' Eglise Catholique tant aux points essentielles de la Religion qu' en la police , et gouernment d'icelle . Hitherto Pelitier ; but Fitz-Simon goes further . 2 Inter quos ( sayeth hee ) nouum sidus Catholicorum omnium gaudio refulgens , vt laudum suarum insistant vestigijs , vtque mentem ac linguam sceleri seruent 3 iniuratam , praelucet ; Cum igiur Ibernis , alijsque omnibus facem praeferat , Reformatorumque ( à quibus salutari palinodia defecit ) causam gregemque sua fuga condemnet : Caeteris obiter à me 4 superius recensitis accedat , optimoqueiure praecedat Illustrissimus inter Theologos Doctores Cantabrigienses , Beniaminus Carerius , Concionator , ac sacellanus regius , Qui talis Abdemelech seu Regis seruus esse voluit , vt simul esset Abdenago seru●s Dei , Verus Beniaminus , vtpote mane praua educatione Lupus rapax Christi praedam comedens , vespere verò haeresis eiuratae spolia detrahens diuidensque , & salutari ●alinodia dextrae filium se constituens ; Verus Barsabas verâ ad fidem conuersione eiusque causa demittens multa , quia dilexit multum ; Verum animal quartum simile aquilae volanti , sigillo quarto aperto singulis reformatorum clamitans , Veni & vide , faelix omnino conuersio Tarda & sera nimis , sed fama & laude perenni . So that it seemed needfull some answere should bee made to his treatise , if for none other reason , yet in regard of so great an opinion conceiued of his worth and sufficiencie : But sure I am of opinion , that had he beene a man of that moderation in matter of Religion , ( as through this Treatise hee would beare his Maiestie and the world in hand ) hee had neither died among the Iesuits , as Pelitier testifies in the conclusion of his pamphlet , nor receiued such a testimonie from Fitz-Simon by nation an Irishman , & a Iesuit by profession : Howsoeuer , sure I am that talking of Vnitie and Peace ( the pretended scope of Mr. Drs letter ) as termes now stand betweene vs , sauours not of a Iesuits spirit . We for our parts freely professe , as Mr Casaubon doth in his Maiesties name . [ Let them in whose power it is to performe it , offer vs such a peace , of which it may bee sayd , Peace & trueth haue kissed each other , and the controuersie is at an end : ] Let them seuer humane ordinances from diuine , superstitious from godly , new from ancient , needlesse from necessary , I say againe ( saith he ) and with as loude a crie and much earnestnesse as may be , I proclaime it , that all men may heare me , for as much as concernes his Maiesty , and the Church of England , the controuersie is at an end . His Maiesties intent and full resolution is , that they in vaine talke or thinke of Peace , who sunder that heauenly yoke of vnitie and verity ; but ( saith hee in conclusion , speaking to the Romanists ; ) their purpose is constantly to maintaine all they hold , not to reconcile the minds of well disposed persons , by the reformation of that which is amisse ; in which purpose as long as they shall persist , his Maiestie professeth once for all , that he will entertaine no societie , no Communion at all with the Church of Rome : And in this case we sticke not to professe with Nazianzene , that there is a kind of holy warre , in which who so dies , shal vndoubtedly obtaine of the chiefe Bishop of our soules , a Plenary Indulgence for his sinnes , and ●ith Hillary , Amiable is the name of peace , and louely the opinion of vnity , but who doubts that to bee the onely Peace of the Church , which is the Peace of Christ ? and lastly with Cyprian , [ He is not reconciled to the Church , who is separated from the Gospel . ] Now because M. Doctour would perswade the ●orld , and his Maiestie himselfe , that at his first entrance into this kingdome , hee was more inclineable to reconcilement , and laboureth by promising honour and riches and security to reduce him againe to the same pretended inclination , it shall not be amisse ( beside that which I haue spoken to this point in diuerse parts of mine answere ) to acquaint the Reader with his Maiesties protestation ( euen while matters were yet in a mammering ) made to Watson , as himselfe confessed to the late Earle of Northampton , 5 That all the Crownes and kingdomes in this world should not induce him to change any iot of his profession which was the pasture of his soule , & earnest of his eternal inheritance ; and as he thus protested at his first entrance , so in the conclusion of one of his last speeches to the Parliament , he sheweth himselfe in this point euer like himselfe . [ 6 I am now out of conscience and for security ( saith he ) not to forget religion ; I spake to you last as a Prophet , that t was likely the Papists had some new plot in hand , now you see it is come to passe , and I will let you know this much , their ayme was not at 7 him alone , but at other Princes to , whereof I assure you I was one ; looke that these weedes doe not ouergrow the corne that Papi●try be not increased by one thing too much vsed among them : They send out their kinsemen , children and seruants to Doway , and such like places , these after they haue bene there nourished , come daily ouer , and with their poison infect others : This one day will make you smart , if it be not preuented . ] And I pray God his Maiestie doe not proue as true a Prophet in this latter , as the successe shewed him in the former ; how soeuer , it sufficeth to shew his Maiesties auersenes from all maner of reconcilement , things standing in the termes they doe : Nay , M. Doctour himselfe in his Epistle to Casaubon , written since his going ouer , professeth , that 8 except it were expected from his Maiestie , that he should ( in a maner ) proclaime to the world , that he was forced to that religion , he saw not how ( in so great danger , and iust anger ) he could possibly draw neerer to them , who well deser●ed the anger , by procuring the danger . M. Doctour then might well haue spared his paines of writing to his Maiestie to that purpose , considering withall he had by his owne acknowledgement receiued full answere from M ▪ Casuabon , that his Maiesti●s setled determination was ( as he had before signified to Cardinall Perron ) not at all to shake hands with Rome , whiles her whordomes and withcrafts yet remaine in such abundance . My wish and hearty prayer to God is , and I think not mine alone , but of all good men , neither would I account my life deare to be spent in the furtherance of it , that the miserable rent , and wide woundes , which at this day wee see in the Christian world , in matter of Religion , might by some good meanes be closed vp , for the sparing of the effusion of so much Christian blood , the securing of the Crownes of Christian Princes , the setling of so great distraction in Christian mindes , the wiping away of the scandall of diuision , from the Christian profession , and lastly resisting with vnited forces , the common enemie of the blessed and glorious name of Iesus Christ : But as long as the 9 Bishop of Rome shal hang the faith of his followers on this Principle [ I and my Church cannot possibly erre ] and with the same stoppe the mouths of all his opposites , bee the force and euidence of their arguments neuer so cleare and stronge ; I cannot conceiue otherwise of such a wish then of an honest desire , but without any apparent hope of successe . For if diuine authoritie doe concurre with them in all their ordinances , if Gods Spirit infallibly assist them in all their decisions , what remaines there , but only that they teach , wee beleeue , they command , and the world obey ? Indeed in humane gouernments where reason is shut out , there tyrannie is thrust in ; but where God commandeth , to aske a reason , is presumption , to disobey , rebellion : to this miserable necessitie haue their assertions tied them which they haue laid for their eternall foundation ; miserable to themselues , and miserable to the whole world ; nay , in so many conferences as haue beene held in this age for pacification , it hath beene truely obserued , that ere they parted , they plainely discouered , they came not with any such intent , as to yeeld any thing for Peace , much lesse for Trueths sake , but onely to assay either by perswasion to reduce , or otherwise by cunning to intrap and disgrace their aduersaries ; and if some one of them haue shewed himselfe more moderate at any time , it hath beene his vtter disgrace with his owne partie for euer after . Now for the manner of mine answering , I haue set downe his text at large in his owne words , without altering or adding so much as a sillable ( except it were to make sense where I found none ) imputing the errour thereof to the Printer , rather then the Author , I haue followed the Methode of his owne diuision , for the most part , both in the Chapters & Sect. The maine scope of euery Sect. I haue answered in the bodie of my Reply , stretching the force of his Arguments , sometimes beyond the extent of the Letter ; & such extrauagant matters , as he drawes in vpon the bye , I thought it sufficient to reply vnto , in my marginall notes , so that in one of the two , nothing I thinke worth the answering hath escaped vnanswered ; and I shall craue that curtesie of the Reader , if he receiue not satisfaction in the one , to haue recourse to the other ; and this I take to bee faire and iust dealing without exception ; once I am sure I haue dealt with him as my selfe in like case should desire to be dealt withall , which I take to bee the safest rule of iust dealing . Surely a matter it is of little labour and credite ; but lesse honestie , to deale as Fitz-Simon hath done with Mr. Mason , whose learned and painfull booke of the lawfull 10 Consecration of our Bishops , he pretends he read ouer and confuted in 15. dayes ; but his chiefe confutation ( as may ea●ily appeare to the Reader ) stands in denying acts vouched out of the publike Register ; or as Eudaemon ( the common packehorse of Rome ) hath lately dealt with my Lord of Salisburie , answering his Antilogie , a booke of about 60. sheetes , full of varietie of learning , and ●uident proofe , with a Libel of some three or foure sheets at most , which he hath also rather stained , with rayling at persons , and catching at words , then made offer to answere so much as one materiall point ; and to speake a trueth , I haue good reason to thinke , he rather wrote it that the title might be seen● in the common Catalogue , then that the Booke it selfe might commonly bee read ; in regarde that the worke is so slender , and the copies so few , that as it is scarce to be had , so is it scarce worth the reading being had : himselfe professeth that he wrote it [ Ne magni aliquid latere in ●o libro putarent , quē nemo confutasset : Lest men should thinke some great matter lay hidden in that booke , which no man had confuted : ] but hee that shall compare both , may well say , notwithstanding his answere , that no man hath yet confuted it . Somewhat more wisely and warily hath he dealt with Casaubons Exercitations , answering onely the fourth chapter of his first Exercitation , and promising a whole volume to follow after against the rest , in imitation belike of Richard Stanihurst , who hath published his flourish to a future combate with his Nephew Mr. Dr. VSher ; but I thinke wee shall see the full encounters both of the one and the other , by leasure . Pollicitis diues quilibet esse potest ; but Tarda solet magnis rebus inesse fides . An easie matter it is to promise great matters , but not so easie to performe them being promised : For mine owne part , I must confesse , I haue made a larger answere then either the treatise answered deserued , or the state of my bodie , and my leisure ( being to make so often returnes from a remote part of the Kingdome to mine attendance in Court ) could well permit , or indeed my selfe at first proiected ; but I haue now found it true in mine owne experience , which I haue often heard obserued by others , to fall out many times in writing , as it doth in building : many alterations and additions present themselues , besides , and beyond the first designe . It was written of Fame , but it may as truely be said of this kind of writing , Vires acquirit ●undo . It gathers strength in going , as in eating a man sometimes gets a stomack : which was the reason ( together with an expectation , that either some more able pen would haue vndertaken this encounter , or some matter of greater importance promised by the Author himselfe , and Pelitier , would ere this haue beene published to the world ) that mine answere hath beene differred till now : but if it be well enough , it is soone enough , how well it is , let the reader iudge , whom notwithstanding , I shall desire to suspend his iudgement ▪ till hee haue heard both parties speake , which request mee thinkes is but reasonable , considering I haue dealt so fauourably with the aduerse party , as to set downe all at full , that hee could say for himselfe : With whom , if I deale in mine answering as if hee were still aliue , it is to bee ascribed to himselfe , who in the conclusion of his Letter , professeth hee sent his soule therein ; neither is that I haue done herein without example of those , by whose greatnesse if need were , small faults might be countenanced ; it is ( I hope ) sufficient that I neither intend thereby to wrong the dead , or deceiue the liuing : Neither let it bee thought blameable , that being by profession a diuine , I haue medled so much in matters of state ; it was rather out of the necessitie of the arguments to bee replied vnto , then any desire or disposition of mine owne , farther then to make it appeare to the world , that the Religion by vs professed , is more sutable to the preseruation of the ciuill power , and in speciall the forme of policie established among vs , then that religion which dares accuse ours of the contrary ; of which I may truely say that ( in the termes it now stands ) it doth not so much vphold temporall policie , as it is vpheld by it , and yet like the iuie which riseth by clasping the oake , hath it at length ouertopt the oake of Soueraigneti● it selfe : whereas on the other side ours hath hitherto had none other supports , but the meere euidence of trueth and diuine assistance , and so according to that receiued principle of nature , being still nourished by the same meanes as it was first bredde , it makes vs confident that it will both grow the better and last the longer . Thus commending thee to Gods grace , the worke to thy charitable censure , and my selfe to thy Christian prayers , I rest . Thine in our Common SAVIOVR , George Hakewil . ❧ The Publishers Preface to the Reader before Dr. CARIERS Booke . HAuing exactly perused ( good Reader ) this Treatise here presented to thy view , and finding it both in stuffe and stile to be learnedly and eloquently contriued ; I tooke my selfe in some sort obliged in Christian duty , to divulge it in print to the world : 1 vnwittingly I confesse to the Author : howbeit , encroaching vpon his charitable consent , who I am well assured is most forward to defray his talent in ought wherein the Catholike Romane religion may be aduanced : Of this firme and full resolution he hath made effectiue proofe , not onely in words but also in workes . The Author , as it is notoriously knowen , hath gained 2 name and fame among the Protestants , hauing beene a Teacher in their Colledges , a Preacher in their Pulpits , a Doctor in their Schooles , a Canon in their Churches , Chaplaine to the King his most excellent Maiestie , flowing in wealth , supported with the 3 credit of the Court , most likely in short time to 4 aspire to higher Ecclesiasticall preferments , had hee persisted in the course of his former profession : Yet notwithstanding all these worldly allurements , which are in good sooth 5 wondrous inticing baites to hooke and to hold an vnstayed soule ; Mr. Doctor Carier hauing from his greener yeeres wallowed himselfe in the choisest writings of the most learned Protestants , and confronting in his mature age their 6 wauering opinions with the vniforme and setled consent of the ●ncient Fathers , found the 7 new so opposite to the old , that at length receiuing 8 gracious light from the Father of lights , did teare 9 at a trice all these forementioned earthly s●ares , resoluing not to wander any longer like a lost sheepe , but to come to the fold of the Catholike Roman Church ; and consequently , choosing like a zealous Moses , to be afflicted with the people of God , then to haue the pleasure of temporall sinne : These and the like pregnant points are sufficiently debated in this Treatise , which I wish thee ( gentle Reader ) to peruse with heedfull attention , wherby the Author his paines may turne to thy profite , if happily thou be alienated from the 10 Catholike Roman religion , alwaies presenting thy prayers to our Lord Sweet Iesus , that he would vouch safe to illuminate thy minde in the passage of thy eternall saluation , that thou mayest preferre light before darkenesse , trueth before falshood , Catholike Religion before particular opinions , 11 as Mr. Doctor Carier hath done vpon such sound and grounded reasons , as hee hath opened in this Treatise : And this wishing that good to thy soule , which I wish to mine owne , I betake thee good Reader to the direction and protetection of the authour , and giuer of grace and glory . G. H. IT seemes you had not so exactly perused this ensuing Treatise , as in the front you pretend , in as much as you tell vs , that the Author thereof from his greener yeeres wallowed himselfe in the choisest writings of the most learned Protestants ; whereas himselfe in his first chapter and fifth Section , professeth , that when he first tooke himselfe to the studie of Diuinitie , setting aside all respect of men then aliue , and of Writers that had mooued or maintained Controuersies , farther then to vnderstand the question that was betwixt them , he fell to the reading of the Church Historie and ancient Fathers , which had no interest on either side : Indeed he telleth vs before this , he read ouer our English Chronicles , and except this Were his wallowing in the choisest writings of the most learned Protestants , I vnderstand not out of his owne relation what was : Once I am sure he affirmes meere vntruths touching Caluins doctrine ( which I take it hee vnderstands by Caluinisme ) faining him to teach , that the Sacraments of the Church bee nothing but signes and badges of that grace , which a man hath before , by the carnall couenant of his Parents faith , and that Priesthood can doe nothing but preach the word , which lay men may do also if they wil : positions so directly opposite not only to Caluins words , but his grounds and reasons , that it makes me suspect he neuer reade him nor so much as his Maiesties either Apologie or Premonition ; in both which he plainely and largely impugneth the Bishop of Romes vsurped power in spirituals , which the Dr. notwithstanding denieth , and that in his letter to his Maiestie himselfe . But you found the treatise , you say , both in stuffe and style , to be learnedly and eloquently contriued : It may be said of eloquēce without learning , as of the Nightingale , that it is vox & praeterea nihil , A sounding brass● or tinkling Cymball : Neither doe I see how that can well be called a learned peece of worke , which treating of Christian religion , alleadgeth not so much as one passage of Scripture throughout , nor alludeth to any by way of proofe ; and quoteth of the Ancients onely , S. Augustine twice , but not against vs , and S. Ambrose once , but against his meaning , as shall appeare in his proper place : and among latter Writers Sir Francis Bacons Essayes , where no such thing as hee quotes is to be found , and Caluins life written by Beza , which rather makes much against himselfe , then in any sort for him ; besides this , hee borroweth a sentence or two out of Aristotles Politikes , which he fathereth vpon the Fathers , and this is the learned stuffe you so much bragge of . From the worke you passe to the Author , who gained fame ( you say ) amongst the Protestants , hauing beene a Teacher in their Colledges , a Preacher in their P●lpits , a Doctor in their Schooles , &c. So was Nicholas amongst the Deacons , and Iudas among the Apostles , and Reuben among the Patriarchs , and Saul among the Prophets , and Iulian among the Christian Emperors , and Nestorius among the Bishops , and Sergius among the Monkes , and Lucifer among the Angels , and Satan among the children of God ; Hee went out from vs because he was not of vs , for if he had beene of vs , he would ●aue continued with vs. Stella cadens non est stella , cometa fuit . His falling away proues him to haue beene a blazing but neuer a fixed starre : Which that I haue good reason to thinke , his owne words written with his owne hand , and taken out of his common place booke , shall testifie , where he proposes the question . IAN. 5. 1611. An quis possit esse in statu gratiae , quiest extra externam obedientiam Ecclesiae . Which hee thus resolues : Catholicus extra externam obedientiam Ecclesiae , vel in Scismate natus , velper loci interdictum eiectus , potest tamen esse in vn●one Catholica . Ergò potest esse in statu gratiae . Potest habere animam perfecte vnitam . Ergo potest esse in vnione Catholica . Potest habere intellect●m vnitum , scilicet per veram fidem , & voluntatem vnitam , scilicet per veram charitatem . Ergo potest habere animam perfecte vnitam . Ergo sinon potest habere corpus vnitum , est tamen in statu gratiae , modo nihil prius cupiat , quam vt sit etiam in externa obedientia , & abstineat propter commune bonum Ecclesiae , non propter bonum priuatum . From whence in my iudgement it cannot well be collected otherwise , but that while his body was with vs , his soule was vnited to Rome , and that euen before his leauing vs , he left no stone vnmoued for the publique good of that Church . Lastly , for that vniforme and setled consent of the ancient Fathers , and those pregnant points and sound and grounded reasons of the Author which the Prefacer pretends ; it will easily appeare at first view , that the former appeares not in this Treatise : and for the latter , they may appeare to the vnlearned and vnstable , who like children are carried about with euery blast of vaine doctrine ; but to such as are sound in the faith which was once deliuered to the Saints , and grounded in the principles of Christian religion , I am sure his reasons can neither appeare sound nor grounded . Those foure quotations of Scripture which are set by the Prefacer in his margin ( being more by foure then are to be found in the Treatise it selfe ) the thicknesse of my marginall notes inforced me to omit ; and yet if I had figured them as I finde them there , the Reader in searching would haue missed them , the 11. and 19. of Iames being put for the 1. and the 17. the 15. to the Heb. for the 11. and Psalm . 83. 12. for 84. 11. But herein it may be hee followed the diuision of the vulgar edition , and the rest I am content to impute to the Printer . Hanc veniam petimusque damusque vicissim . Dr. CARIERS PREFACE TO HIS LETTER . Most Excellent and Renowned Soueraigne , IT is not vnknowne to all those that knowe me in England , that for these many yeeres I had my health very ill , and therefore hauing from time to time vsed all the meanes and medicines that England could afford ; Last of all , by the aduice of my Phisitians , I made mine humble suite vnto your Maiestie , that I might trauell vnto the Spaw for the vse of those waters , purposing with my selfe that if I could be well , I would goe from thence to Heydelberge , and spend this winter there . But when I was gone from the Spaw to Aquisgrane , and so to Colin , I found my selfe , rather worse then better then I was before , and therefore I resolued with my selfe that it was high time for me to settle my thoughts vpon another world : And seeing I was out of hope to enioy the health of my body , at the least to looke to the health of my soule , from whence both 1 art and experience teacheth me that all my bodily infirmities haue their beginning , for if I could by any study haue prooued Catholike Religion to bee false , or by any meanes haue professed it to bee 2 true in England , I doubt not , but the contentment of my soule would haue much helped the health of my bodie : But the more I studied the 3 Scriptures , and most ancient Fathers to confute it , the more I was compelled to see the trueth thereof , and the more I laboured to 4 reconcile the religion of England thereunto , the more I was disliked , suspected , and condemned as a common enemie : And if I would haue been either ignorant , or silent , I might perhaps with the pleasures and commodities of my preferments , haue in time cast off the care of Religion : But seeing my studie forced mee to 5 knowe , and my place 6 compelled me to preach , I had no way to auoid my griefe , nor meanes to endure it : I haue therfore apprehended the opportunitie of my Licence to tra●ell , that I may withdraw my selfe for a while from the sight and offence of those in England , which 7 hate Catholike Religion , and 8 freely and fully enioy the presence of our blessed Sauiour , in the vnitie of his Catholike Church , wherein I will neuer forget , at the 9 dayly oblation of his most blessed bodie and blood , to lift vp my heart vnto him and to pray for the 10 admission of your Maiesty thereinto : And in the meane time I haue thought it my 11 duety to write this short treatise with mine owne hand , wherein before I 12 publish my selfe vnto the world , I desire to shew to your Maiesty these two things : 1 13 The meanes of my conuersion vnto Cath. Religion : 2 The hopes I haue to doe your Maiesty no ill s●ruice therein . I humbly craue your Maiesties 14 pardon , and will rest euer Your Mai●sties 15 faithfull and truely deuoted seruant , B. Carier . GEORGE HAKEVVIL . IT is likewise knowen to all them that knew you , that for these many yeres , you haue beene more sicke in minde , then in body , which hath appeared not onely publikely in your Sermons and writings ; but priuately in your Conferences and Letters : where of my selfe am in part a witnesse ; but they with whom you were longer and more familiarly conuersant , can more fully testifie it , and though you vsed many medicines , yet one was wanting , to wit , a meeke and quiet spirit , a thing before God much set by ; it being as Dauids musicke , which stilled Sauls rage ; and this I am perswaded would haue done you more good , aswell in regard of the diseases of your body as your minde , then any of your other medicines , or all of them put together : among which your last was the Spaw waters , which I graunt , you might vse by aduice of Physitians ; but I haue withall reason to thinke the voyage out of his Maiesties dominions into those parts , was by you intended rather for the fuller & safer discouering of the sickenes of your mind , then the recouering of that of your body : which your selfe in this very Preface confesse vpon the matter , in as much as being ( you say ) suspected & condemned as a common enemy , and hauing no way to auoid your griefe , nor meanes to endure it , you desired to withdraw your selfe from the sight and offence of those who hated Catholike Religion : whereby I presume you meane such as opposed your turbulent courses , labouring vnder pretence of Catholike Religion , and olde English diuinitie , to bring in , and set vp , the new Romish ; and considering you stood so affected , it seemeth to me strange you should purpose a iourney to Heydelberge , and the spending of a winter there , being so profested an enemy to all Caluinists , except you hoped to conuert Abraham Scultet , Or Dauid Parrey : My selfe passed one whole winter amongst them , and vnlesse their opinions be since altered , or you had altered yours before your comming thither , or at least concealed them at your being there , you would doubtlesse before the winter had passed , growen more weary of them then of vs : But being ( you say ) vpon the way at Colin , you found your selfe worse , and thereupon resolued it was high time to settle your thoughts vpon another world , and being out of hope to enioy the health of your bodie , at least to looke to the health of your soule ; So that by your owne confession , you made a vertue of necessitie , then resoluing to settle your selfe , when you expected not long after the dissolution of your body ; then to fixe your thoughts vpon God , when you perceiued you could not long remaine in the world ; which as it is lesse acceptable to God , then for a man to consecrate the flowre and strength of his age to him , so is it in the doctrine of the Church of Rome lesse meritorious in it selfe , and in reason not so exemplar to draw others : Had you determined to forsake a falshod , and imbrace a trueth for the meere loue of truth without worldly respects , men would rather haue inclined to thinke that true which you had imbraced ; had you hoped to rise higher , and liue longer , and yet not held your life or hope of honor deare ; in regard of that future life and glory which you hoped for by the change of your Religion , you might sooner haue induced others to follow your steps : but for a man so ambitious as your selfe , by your owne acknowledgement , who by striuing against the streame , had put himselfe not onely out of hope of rising higher ; but almost out of breath to , and all hope of liuing much longer , to seeke that name and fame in dying abroad , which he saw could not bee gotten by liuing at home ; it may perhaps worke somewhat with those who iudge of matters onely by euents , as Geometricians measure the height of towres by their shadowes , and are ready to turne euery accident to an argument for their owne purposes ; but such as iudge of euents by looking into their causes ( which not many loue much to busie their braines about , nor are indeed capable of ) and frame not arguments to their opinions ; but contrariwise submit their opinions to the soundnesse and force of argument ; such I ●ay , I am sure it cannot much moue . AN ANSWERE TO D. CARIERS LETTER TO THE Kings Maiestie . CHAP. I. The meanes of my conuersion to Catholike Religion . BENIAMIN CARIER . 1. I Must confesse to Gods honour , and my owne shame , A that if it had bene in my power to choose , I would neuer haue bene a Catholike . I was borne and brought vp in 1 schisme , and was taught to B abhorre a Papist , as much as any Puritane in England doth . I had euer a great desire to iustifie the religion of the state , and had great C hope to aduance my selfe thereby : neither was my hope euer so great , as by your Maiesties fauour it was D at the very instant of my resolution for Catholike Religion : and the preferment I had , together with the honour of your Maiesties seruice , was greater by much , then without your Maiesties fauour , I looke for in this world . But although I was a● 2 ambitious of your Maiesties fauor , and as desirous of the honours and pleasures of my Countrey , as any man that is therein : yet seeing that I was not like , any long while , to enioy them , and if I should for my priuate commodity speake , or write , or doe any thing against the honour of Christ his Church , and against the euidence of mine owne conscience , I must shortly appeare before the presence of the same Christ , in the presence of the same his Church , to giue an account thereof . Therefore I neither durst any further to pursue my owne desire of honour , nor to hazard my soule any farther in the iustifications of that religion , which I saw was E impossible to bee 3 iustified by any such reason as at the day of iudgement would goe for payment ; and that it may appeare that I haue not respected any thing so much in this world , as my 4 duetie to your Maiesty , and my loue to my friends & Countrey , I humbly beseech you giue me leaue ( as briefly as I can ) to recount vnto you the whole course of my studies and indeuors in this kind , euen 5 from the beginning of my life vntill this present . GEORGE HAKEWIL . 1. A In saying you would neuer haue bene a Catholike , if it had bene in your power to choose , you seeme to fall vpon that opinion which is wrongfully thrust vpon Caluin , that wee are conuerted , as it were , by constraint , whether we will or no , and consequently you ouerthrow both the freedome of will , and the merit of worke . B It seemes then your father , who brought you vp , did much abhorre a Papist , and yet you confesse in the next Section that he was a learned and deuout man , and that he seasoned you with the principles of piety and deuotion . C Your great hopes were indeed alwayes beyond your iust de●●rts : yet his Maiestie might be drawen to fauour you the ra●her , for that hypocriticall sermon which you made last before him in his ●happell at White-hall . D So it seemes you resolued for the pretended Catholike religion before your parting from hence : howbeit before , you beare vs in hand , that you got licence to trauell to the Spaw , onely for your health , and afterward you tell vs , that you went hence , hoping to finde some greater offence in the seruice of the Church of Rome , then you had done in their bookes , that so you might returne better contented , to persecute and abhorre the Catholikes at your pleasure : Thus , for your aduantage , you turne your tale , as Mariners doe their sailes . E No reason at the day of Iudgement , in all likel●hood ▪ shall better goe for payment , then that which the Iudge , as a rule to be iudged by himselfe hath left vs , and of which we may say , if we be deceiued , thou Peter , thou Paul , or thou Christ hast deceiued vs. But whether on the other side , your humane inuentions , or as the Apostle cals them , * voluntary religion and will-worship , will then passe for currant pay , a iuster doubt may be made : of which hee might iustly say , as he doth to his people by his * Prophet , Who hath required these things at your hands ? B. C. 2. I was borne in the yeere , 1566. being the sonne of Anthonie Carier , a learned and deuout man : who although hee were a Protestant and a Preacher , yet did so season me with the principles of pietie and deuotion , as I could not choose but euer since bee verie F zealous in matters of 6 religion . Of him I learned that all G false religions in the world were but policies inuented for the temporall seruice of Princes and States : and therefore that they were diuers and alwayes changeable , according to the diuers reasons and occasions of State. H But true Chr●●●ian Religion was a trueth reuealed of God for the eternall saluation of soules : and therefore was like to God alwayes , one and the same . So that all Princes and States in the world neuer haue beene , nor shall be able to 7 ouerthrow that Religion . This to me seemed an excellent ground for the finding out of that Religion , wherein a man might find rest vnto his soule , which cannot be satisfied with any thing but eternall trueth . G. H. 2. F A zealous man indeed , your selfe confessing in your Preface that you then began to looke to the health of your soule , when you were out of hope to enioy the health of your bodie : And in the very Section going before , that you were as ambitious of his Maiesties fauour , and as desirous of the honours and pleasures of your Countrey , as any man that is therein : But it seemes you dwelt by bad neighbours , who are thus inforced to commend your owne Zeale , or else they hold it of none other kind , then that of which the * Apostle speakes [ hauing strife for her companion and sedition for her daughter , ] and if wee should graunt that you had Zeale though [ * not according to knowledge , ] I rest well assured that this Epistle , in the iudgement of the wisest , would not euince the contrary . G Your father being ( as you say ) a Protestant and a Preacher in all likelyhood , by False Religion , vnderstood the Romish , being indeede the deepest policie inuented by men for their own purposes that euer was in the world , [ * the children of darkenesse being in their generation wiser then the children of light , ] and is in that regard rightly termed by Saint Paul * [ the mysterie of iniquitie which began to worke ] in his dayes , but since hath fullie weaued those threeds , which were then begunne to be spunne ; the Cockatrice is now hatched , which was then onely in the egge . And surely I thinke , not without great reason , the Bishop of Rome hath , or at least wise , formerly had the word Mysterie engrauen on his diademe , since in the seuenteenth of the Reuel . at the fift verse it is foretold , it should be [ written on the forehead of the ●reat Whore. ] For to passe by other [ depthes of Satan ] as they bee called Reuel . 2. verse 24. I would know what Religion was ener in the world which inuented a policie like to the Popes dispensations in generall , but specially in Mariages , it being hitherto the best stake in his hedge , and without exception the strongest sinew for the tying of Christian Princes vnto him , as to their head , they being made many of them by it legitimate , and illegitimate without it : So they stand in a maner bound to defend his authority with the same sword , that they do their own Crownes . And I am verily perswaded , were it not that they lie obnoxious to him in this regard , some of them would not sticke so close to him as they doe , especially since the publishing of his Maiesties learned and godly premonition vnto them . Farther , what vse they make of Confessions for the discouerie of all secrets , as well of nature as of States , Indulgences , Canonizations , Consecrations , Of their bloodie Inquisition , which like a sharpe Northerne winde nippes the spring of Religion in the bud , Of forging false Authours , and corrupting the true , Of suppressing the bookes of our Writers , and correcting their owne , Of spreading false rumors , and razing all antiquitie that makes against them , the world hath long since discouered . Besides all this , they haue a baite for euery fish , a motiue to draw euery seuerall humour : for an ambitious disposition they haue a triple Crowne , or a Cardinals cap ; for a Contemplatiue , a Monkes cloister , or a Friars coule ; for a working practical head , imployment in State affaires , for a Scholasticke , preaching & writing , and in writing , some they set to meditations , some to politike discourses , some to cases of conscience , some to commentaries , some to controuersies , according to the seuerall point and temper of their wits . Nay he that shal but consider the politike forme of gouernment obserued in the onely order of the Iesuits , their rules , their intelligence , their corespondence , their infinite cunning deuises how to winne some whom they desire for respects to be of their society , or to make their friends , and to disgrace or remoue others whom they suspect to stand in theirway , may iustly pronounce of them that they haue perfectly learned the former part of our Sauiours lesson , [ * Be wise as serpents , ] but not the latter , [ be ye innocent as doues : ] wheras nothing argues the inocency of our cause more , then that it hitherto hath bin , and still is supported meerely by the goodnesse of God , and the euidence of trueth . H Surely , if true religion be vnchangeable , then the Romish cannot be the true , it hauing suffered so many changes both in doctrine and practise , that wee may now iustly question it whether it bee the same or no , as the Schollers of Athens did Theseus his ship , after many reparations , wee may seeke Rome in Rome it selfe , and not find it . I will instance onely in the Masse , which like a beggars cloakehath receiued so many additions and patche● , that if S. Peter should now liue to see a Priest saying Masse , hee would without doubt conceiue it to bee any thing rather then the commemoration of Christs death ▪ or the administration of his Supper : and to speake a trueth ▪ as long as the traditions of Men are held of equall authoritie with the liuely Oracles and eternall trueth of God , it ca●not bee , but that religion , which is grounded on them , should be as subiect to variation , as are the conceptions of mens minds . So that your ground for the finding out of that religion wherein a ma● might finde rest vnto his soule is excellent good , but your application erroneous , since there is indeede no rest , but vpon eternall trueth ; and no trueth eternall , but that which is diuine . B. C. 3. My next care then was after I came to yeeres of discretion by all the best meanes I could to enforme my selfe , whether the religion of England were indeed the very same , which being prefigured and prophecied in the olde Testament , was perfected by our blessed Sauiour , and 1 deliuered to his Apostles and disciples to continue by perpetuall succession in his visible Church , vntill his comming againe : or whether it were a new one for priuate purposes of Statesmen inuented , and by humane lawes established . Of this I could not chuse but make some doubt ▪ because I heard men talke much in those dayes of the change of religion , which was then lately made in the beginning of Queene ELIZABETHS raigne . G. H. 3. I would demaund , by M. Doctors leaue , whethermen might not talke as much of the change of religion made in the beginning of Queene Maries raigne , as Queene Elizabeths ? But you will say Queene Maries was a restitution to the ancient : and wee replie , that Queene Elizabeths was a restitution to a more ancient : and most true it is , the most ancient is the most true . So that in this regard wee may iustly say , [ Nos non sumus nouatores , sed vos estis veteratores , ] and with our Sauiour , * From the beginning it was not so . B. C. 4. I was sorry to heare of a change and of a new religion , seeing me thought in reason , if true religion were eternall , the new religion could not be the true . But yet I hoped that the religion of England was not a change , or a new religion , but a restitution of the olde , and that the change was in the Church of Rome , which in processe of time might perhaps grow to bee Superstitious and Idolatrous , and that therefore England had done well to leaue the Church of Rome , and to reforme it selfe : and for this purpose I did at my leisure and best opportunitie , as I came to more iudgement , reade ouer the Chronicles of England , and obserued all the a●terations of religion that I could find therein : but when I found there , that the present religion of England was a plaine change , and change vpon change , and that there was no cause of the change at all at the first , but onely that ● King Henry the VIII . was desirous to change his olde bedfellow , that hee might leaue some heires males behind him ( for belike hee feared the females would not bee able to withstand the title of Scotland ) and that the change was continued and increased by the posteritie of his latter wiues , I could not chuse but suspect some thing : But yet the 2 loue of the world , and hope of preferment would not suffer me to beleeue but that all was well , and as it ought to be . G. H. 4. You told vs before , that your care was , assoone as you came to yeeres of discretion , by all meanes you could to enforme your selfe , whether the religion of England were indeed the very same which being prefigured and prophecied in the olde Testament , was perfected by our blessed Sauiour , and deliuered to his Apostles and disciples : and here you tell vs , that when you came to more iudgement , for the better informing your selfe herein , you read ouer the Chronicles of England : a proper course indeede , as if a man should reade ouer the Chronicles of England to search , whether the practise of our Architects in building agree with Vitruuius his precepts , or of our husbandmen in manuring their grounds with Columellaes rules . For mine owne part , I should rather haue thought , that the readiest way to informe your selfe aright , had been to compare the religion of England with the doctrine of the Gospels , Epistles , Actes of the Apostles , and Church history , the ende of a Chronicle being not to shew euery alteration in religion , specially where it is made peece-meale , insensibly , and by degrees , of which a man may say that hee sees it is changed , though he sawe not the changing , as he sees the grasse hath growen though he saw it nor growing , and the shadow in a diall to haue mooued , though not moouing , [ * The enuious man sowed his tares in the night , so that men discouered it then when they sprang vp in the morning . ] but the sowing of them they could not obserue , because it was done cunningly in the night when all men slept , and for a time , they lay hid vnder the earth . And yet are not our Chronicles so silent , but that they euery where lay open the iust comp aint of our Kings , and groning of our Clergie and people vnder the yoke of the Bishop of Rome , as shal more clearely appeare , when we come to shew what benefit euery estate may expect from the restitution of Romish religion ▪ But you say ▪ you found the religion of England a plaine change , and change vpon change : But our constant answere is , ( that which you professe you hoped to finde ) that the change was in the Church of Rome , our change being nothing else but the scowring off of that rust , or the repairing of those ruines which we found had insensibly growen vpon it . For to suppose that tract of time cannot drawe a corruption vpon religion , aswell as vpon ciuil affaires , is as if a man should imagine that Castles indeede are subiect to reparations , but not Churches : and for your pretended change vpon change , wee may boldly say , that our Common prayer booke hath not receiued so many changes as your Breuiaries , your Portesses , your Legends , your Martyrologies , your Pontificals , your Ceremonials , and specially your Missals haue done , and that since our reformation ; nay , since the framing and publishing of our Common prayer bookes in the beginning of the reigne of Edward the VI. wee find no change in any materiall point at all , saue that in their Letanie they prayed to be deliuered by name from the tyrannie and malice of the Pope , which for any thing I know , might as iustly , and vpon as good reason haue been retained by vs , as it was by them put in . H Now why Henrie the VIII . should cause the first change in religion out of a desire to change his bed-fellow , I see not , except you esteeme a restraining of the Popes vnlimited power in dispensations to be a change in religion , and indeed it may well be , since now the world is come to that passe , that the Popes authority , and religion are in a manner as reciprocall , as the definition and the thing defined . And for the change of his bedfellow , it is well knowen to those that haue read ouer our Chronicles with obseruation ( as your selfe pretend you haue ) that he being married to her at the age of 10. yeeres or thereabout , protested against it when he came to 14. in the presence of Richard Foxe Bishop of Winchester , and Iohn Reade a publique Notary , as appeares by a deed vnder his owne hand , being then Prince of Wales , besides the Counsell both of Spaine and of France , treating a mariage for the Lady Mary , the one wi●h Charles the Emperour , the other with Henry Duke of Orleans , they both made a doubt whether the mariage of her mother , hauing bene wife to the Kings owne brother could be dispensed with , or the children begot in this second bed legitimate , and by Law allowed to succeed to the crowne : nay which is more , D. Longland then Bishop of Lincolne the kings Confessour , after it had long slept , reuiued this Scruple in the kings conscience , the Cardinall being Archbishop of Yorke , and Legate to the Pope , together with the Archbishop of Canterbury , and all the rest of the Bishops ( Rochester onely excepted , who was then lately made Cardinall , but lost his head before his hat came ouer ) subscribed and sealed to the iustnesse of the diuorce , both our 1 Vniuersities , yea , many beyond the Seas to the number of 10. or 12. some of them in Italy it selfe , and vnder the Popes peculiar iurisdiction confirmed it vnder their common seales , diuerse of our 2 Doctors , being purposely sent to Rome about it , offered dispute before the Pope to proue it , Cranmer in a priuate conference at Vienna with Cornelius Agrippa ( then following the Emperour , & euery where admired for his learning ) so fully satisfied him that he held the proposition most true , if it could be proued that the Lady Katherine was carnally knowen of Prince Arthur , whereof the presumptions were great . The one was , that Prince Henry was deferred from his creation , and title of Prince of Wales , by the space of sixe moneths after Arthurs decease , vpon a supposition that the Lady Katherine might be by him conceiued with childe : Another was that for this cause the said Lady procured a second Bull from the Pope with this addition [ Velforsan cognitam ] and peraduenture carnally knowen , which Bull was only purchased to dispense with this mariage . A third presumption was from the report of Prince Arthurs Chamberlaine vpon certaine words spoken by the Prince the first morning that he rose from his bed . A fourth was the relation of the Ambassadours of Ferdinando her father king of Spaine , being sent hither purposely to see the mariage consummated , who returned their knowledge of their mutuall coniunction by the markes , and that nothing was left vnperformed of any nuptiall right : And surely they being both of yeeres able enough to accomplish the acte , he aboue 15. and she aboue 17. laid both in one bed almost fiue moneths together , doe assure vs the certainety of that which in this businesse is made the greatest scruple . These were the reasons which in appearance moued Henry the VIII . to the remouing of his bed-fellow , not those which you as fondly imagine , as you suggest malitiously . I doe not take vpon me the clearing of this king from all the blame that is cast vpon him : yet I may truely say that strangers haue bene more fauourable vnto him , then our owne countrey-men , he being deepely and bitterly taxed not onely by Saunders ( from whom nothing but such slanders could be expected ) but by a later writer , professing himselfe of our owne Church , to the great content of the Romish faction , whose obligation notwithstanding to the daughter in the censure of wise men might deseruedly haue purchased some more respectiue termes of the Father : whereas Thuanus the most vnpartiall and iudicious Historiographer of our age giues this testimonie of him , that [ he was a Prince of singular naturall indowments , and such a one in whom ( had hee not too much loosed the reines to this pleasure ) you could hardly find wanting any perfection . Nay after his diuorce from his Queene , and from the Church of Rome , the Bishops which hee named ( sayth hee ) were honest men and good Schollers , being euer himselfe a great Patron of learning ] which testimonie I the rather alledge , because the Spanish expurgatorie index hath rased it , as also diuers other verie memorable passages in this Author . B. C. 5. Thus I satisfied my selfe at Schoole , and studied the Artes and Philosophie , and other humane learning , vntill being Master of Artes , and fellow of Corpus Christi Colledge in Cambridge , I was at last by the Statutes of that house , called to the studie of Diuinitie , and bound to take vpon me the Order of Priest-hood , then I thought it my duetie for the better satisfaction of mine owne soule , and the sauing of othermens , to looke as farre into the matter as possible I could , that I might find out the Trueth , and hauing the opportunitie of a very good Librarie in that Colledge : I resolued with my selfe to studie hard , and setting aside all respect of men then aliue , or of Writers that had mooued or maintained Controuersies ( farther then to 1 vnderstand the question which was betwixt them ) I fell to my prayers , and betooke my selfe wholly to the reading of the 2 Church Historie , and of the ancient Fathers , which had no interest on either side , and specially ● made choise of S. Augustine , because I hoped to find most comfort in him for the confirming of our Religion , and the confuting of the Church of Rome . G. H. 5. After your perusing the Chronicles of England , you betake your selfe to the reading of the Church Historie , and ancient Fathers , and in speciall make choise of S. Augustine in whom you find the doctrine of Rome euery where confirmed , and ours confuted : But I would faine know whether one maine point of the doctrine of the Church of Rome be not the Supremacie of that Sea , and whether a chiefe feather in that wing be not Appeals from forraine parts . Now whether S. Augustine approued them , I appeale to his practise , being one of those Bishops in the Councell of Carthage , who discouered and disclaimed the impudencie and forgerie of the Church of Rome , in challenging that as right , which some of constraint had performed , and others of courtesie had graunted , for which himselfe with his Fellow-Bishops were excōmunicated by the Bishop of Rome , and ( for any thing I can finde in the Church Historie ) so died . Some of his workes I haue read , specially those of Christian doctrine , and of them I will be bold to say that they confirme no one point of Romish doctrine controuersed at this day : and surely there , if any where , had beene the proper place to declare the Bishop of Rome Supreame iudge in all controuersies . B. C. 6. In this sort I spent my time continually for many yeeres , and noted downe whatsoeuer I could gather , or rather snatch either from the Scriptures , or the Fathers to serue my turne : But when after all my paines and desire to serue my selfe of Antiquitie , I found the doctrine of the Church of Rome to be euery where cōfirmed , & by most profound demonstrations out of 1 holy Scripture made most agreeable to the trueth of Christs 2 Gospel , and most conformable to all 3 Christian soules , and saw the 4 current opinions of our great Preachers euery where confuted , either in plaine termes , or by most vnanswerable consequence , although mine vnderstanding was thereby greatly edified ( for which I had great reason to render immortall thankes to our blessed Sauiour , who by these meanes had vouchsafed to shewe himselfe vnto mee ) yet my heart was much 5 grieued , that I must be faine either not to preach at all , or to crosse and var●e from the doctrine which I saw was commonly receiued . G. H. 6. I haue perused your Common-place booke , written for the most part with your owne hand , and indeed it thereby appeares that your noting might more deseruedly bee termed a snatching , then a gathering , though by your will you solemnely bequeath it as a rich legacie to C.C.C. in Camb. whereof you were a Fellow : but you found the doctrine of the Church of Rome , ( you say , ) euery where confirmed by most profound demonstrations from holy Scripture ; in trueth I must confesse they are so deepe , that throughout this treatise they are inuisible ; but I much desire to knowe by what profound demonstration from holy Scripture , you would proue the adoration of images , the administration of the Sacrament vnder one kinde , the exercise of publike prayer in a language not vnderstood of the people , or lastly the Bishop of Romes vsurpation ouer the temporals of Princes , vnlesse you bring Bellarmines profound demonstration to that purpose [ Pasce oues meas , ] or Baronius [ Surge occide & manduca ] or the Canonists [ fecit Deus duo magna luminaria ] much like a profound demonstration I haue heard of for proofe of the Salique law [ the lillies neither labour nor spinne ] therefore the Crowne of France [ ne tombe point sur laquenouille ] fals not to the distaffe : or like that of a Frier , who would needs proue that ten worlds were made in the first Creation , and that out of our Sauiours wordes in the Gospel [ annon decem factisunt mundi ] but he was well answered by his brother in the words following , [ Sed vbisunt nouem ? ] and did hee not deserue the title of D. profundus trow you , for so profound a demonstration ? 1 By such like profound demonstrations , you find the doctrine of the Church of Rome made most agreeable to the trueth of Christs Gospel , which for the Sacrament is , * drinke yee all of this , ] and for the power of his ministers , * [ my kingdome is not of this world , ] wordes deliuered as it seemes out of a propheticall spirit , as foreseeing what errours should in after ages spring vp in his Church , but you doe well to say that those doctrines were made agreeable to this trueth : they may bee made so , or at leastwise made to seeme so , by forging and hammering vpon the anuill of mens conceits , howbeit in themselues they are not so , as the belles seeme to the childe to ring that tune which runnes in his head . B. C. 7. Being thus perplexed with my selfe what course I were best to take , I reflected backe againe vpon the Church of England ; and because the most of those Preachers which drewe the people after them in those dayes were Puritans , and had grounded their diuinitie vpon Caluins institutions , I thought peraduenture that they hauing gotten the multitude on their side , might wrong the Church of England in her doctrine , as well as they desired to doe in her discipline , which indeed vpon due search , I found to be most true : for I found the Common prayer booke , and the Catechisme therin contained , to hold no point of doctrine expresly contrary to Antiquitie , but onely that it was very defectiue , and contained not enough : and for the doctrine of I Predestination , Sacraments , Grace , Freewill , Sinne , the new Catechisme and Sermons of those Preachers did run wholly against the Common prayer booke , and Catechisme therein , and did make as little account of the doctrine established by law , as they did of the discipline : but in the one they found opposition by those that had priuate interest , in the other they said what they list , because no man thought himselfe K hurt . G. H. 7 If our Common prayer Booke and Catechisme therin contained , holde no point of Doctrine contrarie to Antiquitie ( as you affirme . ) Surely the Church of Rome must needs be contrary to Antiquitie , in as much as it holds diuers points contrarie to it : If we should beginne with the Preface , which is confirmed by equall authoritie of State , as the bodie of the booke , it tels vs in the verie entrance , [ there was neuer any thing by the wit of man so well deuised , or so sure established , which in continuance of time hath not beene corrupted , as among other things it may plainly appeare by the Common praiers in the Church , commonly called Diuine Seruice ( the reason is added a little after , ) in as much as the godly and decent orders of the Fathers were altered and neglected , by planting in vncertaine Stories , Legends , Responds , Verses , vaine repetitions , Commemorations , Synodals , that commonly when any Booke of the Bible was begunne , before three or foure Chapters were read out , all the rest were vnread . ] Another reason is there annexed ▪ [ that whereas S. Paul would haue none other language spoken to the people in the Church , then they vnderstand , and haue profite by hearing of the same , the Seruice in this Church of England these many yeeres hath beene read in Latine to the people , which they vnderstand not ; so that they haue heard with their ●ares onely , but their minde hath no● beene edified thereby . Now for the bodie of the Common prayer Booke , I will first beginne with the diuision of the Commandements ▪ The Church o● Rome ioyneth the two first in one , the better thereby to cloke their Idolatrie in the worship of Images : But the Common prayer Booke of the Church of England diuideth them into two , therein following ( two of the Fathers at most excepted ) all Antiquitie . The Church of Rome in the doctrine of the Sacrament of the Eucharist , teacheth that we eate and drinke the Body and Blood of Christ carnally : The Common prayer of the Church of England in the forme of administring that Sacrament , that wee doe both Spiritually and by Faith feed on him in our hearts , eating and drinking in remembrance that C H R I S T dyed and shed his Blood for vs. The Church of Rome holdeth , that the Oblation of the Bodie of C H R I S T is to be iterated : The Common prayer Booke of the Church of England , that being by himselfe once offered , hee is a full perfect and sufficient Sacrifice for the ●innes of the whole world , which also meeteth with the Romish satisfaction for Veniall sinnes , as they call them , and temporall punishment dew to Mortall . The Church of Rome teacheth , that the outward Sacrament of Water sufficeth to saue Infants : The Common prayer Booke of the Church of England in the administration of publike Baptisme , that the working of the holy Ghost is to be ioyned thereunto . The Church of Rome teacheth , that Laijks and Women may in some cases lawfully Baptise : The Common prayer Booke of the Church of England in the administration of priuate Baptisme , that none may doe it lawfully but the lawfull Minister . The Church of Rome teacheth , that children may bee confirmed before they come to yeres of discretion , and are able to yeeld an account of their Faith : The Common prayer Booke of the Church of England in the order set downe for Confirmation , teacheth and commandeth the contrarie . More might bee sayed to this point , but this shall suffice to shew that if the Common prayer Booke of the Church of England be in no point of doctrine contrarie to Antiquitie ( as M ● . Doctor affirmeth ) then must Antiquitie needs bee contrarie to the doctrine of the Church of Rome , in as much as the doctrine thereof , and our Common prayer Booke are contrarie each to other . But you further adde that though it containe no point contrarie to Antiquitie , yet is it verie defectiue , and containeth not enough . Indeed we confesse y● we goe not so far as the Church of Rome ; but so far as we haue warrant . We pray to God in the Name of CHRIST , they to God & to Saints . We pray for the liuing , they for the liuing and the dead . We acknowledge 2. Sacraments , they to those two adde fiue more . We make the Communion of the Eucharist properly a Sacrament , they a Sacrament and a sacrifice , and that propitiatorie . We hope to be saued by the merits of Christ , they by his merits and their owne : the principall ground of all these additions is , that we make Scripture the onely rule of faith , they both Scripture and traditions : and by mingling the water of their owne inuentions with the wine of the Gospel , they haue made the Law of Christ of none effect . And surely if defect may iustly bee imputed to vs , excesse may much rather to them , who in their Pontificall spend seuen leaues in the largest fol. onely about the benediction of bels ( which is indeed little different from Baptisme ) and many hundreds about such ●opperies and trifles , as wise men among themselues cannot but laugh at , and yet dare not speake against , and good men pitie , though they cannot remedy . I I marueile what doctrine of predestination , grace , free-will , or sinne you finde in the Common Prayer booke , or Catechisme therein ; the end of the one being not to set downe doctrinall positions , but the exercise of religious actes , and of the other , as briefly as may bee , to instruct children in the principles of Christian religion , not men of riper age in the controuersies . K It is to me strange , that you dare write thus to his Maiestie , who made it knowen to the world by his pen ( when other Christian Princes and Churches were silent ) that hee thought himselfe hurt by the pestilent subtilties of Vorstius , howbeit he were not vnder his dominions , & by Legate his own subiect , who was burnt at London for Arianisme some few yeeres since . But surely I am clearely of opinion that his Holinesse would take it much more to heart , and thinke himselfe more hurt , if a Frier should preach against his power in deposing Kings , and disposing of kingdomes , then if he denied the eternall generation of the second person in Trinitie from the first , or the procession of the third from the other two . B. C. 8. This truely was an increase of my griefe : for knowing diuerse of those Preachers to be very 1 honest men , and such as I did loue with all my heart , I was very loth to dissent from them in priuate , much more loth to 2 oppose them in publike : and yet seeing I must needes preach , I was lothest of all to oppugne mine owne conscience , together with the faith wherein I was 3 baptized , and the soules of those to whome I preached , neuerthelesse hauing gotten this ground to worke vpon , I began to comfort my selfe with hope to proue that the religion established in England was the same , at the least in part , L which now was , and euer had beene held in the Catholique Church , the defects whereof might be supplied , whensoeuer it should please God to moue your Maiestie thereunto , without abrogating that which was alr●ady by Law established : which I still pray for , and am not altogether out of M hope to see , and therfore I thought it my duety , as farre as I durst , rather by N charitable constructions to reconcile things that seemed different , that so our soules might bee for euer sa●ed in vnity , then by malitious calumniations to maintaine quarrels , that so mens turnes might for a time bee serued in dissention . G. H. 8. L How then can we bee esteemed heretiques , who broach their owne fantasies , since holding as the Church of England doth , we hold the same that the Catholike Church hath euer held ? M Truely you had little reason to hope to liue to see thos● vnwarrantable Supplies ( you speake of , ) by his Maiesties command , aswell in regard of your owne infirmities of body , as his MAIESTIES strong resolution of minde to the contrarie : but it may bee your intelligence deceiued you : sure wee are your hope failed you . N Touching your opinion of Reconciliation , whether it may be thought to proceede of charitie , or arrogancie , as also whether it be probable , or in a maner possible , as the case now stands , I shall haue fitter opportunitie to discusse hereafter , then in this place . Yet giue mee leaue by the way to tell you , that in my iudgement you call that Vnitie , which is indeed distraction , it tending to nothing els but a rent and a drawing of vs further from other reformed Churches , and ne●rer to the Church of Rome : for if this were not your meaning , the same charitable constructions would haue serued to recōcile things that to you ( looking through the false spectacles of preiudice & passion ) seemed verie different betwixt vs & other reformed Churches abroad , much better , & easier then for the reconciling of those maine & broad differences , which are indeed betwixt vs and the Church of Rome . Of which I feare I may too truly say , as Abraham doth to the rich glutton in hel , * between you and vs there is a great gulfe set ; so that they which would goe from hence to you can not , neither can they come from thence to vs. ] I speake in regard of Reconciliation in differences of Religion ; for otherwise but too manie are suffered to goe from hence thither , and hauing sucked their poison , to returne againe at their pleasures , for the vomitting of it out amongst vs , notwithstanding the sharpe penalties and great gulfe set betweene vs. B. C. 9. In this course although I did neuer proceed any farther then law would giue me leaue , yet I found the 1 Puritans and Caluinists , and all the creatures of Schisme to be my vtter enemies , who were also like the sonnes of Zeruiah too strong for Daui● 2 himselfe , 2. Sam 3. 39. but I well perceiued that all 3 temperate and vnderstanding men , who had no interest in the Schisme , were glad to heare the trueth 4 honestly , and plainely preached vnto them : and my hope was by patience and continuance , I should in the ende vnmaske 5 hypocrisie , and gaine credite to the comfortable doctrine of Antiquitie , euen amongst those also , who out of misinformation and preiudice did as yet most mislike it . And considering with my selfe that your right to the Crowne came onely by O Catholikes , and was ancienter then the Schisme , which would very faine haue vtterly extinguished it , and that both your P disposition by nature , your amitie with Catholike Princes , your speeches , and your proclamations did at the beginning , all tend to peace and vnitie , I hoped that this endeuour of mine to enforce Catholike Religion , at the least as farre as the Common prayer Booke and Catechisme would giue leaue , should be well accepted of your MAIESTIE , and bee as an introduction vnto farther peace and vnitie with the Church of Rome . G. H. 9. O His MAIESTIES right to the Crowne is double ▪ the one from his mother lineally descending of the first match of the Ladie Margaret daughter to Henrie the VII . and sister to Henrie the VIII . Kings of England , with Iames the fourth King of Scotland , his MAIESTIES great Grandfather , who though she imbraced that Religion in which shee was brought vp , being neuer acquainted with any other , yet as his Maiesty obserueth in his Monitorie Preface to the Christian Princes , [ shee disliked some of the superstious Ceremonies , and abhorred those new opinions , which the Iesuits call Catholike . ] His second right aboue any other pre●endor was from his father ▪ descended of the second match of the sayd Ladie Margaret with Archibald Douglas , Earle of Angush , being brought vp in Q. Elizabeths Court , whose father the Duke of Lenox professing the reformed religion , as well appeared by his practise in his life , in receiuing the Sacrament after the manner of the reformed Churches , and by the confession of his faith in the hearing of many ministers at his death , in all likelihood his Maiesties father himselfe should be that way affected , though Cardinall Bellarmine vpon the relation of I know not whom , would faine haue it otherwise . And whereas you say that schisme would faine haue extinguished his Maiesties right , it is well knowen , that those whom you call schismatikes , were the chiefe instruments vnder God to preserue his Maiesties not onely right , but life ; against the fury of some , whom you call Catholikes , both before his mothers death , and since . P From his Maiesties progenitors , you come to his owne disposition by nature ▪ his amity with Catholike Princes , his speaches , his Proclamations , which all tended at the beginning ( you say ) to peace and vnitie : True indeed it is that his Maiestie by nature is disposed to mercy , his amitie with Christian Princes argues his charitie , and heroical ingenuitie , voide of ielousie & suspition , euen where occasiō may seem to be giuen , his speaches and Proclamations were not bloody ; yet all this could not serue your turne , as a sufficiēt warrant to endeauor a peace with the Church of Rome in matters of religion : no more then a league with the great Turke for traffike should giue occasion of ioyning with him in Mahometisme : but had you withall with the other eye reflected a little backe vpon his Maiesties education from his very Cradle , the choice of his aliance in mariage , his counsel to his sonne touching the matter of religion in the first booke of his Basilicon Doron , his exposition published vpon the 7. 8. 9. and 10. verses of the 20. chapter of the Reuel . or lastly his subscription to the confession of his faith , in the yeere 1581 , assoon as hee came to yeeres of discretion : you would haue had little reason to haue presumed so farre vpon him for hearkening to any peace with the Church of Rome , * as long as her whoredomes and witchcrafts r●maine , ] yet in such abundance , and being offered cure , ( ●hat we might know she is Babylon ) she hath , and still doth wilfully * refuse to be cured . But the sandie ground of the vaine presumption will yet more liuely appeare , if the forme of that subscription bee well considered : in which hauing rehearsed and renounced the chiefe points of Popery , as namely , the Popes vsurped authoritie ouer the Scriptures , ouer the Church , ouer the ciuill Magistrate , and the consciences of men , his deuilish masse , his blasphemous Priesthood , his profane sacrifice for the quicke and the dead , and , in a word , the erroneous and bloody decrees of the Councel of Trent , hee promiseth and sweareth by the great name to the Lord God , to perseuere in that faith , and to defend it all the dayes of his life , to the vtmost of his power , vnder paine of all the Curses contained in the Law , and the danger both of bodie and soule , in the fearefull day of iudgement : and further straightly chargeth and commandeth all his officers and ministers , to make the same subscription themselues , and to take it of others vnder their charge , and lest we should thinke that arriuing to riper age hee altered his iudgement , in his instructions to his sonne , he giues vs this assurance , As for the particular points of religion ( saith hee ) I neede not to dilate them , I am no hypocrite ; follow my footesteps , and your owne present education therein . B. C. 10. But when after my long hope I at the last did plainely perceiue that God for our sinnes , had suffered the deuill , the athour of dissension , so farre to preuaile , as partly by the furious practise of some desperate Catholikes , and partly by the 1 fiery suggestions of all 2 violent Puritans , hee had 3 quite diuerted that peaceable and temperate course which was hoped for , and that I must now either alter my iudgement , which was impossible , or preach against my conscience , which was vntolerable ; Lord , what anxietie and distraction of soule did I suffer day & night ! what strife betwixt my iudgement , which was wholly for the Q peace and vnitie of the Church , and my affection which was wholly to enjoy the R fauour of your Maiesty , and the loue of my friends , and Countrey : this griefe of soule now growing desperate , did still more and more increase the infirmities of my body : and yet I was so loth to become a professed Catholike , with the displeasure of your Maiestie , and of all my honourable and louing friends , as I rather desired to silence my iudgement with the profits and pleasures of the world , which was before mee , then to satisfie it with reconciling my selfe vnto the Catholique Church . But it was Gods will , that euer , as I was about to forget the care of religion , and to settle my selfe to the world among my neighbours , I met with such humours , as I saw by their violence against Catholikes and Catholike religion , were like rather to waken my soule by torture , then bring it asleepe by temper : and therefore I was driven to S recoile to God and to his Church , that I might find rest vnto my soule . G. H. 10. Q Certainely for their sinnes it was , that God suffered them to plot so barbarous a designe , but , for our good , wee hope , if in nothing else , yet in working in vs a stronger hatred of that religion , which produceth such effects , and in awakening vs to beware of the like mischieuous plot againe , if it be possible the like may be plotted : we excuse not our selues , but in this businesse we haue rather tasted of Gods mercy , which we deserued not , then of his iudgements which wee must acknowledge we deserued . R Quis tulerit Gracchos deseditione querentes ? what patient eare can endure him talking of nothing but peace and vnity , who did euer blow the coales of dissention , both in Court and Countrey , as well in the Colledge : where he liued a fellow , as in the Church where he was a Canon . S So it may well be gathered out of your owne words , that the chiefe ground of your griefe was , that you saw your ambitious humour was now crossed , in as much as you could not keepe the olde wont , and withall rise to place of honour . T Your apostasie , and forsaking the faith , and Church , in which you were baptized , you call a recoiling to God and to his Church ; neither will I much stand vpon it , since we know that Antichrist must sit in the Temple of God , bearing himselfe as God. B. C. 11. And yet because I had heard often , that the practise of the Church of Rome was contrary to her doctrine , I thought good to make one triall more , before I resolued , and therefore hauing the aduise of diuerse learned Physitians , to goe to the Spaw for the health of my body , I thought good to make a vertue of necessitie , and to get leaue to goe the rather for the satisfaction of my soule , v hoping to find some greater offence in the seruice of the Church of Rome , then I had done in her bookes , that so I might returne better contented , and persecute and abhorre the Catholikes at home , after I should find them so wicked and idolatrous abroad , as they were in euery pulpit in England affirmed to be . For this purpose before I would frequent their Churches , I talked with such learned men as I could meet withall , and did of purpose dispute against them , and with all the 1 wit and learning I had , both iustifie the doctrine of England established by Law , and obiect their superstition and idolatrie , which I thought they might commit either with the images in the Church , or with the Sacrament of the Altar . G. H. 11. That is a trueth , to auouch the practise of the Church of Rome to be more grosse then her doctrine , ( howbeit we must confesse her doctrine , in many points , to be very grosse ) appeares by this , that the better and wiser sort among themselues , both in their iudgements and writings , condemne many fopperies vsually practised by the people , and winked at by their guides : as their hallowing of graines , and medalls , and beads , by touching some supposed Relique , with opinion of merit , Their praying to fained Saints , and beleeuing forged legends and miracles , Their permitting of publique Stewes , and a Priest to keepe his concubine vnder a yeerely rent , which Espencaeus wisheth were falsly thrust in among the grieuances of Germany , Their setting of certaine rates vpon the most grieuous sinnes before they bee committed , as appeareth in their Taxa Camera , Their allowing of Sanctuaries for wilfull murder , Their ordinary buying and selling of soules in Purgatory , as a man would buy an horse in Smithfield , Lastly the making of ghosts to walke and talke at their pleasure , of images to moue , to weepe , to sweate , to speake when they list , are matters which the modester sort dare not defend , and yet the most impudent cannot well deny ; and surely for mine owne part I must confesse , that nothing so much mooued me to a loathing of their religion , as the beholding of their practise , their whole worship wherein we differ , either consisting in apish ridiculous gestures , or in a meere outward formality , or directed wholly to the greatnesse and gaine of the Clergy . And I haue heard some English gentlemen affirme , that being induced by subtilty of argument to the entertaining of some doctrine of the Church of Rome , the sight of her whorish countenance , and the licentious liues of her chiefe Prelates , euen in Rome it selfe , hath wrought them to a distaste of it , as supposing that a face so artificially painted and composed , could not stand with simplicity of trueth , nor such lewdnesse in liuing with soundnesse in doctrine , which Adrian the VI. by nation a Netherlander , one of the best Popes of latter dayes , acknowledged to be the chiefe cause of so much scandall in the world , and so generall and eager a desire of reformation , as appeares in his instructions to his Nuntio to bee deliuered to the States of Germany assembled in Diet , and recorded by Espencaeus in his Commentary on the first of Titus , and therefore promiseth that he would begin with the reformation of his owne Court , as our Sauiour did with the Temple : but his disposition being discouered , and his intent knowen , order was takē that he should not proceed in that busines , being shortly after cut off by vntimely death . So that if you had so pleased , you might haue found the practise of the Church of Rome much more grosse then her doctrine , aswell for exercise of their religion , as for the liues of their Clergie and religious men : neither needed you to haue vndertaken a voyage to the Spaw for that purpose , in as much as you had made , or at least , might haue made triall therof , at your being in France with an honourable person imployed thither by his Maiesty . In the last words of your Section going before this , you tel vs that you were driuen to recoile to God , and his Church , that you might finde rest to your soule , and here within 10. lines you tell vs ▪ that you got leaue to trauell beyond the Seas , hoping to finde some greater offence in the seruice of that Church , then you had done in her bookes , in her practise , then in her doctrine : and yet both your instances in the Section following , and conference with learned men argue their doctrine , rather then their practise . B. C. 12. Their common answere was , that which by experience I nowe finde to be true , viz. that they doe abhorre all idolatry and superstition , and doe diligently 1 admonish the people to take heed thereof , and they vse images for none other purpose , but onely for a 2 deuout memorie and representation of the Church triumphant , which is most fit to bee made in the time and place of prayer , where after a more speciall maner we should with all reuerence haue 3 our conuersation amongst the Saints in heaven . G. H. 12. It appeares by resting satisfied with this answere , that either your wit and learning were very slender to obiect , hauing , as it seemes , scarce looked into later writers , so much as to vnderstand the state of questions controuersed betweene vs ( which notwithstanding you pretend before in your fifth Section ) or else your will forestalled by preiudice , was very apt to receiue satisfaction with any answere . For what nouice is there so meanely studied in Controuersies , who knowes not that the Church of Rome hath hitherto practised , and still doth professe , that the vse of Images in their Churches , is not onely for memorie and representation , as you affirme , but for worship and adoration : and withall commandeth her Pastours in that Catechisme which they call the Romane , to teach the people so . Nay , which is more , they both giue , and maintaine to bee due , the same adoration to the signe of the Crosse , and neither lesse nor more , then is due vnto Christ himselfe , which opinion ( as a moderate and iudicious writer hath well obserued ) howsoeeuer they endeuour to varnish and qualifie with distinctions , which the Schooles in speculation haue boulted out , pretending that the Crosse , which to outward sence presenteth visibly it selfe alone , is not by them apprehended alone , but hath in their secret surmise or conceit , a reference to the person of our Lord Iesus Christ ; so that the honour , which they ioyntly doe to both , respecteth principally his person , and the Crosse but onely for his persons sake : yet the people not accustomed to trouble their braines with so nice and subtill differences in the exercise of religion , are apparantly no lesse insnared by adoring the Crosse , then the Iewes by burning incense to the Brasen serpent , and in actions of this kinde , we are more to respect what the greatest part of men are commonly prone to conceiue , then what some fewe mens inuention can deuise in construction of their owne particular meanings . His Maiesties owne wordes to this purpose are excellent and worthy obseruation . [ But for worshipping either of them sayth hee , speaking of Reliques or Images , ) I must account it damnable Idolatry , I am no Iconomachus , I quarrell not the making of images , either for publike decoration , or mens priuate vses : but ▪ that they should be worshipped and prayed vnto , or any holinesse attributed vnto them , was neuer knowen of the ancients : and the Scriptures are so directly , vehemently , and punctually against it , as I wonder what braine of man , or suggestion of Sathan , durst offer it to Christians : and all must be salued with nice Philosophicall distinctions : as , Idolum nihil est , and they worship forsooth the Images of things in being , and the Image of the true God , but the Scripture forbiddeth to worship the image of any thing that God created : It was not a nihil then that God forbade onely should bee worshipped , neither was the Brasen serpent , nor the body of Moses a nihil , and yet the one was destroyed , and the other hidden , for eschewing of Idolatrie : yea , the image of God himselfe is not onely expresly forbidden to be worshipped , but euen to be made . The reason is giuen , that no eye euer saw God : and how can wee paint his face , when Moses , the man that euer was most familiar with God , neuer saw but his backe parts ? Surely since hee cannot bee drawen to the view , it is a thankelesse labour to marre it with a false representation ; which no Prince , nor scarce any other man would be contented with , in their owne pictures . Let them therefore that maintaine this doctrine , answere it to Christ at the latter day , when hee shall accuse them of Idolatrie , and then I doubt , if hee will bee payed with such nice Sophisticall distinctions . ] Hitherto his Maiestie , then which , I see not what could bee to this point more fully and cleerely spoken . B. C. 13. And for the blessed Sacramēt , they do not worship the Accidents which they see , but the Substance which they beleeue : and surely if Christ be there truely & really present , ( as your Maiestie seemeth to graunt hee is ) hee is as much to bee worshipped as if wee saw him with our bodily eyes : neither is there any more Idolatry in the one then in the other . If our blessed Sauiour himselfe should visibly appeare in person , as hee was vpon the earth , Iewes and Infidels would hold it for Idolatry to worship him , and would crucifie him againe , and so would all heretikes also , who refuse to worship him in the Sacrament where hee is really present . G. H. 13. You tell vs , that the people doe not worship the accidents which they see , but the substance which they see not : but the question is , whether they rightly beleeue the substance of Christs body to lie hidden , and as it were buried vnder those Accidents ? which I am sure Saint Augustine ( on whom you so much relie ) is so farre from defending , or else the adoration of Images before mentioned , that in diuerse places hee maintaineth the cleare contrarie to both . And to grant that after the words of Consecration pronounced , the bodie of Christ is there folded or kneaded vp in a bodily maner , yet whether the Priest that pronounceth them , be rightly Ordered , and if hee be , whether hee pronounce them with the intent that the Church intends , they may iustly make a doubt , and consequently a question , whether their worship bee idolatrous or no : for in such cases by confession of all , in stead of Christs bodie , they worship the bread : for our parts , wee constantly beleeue him to be in heauen , and not in the bread , whereas we make a iust doubt whether a great part of them , who beleeue him to be in the bread ▪ doe with like constancie beleeue that hee is in heauen . You further adde that if he be truely and really present ( as his MAIESTIE seemeth to graunt ) he is as much to be worshipped , as if wee saw him with our bodily eyes . But indeed it is not the seeing of him with our bodily eyes , that makes the matter , or giues occasion of worshipping , for then a blind man could not worship him at all , nor a seeing man in the darke ; but the beleeuing of him to be present in a bodily manner . Wee beleeue him then with his MAIESTIE ( it being Caluins opinion expressed in the very selfe same termes ) to be truely and really present ; but in a manner Sacramentall , not bodily , and consequently not to bee worshipped there , as being not wrapped vp vnder the accidents of bread , but triumphing in heauen . And here by your leaue how submissiuely soeuer you would seeme in other places to carrie your selfe towards his Maiestie , you make bold to put the title of Heretike vpon him , and to ranke him among no better then ●ewes and Infidels : But our iust defence is , that after the way which you call Heresie , we giue more true and lawfull honour to our blessed Sauiour then you , casting all that religious worship which you giue to the blessed Virgin , to Angels , to Saints , to the bread in the Eucharist , to Images , to Reliques , to the Crosse ▪ and all that opinion of Merit , of Supererogation , and Satisfaction , which you ascribe either to your selues , or others , wholy and solely vpon him , either as God , or as Man , or as Mediatour betwixt God and Man : onely wee denie to giue that honour to his Image , or the bread in the Eucharist , which is as essentially due to him , as to them vndue . B. C. 14. After diuers other obiections 1 not so much because I was not , as be cause I desired not to be satisfied , I came to the Popes supposed pride and tyrannie ouer Kings and Princes , and tolde them of the most horrible Treason intended and practised by Catholikes against your MAIESTIE , which hath not yet beene iudicially condemned by the Church of Rome . They all seemed to 2 abhorre the fact , as much as the best Subiests in the world , and much more to fauour and defend the authoritie of Kings and Princes then Heretikes doe . And they sayed that although your Maiestie were out of the Church , yet they doubted not but if 3 complaint were made in a iudiciall proceeding , that fact should be iudicially condemned . In the meane time it was sufficient 4 that all Catholike writers did cōdemne it , and that the Pope by his Breue had condemned it , exhorting the Catholikes of England to all Christian patience and obedience , and as for any 5 other authoritie or superioritie of the Pope , then such as is spiritual and necessary for the vnity of the Church , I haue met with none that doe stand vpon it . G. H. 14. You well say they seemed to abhorre the fact , it being of the nature of those whereof Tacitus speakes , Quae nunquam laudantur nisiperacta , which are neuer commended till they are ended , had it taken effect according to their designes , for the setting vp of their Religion among vs , it had vndoubtedly bin recorded a most happie and fortunate successe , which now by abortion onely and miscariage , is stiled an horrible Treason . And if they defend the authoritie of Kings and Princes , much more then they , whom they call Heretikes , I would faine know how it comes to passe , that more of those Princes w●om you call Catholikes , permit within their Dominions the publike exercise of Religion to those Heretikes , then the contrarie . Surely in my iudgement it is an euident argument , that Christian Sta●es conceiue reason to bee more iealous of the one , then of the other , neither is the reason farre to be sought , ●ince the one acknowledgeth no Supreme forreine power which the other doth : but the Pope ( you say ) condemned the Powder-plot by his Breue . I much desire to see that Breue of the Popes which condemnes it . I suppose it is most like to be found on the backside of Constantins donation , as an Ambassador of Venice told the Pope touching his right to the Adriatique Sea , or we may say of it , Breuis esse laboro obscurusfio , hee is so briefe and obscure in it , as we can find no such matter . Two Breues of Clements I remember I haue heard of for the withstanding of his Maiesties entrance to the Crowne , and two others of Paulus V. against the taking of the oath of allegiance ( which I marueile M. Doctour neuer vouchsafed so much as once to remember through his Letter ) but any against the Powder-plot , I cannot call to minde I haue seene , or so much as heard of . Lastly wheras you beare vs in hand , that the Popes fauourites stand vpon none other authoritie for their Master , then such as is spirituall and necessary for the vnity of the Church , I guesse their meaning to be Bellarmines [ indirect power in temporals , or temporall power in ordine as spiritualia , in relation to spirituall dueties , ] which is in trueth vpon the matter , as much as can be demanded by them , and more then must be granted by vs ; it reaching to the deposition of Princes from their thrones , and the disposition of their Crownes , when his Holinesse shall iudge it fit for the vnity of the Church , as well appeared in his Buls , both against King Henry the father , and Queene Elizabeth the daughter . And thus farre Cardinall Perron that peaceable man , and your great Patron , expressed himselfe in the last assemblie of the three estates of France , for which the Pope gaue him , and the rest of the Clergy , who stucke to him in that businesse , as great thankes , as if they had saued Saint Peters shippe from sinking : both the Cardinall and the Pope supposing as it seemes , [ that those sparkes flew into France from the fire of England . ] howsoeuer sure it is they were quenched by the water of Tyber . B. C. 15. So that whereas my 1 hope was that by finding out the 2 corruptions of the Church of Rome , I should grow further in loue with the Church of England , and ioyfully returne home , and by inueighing against the Papists , both enioy my present preferments , and obtaine more and more , I saw the matte● was like to fall out cleane contrary . It is true indeed that there are many corruptions● in all States ; God hath not his wheat field in this world wherein the deuill hath no tares growing , and there are not tares 3 more ranke then those that grow among the wheat : for optimi corruptio pessima , and where grace aboundeth , if it be contemned , there sinne aboundeth much more . But seeing my reading and experience hath now taught me , that the trueth of Christian Religion taught and practised at this day in the Church of Rome , and all the obedient members thereof , is the very same in 4 substance which was pre●igured and prophesied from the beginning of the world , perfected by CHRIST himselfe , deliuered to his Apostles , and by them and their Successours perpetually and vniuersally practised vntill this day , without any W substantiall alteration , and that the new religion in X England wherein it doth differ , hath no ground , but either the pleasure of the Prince and Parliament , or the common crie and voyce of the people , nor no constancie or agreement with it selfe , what should I now doe ? It is not in my power not to know that which I doe know , nor to doubt of that which I haue spent so much time , and taken so much paines , and bestowed so much cost , and made so many trials to find . And I know if I should yeeld to be reconciled to the Church , I should be in this world in all likelihood 5 vtterly vndone , and which grieued me more , I should bee reiected of your Maiestie my most redoubted Lord and Master , and despised by all my deare friends and louers in England . G. H. 15. W The Church of Rome holds indeed the substance of Christian Religion in profession , but yet by consequence shakes the foundation of it , as it holds the death of Christ to be satisfactory for sinne , and yet adding thereunto her owne meritorious satisfaction consequently by the latter , she ouerthrowes the former , for [ * If righteousnesse be by the Law , then Christ died without a cause : ] and in reason impossible it is , if traditions be held of equall valew with the Scriptures , for the constituting of substantiall points , but that in short time there should ensue a substantiall alteration , and he that knowes not that the Church of Rome holds many things now , as parts of the Catholike faith , which it helds not in former ages , knowes little what hath bene anciently held , or now is . X If by the religion of England you vnderstand that , which is by Law established ) as in cōmon construction you cannot otherwise be vnderstood , ) you cōdemne your selfe out of your owne mouth , in as much as you acknowledge before , that the religion established by law in England , was the same ( saue onely it was somewhat defectiue ) which now is , and euer had beene held in the Catholike Church : and yet here you say , it hath no ground , but the pleasure of the Prince and Parliament , wheras in trueth we build vpon the Rocke of the Scriptures , but you vpon the sand of traditions , and which of vs hath the sounder foundation , I appeale no farther , then reason it selfe to iudge . You as though you were not yet [ * dead from the ordinances of the world , burden your selues with traditions , as touch not , taste not , handle not , which all perish with the vsing and are after the commandements and ▪ doctrines of men : but we haue a most sure word of the Prophets , taking heede thereto ] according to S. Peters counsell , [ * as to a light that shineth in a darke place , ] and as our ground is sure ; so is our agreement constant , and vniforme in all points materiall and necessary to saluation : whereas in the building of your tower of Babel , such diuersitie of languages is heard , that there is hardly any exposition of Scripture , or point in controuersie , which hath not bene , or is called into question , either directly or by consequent , by some that liued and died in that Church , which you call Catholike , as will easily appeare to him , who shall turne ouer the volumes of of Cardinall Bellarmine , which is the true reason , as I suppose , that his workes are not allowed to bee read of all , but of publike professours , and such others as haue speciall permission from their Superiours . B. C. 16. These were my thoughts at the Spaw : which did so vexe and 1 afflict my soule , as that the waters could doe my body no good at all , but rather much hurt ; neuerthelesse I 2 auoided the company of Catholikes , abstained from the Church , and did both dispute and write against the Church of Rome , as occasion was offered . I still hoped that time would giue better counsell , and therefore resolued to goe from the Spaw to Heidelberge , to doe my duetie there ; in the meane time , I thought with my selfe , it may be , God hath mooued his Maiesties heart to 3 peace and reconciliation , I knowe his disposition was so in the beginning , and I remember M. Casaubon told me , when I 4 brought him out of France , that his errand was nothing else but to mediate peace betweene the Church of Rome and the church of England . Therefore I thought , before I would submit my selfe to the Church of Rome , I would write vnto M. Casaubon such a letter as he might shew vnto your Maiestie , containing such conditions as I thought might satisfie your Maiestie , if they were performed by the Church of Rome . The copie of which letter is too long here to set down : But when M. Casaubon answered me , that he knew your Maiestie was 5 resolued to haue no societie with the Church of Rome , vpon any condition what soeuer , and that it would be my vndoing if those my letters should come to your Maiesties hands , or of those that bare the sway , I began to despaire of my returne into England , vnlesse I would ouerthrow both the health of my bodie and the quiet of my minde , and either vtterly damne mine owne soule , and greatly indanger not onely my liuing and credit , but my 6 life it selfe also , by reason of your Maiesties displeasure , and the seueritie of the Statutes made and in force against Catholikes and Catholike Religion . G. H. 16. The better counsell , which you expected , and held you in suspense , was in all likelihood so●●●●ewes of a Bishopricke , or a Deanry , for the quieting of your perplexed thoughts : and therefore it may be thought , you resolued to goe to Heidelberge to doe your duetie there , that so you might procure letters of recommendation ; for otherwise I cannot imagine what errand you should haue thither , being scarcely knowen ( for any thing I can learne ) to the Prince Palatine , or the Princesse , except it were out of the like gadding humor , as you had of going into Scotland , as being publikely imployed , though it had been vpon your owne priuate charge . What his Maiesties disposition in the affaires of religion might well bee presumed to bee at his first entrance , if we should iudge by reason , & not by affection , I haue already touched in the 9. Section of this chapter , so far as I presumed it might suffice to content any reasonable man : yet for further satisfaction ( because you harpe still vpō the same string , and presse the same point afresh , I will relate his Maiesties own words touching that businesse , as hee vttered them in Parliament , the first day of the first Parliamēt of his Maiesties reigne . ●As for mine owne profession ( saith he ) you haue me your head now amongst you , of the same Religion that the bodie is of , as I am no stranger to you in Blood , no more am I a stranger to you in Faith , or in the matters concerning the house of God : and although this my profession bee according to my education , wherein I thanke God I sucked the milke of Gods trueth with the milke of my nurse , yet doe I here protest vnto you , that I would neuer for such a conceite of constancie , or other preiudicate opinion , haue so firmely kept my first profession , if I had not found it agreeable to all reason , and to the rule of my conscience : and againe in the next leafe , for the part of the Clerickes , I must directly say and affirme , that as long as they maintaine one speciall point of their doctrine , and another point of their practise , they are no way sufferable to remaine in this Kingdome . Their point of Doctrine is , that arrogant and ambitious Supremacie of their he●● the Pope , wherby he not only claimes to be spirituall head of all Christians , but also to haue an Imperiall ciuill power ouer all Kings and Emperours , dethroning , and decrowning Princes with his foot as pleaseth him , and dispensing and disposing of all Kingdomes and Empires at his appetite . The other point which they obserue in continuall practise is , the Assassinates and Murders of Kings , thinking it no sinne ; but rather a matter of saluation to doe all actions of rebellion and hostilitie against their Soueraigne Lord , if he be once our sed , his Subiects discharged of their fidelitie , and his Kingdome giuen a prey by that three Crowned Monarch , or rather Monster their head , and a litle after , hauing wished it would please God to make him one of the instruments for effecting a generall Christian Vnion in Religion , if they would leaue and be ashamed of such new and grosse corruptions of theirs , as themselues cannot maintaine nor denie to be worthy of reformation , he turneth his speach againe to the Papists vnder his dominions , willing them to bee admonished , that they presume not too farre vpon his lenitie , because ( saith hee ) I would be lothe to bee thought a Persecutor , as thereupon to thinke it lawfull for them daily to increase their number and strength in this Kingdome , whereby if not in my time , at least in time of my posteritie , they might bee in hope to erect their Religion againe . No let them assure themselues , that as I am a friend to their persons , if they bee good Subiects , so am I a vowed enemie , and doe denounce mo●tall warres to their errours , and that as I would bee sorie to bee driuen by their ill behauiour from the protection and conseruation of their bodies and liues , so I will neuer cease as farre as I can , to tread downe their errours and wrong opinions : for I could not permit the increase and growing of their Religion , without first betraying of my selfe and mine owne Conscience , secondly , this whole Isle , aswell the part I am come from , as the part I remaine in , in betraying their liberties , and reducing them to the former slauish yoke , which both had casten off , before I came amongst them : and thirdly the libertie of the Crowne in my posteritie , which I should leaue againe vnder a new slauerie , hauing found it left free to mee by my Predecessours , and therefore would I wish all good Subiects , that are deceiued with that corruption : First , if they find any beginning of instinction in themselues of knowledge and loue to the Trueth , to foster the same by all lawfull meanes , and to beware of quenching the spirit that worketh within them ; and if they can find as yet no motion tending that way , to bee studious to reade and conferre with learned men , and to vse al such meanes as may further their resolution , assuring themselues ( which by the way is worth our obseruation ) that as long as they are disconformable in Religion from vs , they cannot be but halfe my Subiects , nor be able to do but halfe seruice , and I to want the best halfe of them , which is their soules . And here I haue occasion to speake to you my Lords the Bishops ; for as you my Lord of Durham said very learnedly to day in your Sermon ; Correction without instruction is but a tyrannie , so ought you and all the Clergie vnder you to be more carefull , vigilant , and diligent then you haue beene to winne soules to God , aswell by your exemplarie life , as doctrine . And since you see how carefull they are , sparing neither labour , paines , nor extreme perill of their persons to diuert ( the deuill is so busie a Bishop ) you should be the more carefull and wakefull in your charges . Follow the rule prescribed by Saint Paul , Bee carefull to instruct and to exhort , in season and out of season : and where you haue beene any way sluggish before , now waken your selues vp with a new diligence in this point , remitting the successe to God , who calling them at the second , third , tenth , or twelfth houre , as they are alike welcome to him , so shall they be to me his lieutenant here . ● Hitherto his Maiestie . Now would any man of common vnderstanding ( Mr. Dr. excepted ) from hence gather , or thinke it gatherable , that his Maiestie had a disposition at his entrance to become a Papist , or to tolerate the exercise of Poperie , or to be reconciled to Rome , or to submit himselfe and his Realmes to the yoke of the Bishop thereof ? if these or the like inferences may from so many and plaine words , so many and forcible arguments to the contrarie , be deduced , I must confesse I know not what belongs to Logike : and for other passages in the same speech , which seeme to fauour your cause , you must either iniuriously wrest them from the authors meaning , or make them by reasonable construction sutable to these . Howsoeuer , your selfe being a Churchman , and one of those whom he sharpely taxeth , [ for changing their coats through curiositie , affectation of noueltie , or discontentment in their priuate humours , ] cannot possibly be ranked amongst them [ to whom as to minds only retaining the liquor they first dranke in , out of his speciall clemencie he proposeth more fauourable conditions ] and yet among these too , he hath since discouered an vnnaturall disposition , whom he hoped to find by moderate & gentle vsage , in the matter of naturall subiection , quiet and well minded men , ] and therefore no marueile if his Maiestie be since more exasperated , and farther off from any reconciliation with that Religion then before . But Mr. Casaubon , you say , tolde you that his errand hither was nothing else , but to mediate peace betweene the Church of Rome , and the Church of England . It is certainely false that Mr. Casaubons errand was by his Maiestie intended to b● such , and most vnlikely to be true , that it was by Mr Casaubon so reported to you , considering his direct and expresse writings , both before his comming ouer , and since , against the chiefe Patrons and controuersed points of the Church of Rome , and among the rest , in the conclusion of his Epistle to Cardinall Perron , where hee assures him from his Maiesties , mouth , and in his name , [ that his constant purpose and full resolution was , as long as the Church of Rome yeelded not to antiquity and trueth , to entertaine no society with her at all , which you might haue read before your departure , and spared the paines of writing to M. Casaubon , whome that I may yet more fully cleare from this imputation , being not able now to speake for himselfe , I will here set downe his Letter , written with his owne hand to my Lords Grace of Canterbury , vpon this very occasion , in which hee termes the report no better then the slander of a wicked Apostate . Illustrissimo & Reuerendissimo Praesuli , Domino Cantuariensi , totius Angliae Primati , & Domino meo , summa obseruantia colendo . Illustrissime Reuerendissime Domine , HEri quum essem in Aula , ostendit mibi Regia Maiestas librum à Carerio sibi missum , in quo mira quaedam de me narrantur ; puto Serenissimum Regem tuae Reuerentiae illa ostendisse . Ego Dei gratia puto me sic vixisse , & priusquam in hoc regnum venirem , & postquā veni in Angliam , vt curare non debeam quid perditus apostata de●me garriat aut scribat ; apparet ipsum grauissim● iratum esse mihi propter Epistolam quam illi scripsi , vt ab hoc insano consilio eum reuocarem : propterea id agit vt meum nomen apud Regiam Maiestatem & tuam Reuerentiam infamet . Sedspero meliora & de Regesapientissimo , & de te ( Illustrissime ) Presul ; apud quem si mihi opus esse apologia crederem , omnia omisissem , vt tuae Reuerentiae praesens me purgarem . Sed non puto adeo infoeliciter mecum agi , vt in●andi apostatae calumniae aliquid apud te contra existimationem meam valeant . Si iusseris , statim adero , et ad omnia tuae Reuerentiae satisfaciam . Interim quam sim occupatus in colophone imponendo operimeo , narrabit tuae Reuerentiae Vederburnus noster , verè pius iuuenis , & tua beneuolentia , Presul ( Illustriss . ) non indignus . Deus immortalis te seruet Ecclesiae suae . In Musaeo XIV . Kal. Ian. MDCXIII . Tuae Illustriss . Reuerentiae obseruantissimus cultor , ISA. CASAVBONVS . Right Reuerend , & my Gracious Lord , YEsterday being at Court , the KINGS MAIESTIE shewed mee a booke sent him from Carier , wherein certaine strange things are reported of me . I thinke his MAIESTIE hath shewed them vnto your Grace . I hope I haue by the grace of GOD so liued , both before I came into this Kingdome , and since I came into England , that I ought not to care what a forlorne Apostate pratleth , or writeth of me . It appeares he is very angry with me for a letter I wrote him , to reclaime him from that mad course : thereupon he goes about to traduce me to the KINGS MAIESTY and your Grace . But I hope better both of that most wise KING , and of you most renowned Prelate . Vnto whom if I thought there were need of Apologie , I would , laying all other things aside , in person purge my selfe vnto your Grace . But my case , I trust , is not so vnhappy , that the slanders of a lewd Apostate should be of any force with you against my reputation . If you command , I will forthwith repaire vnto you , and satisfie your Grace vnto the full . In the meane time , how busily I am occupied about the conclusion of my worke , my friend Vederburne , a very religious yong man , and not vnworthy of your Graces fauor , can shew your Grace . God Immortall preserue you vnto his Church . From my study , Decemb. 19. 1613. Your Graces most respectiue Obseruer , ISA. CASAVBON . And that it may appeare how auerse hee was from vnion with that Church , I will hereunto adde a former Letter , written likewise to my L. Grace of Canterbury , touching the same businesse before he was thus prouoked by D. Carier , vpon occasion of a Letter written to the same effect from the Doctor to him . Illustrissime & Reuerendissime Domine , MItto Reuerentiae Epistolam de quâ inaudiuisti . Ego acceptam Epistolam , vt Regi communicaretur , putaui premendam , neque ostendendam cuiquam mortalium . Non enim possum probare consilium viri illius eruditi qui epistolam scripsit . Quare respondi illi statim , & multis cum illo egi , vt ab eo proposito desisteret . Multas rationes ei attuli cur certò crederem , amentiam esse , aut poti●s furorem , boni aliquid sperare à Romano Phalari ( nam hoc verbo vsus sum ) qui nostra mala , si quae sunt inter nos ridet . Proposui ei ob oculos , quàm essent alieni proceres Romanae Ecclesiae ab omni aequitate ▪ imprimis Bellarminus , de cuius impietate plura ad eum scripsi . Posui illi ante oculos , quanto cum suo periculo patronum Papae videretur agere . Attuli testimonia Matthaei Paris de summâ Angliae infoelicitate , quando Papae Ro. paruit . Addidi exemplum illius Narbonensis , qui nuper ad Ser. Regem similis argumenti librum miserat : me iussum à Rege loqui eum librum detestatum esse , & D. Regem voluisse in latere libri animaduertere . Posthaec quid factum sit Carerio nescio . Hoc ego volui Reuerentiae tuae significatum . Sed expectabam donec ad vrbem redijsses : nam me libri mei editio domi tenet . Sunt alia quaedam grauia de quibus acturus sum cum tuâ Reuerentiâ post vnum aut alterum diem , Deo volente . Qui te seruet Illustrissime Domine . Londini , VIII . Eid . Sept. MDCXIII . Tuae Reuerentiae obseruantiss . cultor IS . CASAVBONVS . Right Reuerend , & my Gracious Lord , I Send vnto your Grace the Letter whereof you haue heard . The Letter was sent me with intent it should be communicated vnto the King , but I thought it fitter to bee suppressed , and to be shewed vnto none . For I cannot approue the drift of that learned man who wr●te the Letter . Wherefore I answered him for●●with , and with many words aduised him to desist from that purpose . I brought him many reasons why I certainely beleeued , it was folly , or rather frensie to hope for any good from the Romish Phalaris , ( for that very terme I vsed ) who laughs at our euils , if there be any amongst vs. I laid before his eyes how auerse the Peeres of the Romish Church are from all equitie : specially Bellarmine , of whose impiety I wrote at large vnto him . I set before his eyes with how great danger to himselfe he seemed to become the Popes Patron . I alledged testimonies of Matthew Paris of the great misery of England when it was vnder the Popes obedience . I added the example of that Narbonois , who of late sent vnto the Kings MAIESTY a booke of the like argument : that being commanded by the KING to say my mind , I professed my detestation thereof , and that it was his MAIESTIES will to haue some animaduersions set in the margent of the booke . After which , what became of Carier , I know not . This I thought good to signifie vnto your Grace : but I expected vntill you were returned vnto the Citie : for the publishing of my booke stayes meat home . I haue other weighty matters whereof to aduise with your Grace within this day or two , God willing , who preserue you my gracious Lord. London . Sept. 6. 1613. Your Graces most respectiue Obseruer , ISA. CASAVBON . B. C. 17. There is a statute in England made by King Henry the VIII . to make him supreame head of the Church in spirituall and Ecclesiasticall causes , which Statute enioynes all the subiects of England , on paine of death , to beleeue and to sweare they doe beleeue that it is true : and yet all the world knowes , if King Henry the VIII . could haue gotten the Pope to diuorce Queene Katherine , that he might marrie Anne Bullen , that Statute had neuer been made by him : and if that title had not enabled the King to pull downe Abbeys , and religious houses , and giue them to Lay men , the Lords and Commons of that time would neuer haue suffered such a Statute to be made . This Statute was continued by Queene Elizabeth to serue her owne turne , and it is confirmed by your Maiestie to satisfie other men , and yet your Maiestie yeeldeth the Church of Rome to be the 1 mother Church ; and the Bishop of Rome to bee the chiefe Bishop or 2 Primate of all the Westerne Churches : which I doe also verely beleeue , and therfore I doe verely thinke he hath , or ought to haue some spirituall iurisdiction in England , and although in mine yonger dayes the 3 fashion of the world made me sweare , as other did , ( for which I pray God forgiue mee ) yet I euer doubted , and I am now resolued , that no 4 Christian man can take that oath with a safe conscience , neither will I euer take it to gaine the greatest preferment in the world . G. H. 17. The Statute , here intended , can be none other , then the S●tute 26. of H. VIII . Cap. 1. for that is the first Statute that medleth with the Supremacie ; which Statute is , as the Common Lawyers terme it , Statutum declaratiuum , not introductiuum noui iuris : as doth clearely appeare by the Preamble , which hath these words : [ Albeit the Kings Maiestie iustly and rightfully is and ought to bee taken and accepted supreame head of the Church of England , and so is recognized by the Clergie in their Conuocation , yet neuerthelesse for corroboration and confirmation thereof , Be it enacted , that the King shall bee taken , and accepted Supreme head , &c. ] So that the Doctor is fowly mistaken to say that there was a Statute made by K. Henry the VIII . to make him Supreme head : for it was his ancient right that made him so , and it was his Clergie that had acknowledged him to be so , before the making of this Stat●te ; nay the very phrase and letter of this Statute it selfe doeth purposely renounce the power of making , and assumes onely the authority of confirming . Whereby it is cleare that Henrie VIII . made not a statute to make himselfe Supreme in Ecclesiasticall causes , as Mr. Doctor affirmeth ; but to confirme those Statutes and Rights , which his noble Progenitors as iu●tly challenged to belong to their Crown , as the Bishops of Rome vniustly pretended to be annexed to their Myter . And where he sayes , that the Statute which ( according to his vnderstanding made him Supreme head ) did also enioyne the Subiect to beleeue and sweare it t● bee true , it is manifest , that there is not any mention at all of any oath in that Statute : but it is true indeede , that in the 28. of Henry VIII . chap. 10. there is an oath of Supremacie ordeined , the refusall whereof by some certaine persons enioyned by that Act to take it , was made high Treason . And herein againe is the Doctour deceiued , nay which is worse seeketh to deceiue others ; for onely some certaine persons were bound by that Statute to take the oath , and not all the Subiects of England , as he falsely surmiseth . Anno 35. Henry VIII . cap. 1. the oath of Supremacie ordeined by 28. was repealed , and a new forme of oath prescribed and extended to more persons , but neuer to all in generall . The same Parliament Cap. 3. enioyneth that the stile of Supreme head be receiued and vsed , and this was all that was done by Henry VIII . in the point of Supremacie by way of Statute : So that to say as Master Doctor doth , that all the Subiects in England are bound vpon paine of death to beleeue the Supremacie , is a malicious fiction in two respects : First touching the persons enioyned to take the oath , and lyable to the punishment ; and then againe as touching the offence , for that beliefe alone , which is a secret inclination of the minde knowne onely to God , the searcher of the heart , and not issuable nor tryable by any Law humane , should be made an offence punishable by death ; is in it selfe so absurde , as it cannot but appeare to bee a false imputation to charge our Law-makers therewithall . Lastly , whereas hee sayes that Henry the VIII . would neuer haue made that Statute , if he could haue gotten the Pope to haue diuorced Queene Katherine that he might haue married Anne Boleine it is cleare , and all the world may know , that if King Henry would haue ioyned with Francis the French King in the warre of Naples against Charles the Emperour , the Pope would not haue stucke to haue giuen way to that diuorce : for the better procuring of which Combination hee did not onely referre this Matrimoniall cause to the hearing and determining of his Legates : but gaue Campeius a secret Bull in his bosom , as witnesseth 1 Francis Guicciardin in the 19th Booke of his Historie ( a Catholike in his profession , no man more a reporter of things hee sawe , no man truer , and a creature of the Popes imployed in honourable charges ) the Copie of it is to be seene in 2 Anti-Sanders , dated in the yeere 1527. the 17th of December , and the fifth yeere of Clement the seuenths Popedome , wherein hee infringeth the former 3 dispensatiō , affirming that ( the King could not continue in such Matrimonie without sinne : ) whereupon hee decreed that after the delaration of the nullitie of the former mariage , and the Kings absolution , it should bee lawfull for him to marrie another . This Bull he forbad him to shew to any , saue onely to the King and Cardinall Wolsey , his fellow Commissioner in that businesse : and though openly he commanded him to handle the cause with all expedition , yet secretly hee willed him to protract the time , promising that himselfe would watch an opportunitie to publish the Decree ; so the King and Queene were cited to appeare before them in May following , at which time after some debating of the cause , they protracted the sentence till the beginning of August , and after many delayes , finding that King Henry could not by hope of the diuorce bee drawen to side with the French , the Pope commanded Campeius to burne his Bull , and to returne home : whereby it appeares that King Henry might easily haue had the nullitie of his mariage with Queene Katherine ratified at Rome , without taking the title of Supreme head , if hee would haue yeelded to the Popes conditions . But the Lords , you say , and Commons would neuer haue suffered such a Stat●te to bee made , had not that title inabled the King to pull downe Abbeys and Religious houses and giue them to Lay men . I would faine know then what mooued the Bishops to giue way to it , who had no share in that diuision , yet had they with the consent of the Clergie , passed it in Conuocation , before it was so much as proposed in Parliament , and for the Commons a very little share fell out to their parts . And if ●he assuming of that title were indeed so needfull ( as you pretend ) for the supressing of those houses : by what authoritie did Cardinall Wolsey dissolue some , and the King by his example more , before that title was by him publikely assumed ? Now for Queene Elizabeth , it is true that she reuiued those Statutes of Supremacie enacted by her father , and repealed by her sister , but not without diuers exceptions , as may appeare by the bookes ; in so much as a new forme of Oath was established by her , which is the Oath at this day in force , the refusall of which vpon a second offering by such as stand conuicted of a former refusall , is by the Statute of 5● Eliz. cap. 1. made high Treason , and it is none otherwise . Nay further , by an expresse prouiso in that Statute , none are compellable to take the Oath the second time but Ecclesiasticall persons , and some few others , especially named in that Statute , neither doth shee take to her in that or any other Statute the title of Supreme head , but of Gouernour , by which what shee vnderstood , herselfe expressed in her Iniunctions , and her Clergie in their 37. Article confirmed 4 in two seuerall Conuocations , where they thus speake , [ Where wee attribute to the Queenes Maiestie the chiefe Gouernment , by which title we vnderstand the mindes of some slanderous folkes to be offended , wee giue not to our Princes the ministring either of Gods word , or of the Sacraments , the which thing the Iniunctions also lately set foorth by Elizabeth our Queene , doe most plainely testifie : but that onely prerogatiue which we see to haue beene giuen alwayes to all godly Princes in holy Scripture by God himselfe , that is , th●t they should rule all estates and degrees committed to their charge by God , whether they be Ecclesiasticall or Temporall , and restraine with the ciuill sword , the stubburne and euill doers , ] neither doe I see how Osorius in his Epistle to her can be interpreted to affoord her lesse , where he professeth , that all Kings are Pro parte suaiuris diuini Vicarij , Vicars of Gods Law in their places . From Queene Elizabeth you passe to his Maiestie , and tell him , that he confirmed the same Statute to satisfie other men , arguing therein his Maiestie of great weakenesse , either as being not able to iudge what he did , or as being caried by others against his owne iudgement . But that his MAIESTIE did it aduisedly , and rather to satiffie himsel●e , then others , appeares by this , that hee was inuested with the same power , which that Statute giues him , before his receauing of the Crowne of England , and since himselfe with his owne penne hath thus both iustified and 5 explained it [ if these examples ( saith he ) sentences , title and prerogatiues , and innumerable other in the olde and new Testament , doe not warrant Christian Kings , within their owne dominions , to gouerne their Church aswell as the rest of their people , in being Custodes vtriusque tabulae , not by making new Articles of Faith ( which is the Popes office as I said before ) but by commaunding obedience to bee giuen to the word of God , by reforming the Religion acc●rding to his prescribed will , by assisting the Spirituall power with the Temporall sword , by reforming of corruptions , by procuring due obedience to the Church , by iudging and cutting off all friuolous questions , and Schismes ( as 6 Constantine did ) and finally by making decorum to be obserued in euery thing , and establishing orders to be obserued in all indifferent things , for that purpose , which is the onely intent of the Oath of Supremacie ; if this office of a King ( I say ) doe not agree with the power giuen him by Gods word , l●t any indifferent man , void of passion , iudge . ] But yet his Maiestie ( you say ) yeeldeth the Church of Rome to be the Mother Church , and the Bishop of Rome to bee the chiefe Bishop or Primate of the Westerne Churches . Indeed his Maiesty in his first speech in his first Parliament , called after his entr●nce to this Kingdome ▪ is pleased to acknowledge the Romane Church to be our Mother Church , this M. Doctour is content to vrge , but to conceale that which he addeth , [ defiled with infirmities and corruptions , as the Iewes were when they crucified Christ , and as I am none enemy ( saith he ) to the life of a sicke man , because I would haue his body purged of ill humours ; no more am I an enemy to their Church , because I would haue them reforme their errours , not wishing their throwing out of the Temple , but that it might be purged and clensed from corruption , otherwise how can they wish vs to enter , if their house bee not first made cleane ? ] Herein Mr Doctour dealing with his Maiesty , as the deuill did with our Sauiour , hee pressed that out of the Psalme which made for himselfe [ * Hee will giue his Angels charge ouer thee ] but suppressed that which made against him [ to keepe thee in all thy wayes ] now if any man farther desire his Maiesties meaning in calling Rome the Mother Church , hee hath fully expressed himselfe in his Premonition , [ Patriarchs ( saith he ) I know were in the time of the Primitiue Church , and I likewise reuerence that institution for orders sake : and amongst them was a contention for the first place . And for my selfe ( if that were yet the question ) I would with all mine heart giue my consent that the Bishop of Rome should haue the first seat , I being a Westerne King would goe with the Patriarch of the West ] whereby it is cleare that his Maiesties meaning was , and is , to yeeld the Bishop of Rome ouer other Westerne Bishops , ( in case they should meet i● Councell , ) a prioritie in sitting , not a superiority in commanding , a primacy or 7 precedency in order , not a supremacie in power , and iurisdiction , it beeing the marke which Mr. Doctour driues at , and from thence labours cunningly but malitiously to inferre , contrary to his Maiesties both minde , and words . I conclude this point with a Reuerend 8 Prelate , [ His Vicarship to Christ must be proued by stronger and plainer euidence then you haue yet shewed , before wee may grant it , and for his Patriarkeship ( saith he ) which you now take hold of , by Gods law he hath nne in this Realme , for ●ixe hundred yeeres after Christ , he had none ; for the last sixe hundred ( as looking to greater matters ) hee would haue none : aboue and against the sw●rd , which God hath ordained , he can haue none , to the subuersion of the faith , and oppression of his brethren : in right reason and equity he should haue none , you must seeke farther for subiection to his tribunall , this land oweth him none . B. C. 18. There is another statute in England made by Queene Elizabeth , and confirmed by your Maiesty , that it is 1 death for any English man to bee in England , being made a Priest by authority deriued , or pretended to bee deriued from the 2 Bishop of Rome . I cannot beleeue that I am a Priest at all , vnlesse I be deriued by authority from Gregory the great , from whence all the Bishops in England haue their being , if they haue any being at all . G. H. 18. The Statute intended is the 27. of Eliz. Cap. 2. which indeed , in the body thereof , hath words sounding to that purpose ; but the sense is malitiously peruerted , and the inference thereupon ; for he that shall reade through that Statute , and consider all the parts , shall clearely perceiue , that therby none other Priests are intended then Popish Priests , made and ordeined by Popish Bishops , and not such as Mr. Doctour was , made in England by any of our Bishops here : Though perhaps it were true , that our Bishops did deriue their first authority from Gregory ( which we do not yeeld vnto , ) considering that Augustine from whom they are pretended to deriue it , was not consecrated by him , but by Aetherius Archbishop of Arles , ( if wee may beleeue our own Venerable Bede ) for the title of the Statute is , An Acte against Iesuites , Seminary Priests , and such other like disobedient persons , and the preamble of the acte hath these words , [ Whereas diuers persons , called or professed Iesuites , Seminary Priests , and other Priests , which haue beene , and fro● time to time are made in the parts beyond the Seas , by or according to the order and rites of the Romish Church , haue of late yeeres commen , and bene sent into England , &c. ] So that if according to the rule [ Praefatio est clauis Statuti , ] we shall interprete the body by the title , or preamble , howsoeuer the wordes in the body of the acte bee somewhat generall , yet what Priests are intended by the Law-makers , is euident enough ; and except M. Doctour were a Priest according to the Order and Rites of the Romish Church , by shauing , anoynting , and imposition of hands by a Popish Bishop , and that since the first yeere of Queene Elizabeth , he needed not to haue feared the danger of the Law. B. C. 19. There is another Statute in like maner made and confirmed , that it is death to bee reconciled by a Catholike Priest to the Church of Rome , I am perswaded that the Church of Rome is our mother Church , and that no man in England can be saued , that continues wilfully out of the visible vnitie of that Church , and therefore I can not chuse , but perswade the people to be reconciled thereunto if possibly they may . G. H. 19. This Statute also is either purposely or ignorantly mistaken , and is not distinct from that following , but are both one , namely 23. Eliz. cap. 1. The title of it is , [ An Acte to retaine the Queenes Maiesties Subiects in due obedience ] and the preamble recites that [ whereas diuers ill affected persons haue practised to withdraw the Queenes Subiects from their naturall allegeance . ] the purueiw of the Acte followeth that [ all persons which shall put in practise to ●bsolue , perswade or withdrawe any of the Queenes subiects from their naturall obedience to her Maiestie ▪ or to withdraw them for that intent , from the religion established , ( and so foorth ) shall be traitours , and the person willingly absolued , or withdrawen , as aforesayd , to be likewise a traitour . ] so that the withdrawing of the Subiect from their naturall obedience , or for that intent , from the religion established , is the offence made treason , and not simple exhorting to the Romish religion , as is alleadged : And yet to speake a trueth , I see not how any exhortation to an absolute submission of the vnderstanding and the will to the Bishop of Romes Iurisdiction , which now is made the onely essentiall forme of that religion , can well be seuered from such an intent . But Rome ( you say ) is the mother Church , and no man in England can bee saued , that continues wilfully out of the visible vnitie of that Church . Where if you terme it the mother Church in that sense that his MAIESTIE doeth , wee imbrace it ; but if your meaning bee , that shee is our mother , either in regard that wee receiued the first life , or still should receiue the nourishment of religion from her , wee denie it ; our nation being first conuerted to the Christian faith by Ioseph of Arimathea , who intombed the Corps of our Sauiour , and lieth himselfe interred at Glastenbury , together with twelue disciples his assistants , where they first preached the Gospel , as Gildas affirmeth in the life of Aurelius Ambrosius , and Malmesbury in the Booke , intituled , The Antiquitie of Glastenbury , written to Henry of Bloys , brother to King Steuen , and Abbot of the same place ; and it is consented vnto by the learned Antiquaries of later times , as namely , Mr. Cambden , Iohn Bale , Matthew Parker , Polydore Virgil , and others , grounding themselues vpon the authoritie of the best approued , and most ancient writers : and withall considering our keeping of Easter , and other Ceremonies were after the fashion of the Easterne Church , and not of the Westerne , at the comming of Austin . I may very well coniecture that our first conuersion to Christian religion was from the Iewes , or Grecians , and not from the Romanes : so that if Rome bee rightly ●ermed o●r mother Church , it must be in regard of later supplies from Eleutherius and Gregory , not of our first Conuersion : howsoeuer the holy Citie being now become an harlot , wee haue no more reason to reuerence her as a mother : but as a strumpet ( till she repent and amend ) to shun●e all vnion with her . S. Paul writing to the whole Church of Rome , and giuing them their due praise for their deuotion and zeale , and entring at last into the reiectiō of the Iewes , for their vnbeliefe he warneth expresly the Romans in these words , [ * Boast not thy selfe against the branches , and if thou boast thy selfe , thou bearest not the roote , but the roote thee . Thou wilt say , the branches were broken off , that I might be graft in , well : through infidelity they are broken off , and thou standest by faith : be not high minded , but feare . For if God spared not the naturall branches , take heed lest he spare not thee . Behold therefore the goodnesse and seuerity of God : toward them which haue fallen , seueritie ; but towards thee goodnesse , if thou continue in his goodnesse ; otherwise thou also shalt bee cut off . ] Now whether the Apostle spake generally to the Gentiles , and inclusiuely to the Romanes , or namely to the Romanes , and proportionably to the rest , it is all one to vs , one of the twaine he must needs . Origen saith vpon these words of Paul , [ I say to you Gentiles . ] Now hee plainely turneth his speach to the Gentiles , but chiefly to those of the citie of Rome that beleeued S. Paul. ] speaking then to the Romanes , no man may except the Romans , and they being included , his admonition to them , if there could bee no danger in them of swaruing from the faith , was vtterly superfluous , and the condition implied ridic●lous , and the commination odious , and the reason friuolous . Now that which S. Paul there threatned , we find come to passe ; so that we cannot , we dare not ioyne hands with her ; nay wee are so farre from beleeuing , that none can bee saued , that continues out of the visible vnitie of that Church : that on the other side , we cōstantly beleeue , that the means to be saued , is to separate our selues from the vnity of that Church , till she separate her selfe from her errors , specially since in your vnderstanding , the continuing in the visible vnity of that Church , is in a manner nothing else , but the acknowledging of the Bishop of Rome to bee the visible head of it : and if none can bee saued without that , what shall become of your honest brethren of the English Clergie ? whom you professe you are so farre from condemning , as you doe account your selfe one of them ? what of so many millions of soules in the Easterne and Westerne Christian Churches , more in number by many degrees , then those that yet continue in that visible vnitie , and better both in life and beliefe , then those who acknowledge it , or the visible head himselfe of it . B. C. 20. There is another Statute in like manner made and confirmed , that it is death to exhort the people of England to Catholike religion , I am perswaded that the religion prescribed and practised by the Church of Rome is the true Catholike religion which I will particularly iustifie from point to point , if God giue time and opportunitie , and therefore I can not choose but perswade the people thereunto . G. H. 20. For the Statute here pretended , I haue already answered that it is none other then a branch of the former : And for your promise of iustifying from point to point the religion prescribed and practised by the Church of Rome , if it be performed , when wee shall see it published , I doubt not but a Confutation will be found as particular and plaine , and more true , then your Iustification : but in the meane time , I cannot but wonder what you can say more herein then hath often been sayd by as earnest , and more learned Proctors of that Church then your selfe ▪ Besides , how comes it to passe you should be suddenly expert , and so peremptorily confident in all the controuersed points , except you were resolued in most of them before your parting hence : I remember Duke Humfrey discouered a notable piece of knauery in a beggar , who pretending blindnesse from his birth , vndertooke to iudge of colours instantly vpon the recouery of his sight ; this your vaine offer to iustifie all points in controuersie presently vpon your breathing of outlandish ayre , cannot but giue vs iust occasiō to suspect the like hyopocrisie . Lastly , if the religion prescribed and practised by the Church of Rome be in all points the only true religion , why would his holinesse permit the exercise of ours with little , or no alteration , as afterward you beare vs in hand , vpon conditions his MAIESTIE , on the other side , would admit of his supremacie , and the Masse . B. C. 21. It may bee these are not all seuerall Statutes ; some of them may bee members of the same , ( 1 for I haue not my bookes about mee to search ) but I am sure all of them doe make such felonies and treasons , as were the greatest vertues in the Primitiue Church , and such , as I must confesse my selfe I cannot choose , if I liue in England , but endeuour to bee 2 guilty of , and then it were easie to finde 3 Puritanes enough to make a iury against me , and there would not want a 4 Iustice of peace to giue sentence , and when they had done , that which is worse then the persecution it selfe , they would all sweare solemnly , that D. Carier was not put to death for Catholike Religion , but for felony and treason , I haue no hope of protection against the cruelty of those lawes , if your Maiesty be resolued vpon no conditions whatsoeuer , to haue society at all , nor no Communion at all with the Church of Rome ; and therefore while the case so stands , I dare not returne home againe . But I cannot be altogether out of 5 hope of better newes before I die , as long as I doe beleeue that the Saints in heauen doe reioyce at the conuersion of a sinner to Christ , and doe know that your Maiesty by you● 6 birth hath so great an interest in the Saints in heauen , as you shall neuer cease to haue , vntill you cease to be the sonne of such a mother , as would reioyce more then all the rest , for your 7 conuersion , and therefore I assure my selfe that shee with all the rest doe pray , that your Maiesty before you die , may bee militant in the Communion of that Church , wherein they are 8 triumphant . And in this hope I am gone before to ioyne my prayers with theirs , in the vnity of the Catholike Church , and doe humbly pray your Maiesty 9 to pardon me for doing that which was not in my power to auoide , and to giue me leaue to liue , where I hope shortly to die , vnlesse I may hope to do your Maiestie 10 seruice , and without the preiudice of any 11 honest man in England , to see some vnity betwixt the Church of England and her mother the Church of Rome . And now hauing declared the meanes of my couersion to Catholike religion , I will briefly also shew vnto you the hopes I haue to doe your Maiesty no ill seruice therein . G. H. 21. It is true indeed that those Statutes which you alledge are not seuerall in themselues , but members of the same . And it appeares well , though you had not professed it , that at the writing hereof you had not your bookes about you , you affirme things vncertaine so confidently , and things certaine so falsly : But you are sure ( you say ) they make such fellonies and treasons , as were the greatest vertues of the Primitiue Church : whereas wee are more sure , that the greatest vertues and fattest sacrifices ▪ and shortest cut to heauen ( as they are now esteemed in the Church of Rome ) were in the Primiti●e Church held none other , but murders , and parricides , and felonies , and treasons [ Thou doest promise ( saith 1 Augustine to Patilian ) that thou wilt reckon many of the Emperours and iudges , which by persecuting you , perished , and concealing the Emperours , thou m●anest two iudges or deputies , why didst thou not name the Emperors of thy Communion ? wert thou afraid to bee accused as guil●y of treason ? where is your courage , which feare not to kill your selues ? ] To say the Emperours perished for persecuting , was treason in his time : in our age you thinke it much , that reproching of Princes as tyrants and heretiques , and aiding the Pope with your perswasions , absolutions , and rebellions to take their Crownes from them , should be punished , or adiudged treason , how beit a certaine trueth it is , that there is no conspiracie so pernitious , and dangerous to the state , as that which is whispered into mens eares , and conueyed into their hearts vpon a sense of deuotion , and outwardly couered with a shew of religion , notwithstanding as true it is that in England none are put to death for Ca●hol●ke religion ▪ no nor for the Romish , which you call Catholike , as hath beene at large iustified in a booke , written by a 2 Peere of the Realme , inti●uled , the defence of the iustice of England , and is verified by his Maiesty in his Apologie for the Oath of Allegiance in the very entrance of his answere to the Popes first Breue , where he not onely cleareth himselfe at large from this imputation , but the late Queene , that blessed defunct Lady ( as he there calleth her ) [ in whose proceedings ( saith he ) who list to compare with an indifferent eye the manifold intended i●uasions against her whole kingdome , the forreine practises , the internall publike rebellions , the priuate plots , and machinations , poysonings , murthers , and all sorts of deuises , dayly set abroach , and all these wares continually fostered and fomented from Rome , together with the continuall corrupting of her Subiects , aswell by temporall bribes , as by faire and spaci●us promises of eternall felicitie , and nothing but booke vpon booke , publikely set foorth by her fugitiues for approbation of so holy d●signes ; who list ( I say ) with an indifferent eye to looke on the one part vpon these infinite and intollerable temptations , and on the other part vpon the iust , yet moderate punishmēt of a part of these hainous offenders , shal easily see that that blessed defunct Lady was as ▪ free from persecution , as th●y shall free these hellish instruments from the honour of Martyrdome ] And again● his Maiestie maintaineth the same in his Premonition to Christian Princes , not farre from the conclusion : [ As for the cause of their punishment , sayth he , ( speaking of Romish Catholikes ) I doe constantly maintaine that which I haue sayd in my Apologie , that no man either in my time , or the late Queenes , euer dyed here for his Conscience : for let him be neuer so deuout a Papist , nay though he professe the same neuer so constantly ; his life is in no danger by the Law , if he breake not out into some outward act expressely against the words of the Law , or , plot some vnlawfull or dangerous practise or attempt : ( Priests and Popish Churchmen onely excepted ) that receiue orders beyond the Seas ; who for the manifold treasonable practises that they haue kindled and plotted in this countrey are discharged to come home againe vnder paine of Treason after their receauing of the sayd orders abroad ; and yet without some other guilt in them then their bare home comming , haue none of them beene euer put to death . ] Hitherto his Maiestie . 3 Whereas on the otherside wee iustly complaine that they execute our professours , though strangers , for Religion , and only for Religion , and in that most bloodie and barbarous manner , specially where the Inquisition is in force , that whore of Babylon being drunke , and yet not filled with the blood of the Saints : And whereas you impute cr●elty to our Lawes , what tragicall cruelties were exercis●d in Queene Maries dayes , euen vpon women and children ? nay , which is most odious and vnnaturall vpon women great with childe , I pray , God as well forget , as some yet aliue well remember . Now as you holde and handle our Martyrs worse then Traytors ▪ So your most notorious Tra●tors must stand registred in the Calender of Martyrs . Not many dayes before Garnet suffered , there came to visite him at his lodging in the Tower , certaine choise Diuines , amongst whome the chiefe were ▪ My Lordes the Bishops of Bath and Wells , of Lincolne , and Leichfield , as now they are ; among other questions one of them proposed this , Whether if the Church of Rome , af●er his execution , should declare him a Martyr , hee did approoue thereof , hee deepely sighing , and shrinking vp his shoulders , made this answere . [ Me a Martyr ? O what a Martyr ! but the Church will n●uer doe it , and I pray God it be neuer so much as thought vpon : Indeed if I had dyed for the Catholike Religion , and ( vnhappie man ! ) had beene acquainted with nothing else , but that which was reuealed mee in Confession , I might perhaps seeme not vnworthy the honor of Martyrdome , and merite the iudgement of the Church : but now as the case stands , I must acknowledge my fault , and confesse the sentence of death pronounced against me most iust ; Then againe doubling and trebling his sighes , and shewing tokens of vnfained sorrow , I would to God ( sayeth he ) what is done , might be vndone , I could wish that any other chance had befallen me , rather then my name should thus be stained with the blot of Treason , which offence , though most grieuous , yet I distrust not , but it may be washed away with the teares of repentance , and that Christ will haue mercie on me . Sure I am , that if I had all the world in my power to bestow , I would willingly giue all , that I might be freed from the guilt and imputation of treason , which lies heauie vpon my conscience , & shall stand recorded in the sentence of my condemnation . ] Notwithstanding all this , is hee recorded a Martyr , apologized by Eudemon , and by Delrio paralelled with Denis the Areopagite . What would Mr. Doctour say to this now ? had wee not some reason here to sweare , that Garnet was not put to death for Religion , but for Treason ? The like might bee verified of Campian , who in the yeere 1580. came couertly into England , in the company of Robert Parsons , with a Facultie obtained of Gregorie the XIII . conceiued in these very words . Petatur à summo Domino nostro explicatio Bullae declaratoriae per Pium Quintum contra ELIZABETHAM , & ei adhaerentes ; Quam Catholici cupiunt intelligi hoc modo , vt obliget semper illam , & haereticos ; Catholicos verò nullo modo , rebus sic stācibus sed tum demum quando publica eiusdem Bullae executio fieri poterit . Has praedictas Gratias concessit summus Pōtifex Patri Roberto Parsonio , & Edmundo Campiano in Angliam profectur is die 14. Aprilis 1580. praesente Patre Oliuerio Manacro , Assistente . Let Petition bee made to our highest Lord that some explication be made of the declaratorie Bull of Pius Quintus against ELIZABETH and her adherents , which the Catholikes desire so to be vnderstood , that it may bind her , and heretikes , but Catholikes by no meanes , as the case now stands , but then onely , when the said Bull may publikely be put in execution . These Faculties the Highest Bishop granted to Robert Parsons and Edmund Campian , being bound for England , the 14. of April 1580 , in the presence of Oliuer Manacar , Assistant . Here againe I would demaund of Mr. Dr , how many of the Romish profession are ready to sweare solemnely ( as the olde Romans did in the Deifying of their Emperours ) that hee is now a Saint , and that hee died a glorious Martyr , not for treason but for religion ? But were not Harte , and Horton , Rishton , and Bosgraue of the same religion , Priests by their order , and some of the same societie , and yet died not for it ? Are there not at this present diuers Seminary Priests at Wisbich , and Baldwin the famous Iesuite in the Tower ? Certainely if there bee any fault in their vsage , it is , that they find too much mercie , their mercilesse disposition toward vs hauing so lately , so fully , and so often been tried . I will conclude this point with a case of conscience wherwith your Romish Priests were to arme themselues & their disciples in the reigne of Q. ELIZABETH , in case they should be apprehended , and examined to the 55. Article , when th● question is demaunded , Whether notwithstanding the Bull of Pius the 5th , that was giuen out , or any Bull that the Bishop of Rome can hereafter giue foorth , all Catholikes bee bound to yeeld obedience , faith and loyaltie to Queene ELIZABETH , as to their lawfull Prince and Soueraigne , this resolution is framed : Qui hoc modo interrogat , illud quaerit ; Anid potuerit S. Pontifex facere , cui quaestioni quid debeat Catholicus respondere clarius est , quàm vt à me h●c explicetur : sirogatur ergo Catholicus , Credis Romanum pontificem ELIZABETHAM potuisse exauthor are ? respondebit , non obstant e quouis metu mortis , credo , questio enim haec ad fidem spectat , & exigit confessionem fidei . Hee that demandeth this question , asketh in effect , Whether the Pope might doe it or no ? to the which demaund , what a Catholike ought to answere , it is plainer , then neede here be further expressed ; if therefore a Catholike bee asked , Doe you beleeue the Bishop of Rome may depriue Queene ELIZABETH of her Crowne ? hee must answere , not regarding any danger of death , I beleeue hee may , for this question is a point of faith , and requireth the profession of our faith . If any such Cabale ( onely the names changed ) runne yet as current among such as bee reconciled to the Church of Rome at this day ( as I know nothing to the contrary , but it may ) if Mr. Dr. had returned , & vpon his returne , endeuoured to haue framed his Proselites to those , or the like conditions , he might iustly haue suffred for it , without any aspersion , either of persecution vpon his Maiesties gouernement , or cruelty vpon his Lawes , howsoeuer it hath been discouered by the 4 Missiues of of some such reconcilers sent to their Generall , that [ for so many as they haue reconciled , they dare sweare , vpon what occasion soeuer may fall out , they will bee ready to side with them ; ] and for such , for mine owne part , I dare not sweare , being conuicted and sentenced , that they die for religion : But yet I commend Mr. Doctors witte aboue the zeale hee boasteth of , that hee thought it fitter to stay there and dispute the matter with his pen , then by comming ouer , and practising put his person in hazzard . And herein ( as through his whole discourse ) hee playes the Polititian , chusing rather to sleepe in a whole skin , then to resist vnto blood , and to indanger his body for the gaining of soules . CHAP. II. The hopes I haue to doe your MAIESTIE no ill seruice in being Catholike . B. C. 1. MY first hope is , that your Maiesty will accept of that for the best A seruice I can doe you , which doth most further the glory of our blessed Sauiour , and mine owne saluation . B Indeed there are kingdomes in the world , where the chiefe care of the gouernour is , non quàm bonis praesit , sed quàm subditis . Such were the heathen kingdomes , which S. Augustine describes in 2. de Ciuitate Dei , Cap. 20. In such Common wealths the way to be 1 a good Subiect , is not to be a good man , but to serue the times and turnes of them that beare the sway , whatsoeuer they are . C But if it be true , that ( as 2 some holy and learned Fathers teach ) in a well ordered gouernment there is eadem foelicitas vnius hominis , ac totius ciuitatis , then I am sure it must needes follow , that in a Common-wealth truely Christian , there is ●adem virtus boni viri , ac boni ciuis . And therefore being a Minister and Preacher of England , if I will rather serue your Maiesty then my selfe , and rather procure the good of your kingdome , then mine owne pref●rment , I am bound in duety to respect and seeke for those things aboue all other , that may aduance the honour of God , and the saluation of my owne soule , and the soules of those which do any way belong to my charge . And being sufficiently resolued that nothing can more aduance the honour of our Sauiour , and the common saluation , then to be in the vnity of his Church , I haue done you the best seruice I could at home , by preaching peace and reconciliation ; and being not able for the 3 malice of the times to stand any longer in the breach at home , I thinke it safest in this last cast , to looke to mine owne game , & by my dayly prayers and 4 dying to do your Maiesty the same seruice in the vnity of the Church , 5 which by my dayly preaching and liuing , I endeuoured to doe in the midst of schisme . G. H. 1. A In furthering the glory of God , you shall doe others as much , and in sauing your owne soule , your selfe more seruice , then his Maiesty : but if you pretend both , and in the end performe neither , it is the worst piece of seruice you can doe . B I suppose there is no gouernour in the world ( who deserues that name ) but that a chiefe part of his care is , to make his subiects at leastwise morally good , that so he may find them the more obedient , and some of those very heathen kingdoms , which S. Augustine describes in his bookes of the city of God , specially that of the Romanes , yeelded more rare examples of morall goodnesse , namely of iustice and temperance , then it doth at this day , though it professe Christ. And for the seruing of the times and turnes of those that beare the sway , I doubt not but as many may be found in those kingdomes which you call Catholike , who are as able and willing to doe it for their owne aduantage , as amongst the heathen themselues . C It is true that the happinesse of the whole State extends to euery particular member of the same , in as much as they all belong to the same body : but that the happinesse of euery particular member , should reach to the whole body of the State , is not alike certaine . But to grant both , I must confesse my dulnesse , I conceiue not how from thence it followes , that the vertue of a good man and a good citizen is alwayes and necessarily the same . Once I am sure that 1 Aristotle who defends the one denies the other , & Bodin both a Christian , & a Catholike of your owne , in my iudgement truely obserues , [ that the best men for the most part are the worst Statesmen , in as much as being caried vp to heauen by contemplation , they shunne societie , and seeke out deserts and solitary places for their abode . ] And I would faine know of your Monkes , and Friers , and Hermites , and Anchorites , who presume by their vertue and goodnesse , not onely to merite for themselues , but to supererogate for others , what good they doe as members for the Common wealth , but onely by meanes of that imaginary Supererogation , which is no lesse hard for a wise man to beleeue , then for a good to performe . But to let passe the examination of the trueth of both those positions , and the dependance of the later vpon the former , your inference therupon to iustifie your selfe and your owne proceedings , is both in it selfe more vntrue , and in regard of the premises more loose and inconsequent ; in as much as by leauing your station , and betaking your selfe vnto , and consulting with the enemies of his Maiesty and the State , for the ruine and destruction of both , ( which you maske vnder the glorious titles of honour of our Sauiour , common saluation , vnity , peace , reconciliation , seruice to his Maiesty , good of his kingdome , ) you neither performe the part of a good Common wealths man , not yet of an honest man , & consequently indanger ( as farre as in you lieth ) not onely the happinesse of the State in which you liued , & Church in which you were baptized , but of your owne together with them : but aboue all a marueile it is , that acknowledging your selfe a member of the Church of Rome , you notwithstanding still professe your selfe a Minister of the Church of England , since your common opinion of vs is , that amongst vs there is no lawfull calling to the Ministery , no suc●ession or conferring of holy Orders , no Ephod , no Teraphim , but that our Ministers are in the state of Lay-men and none other . Of this cunning dealing , I can conceiue none other reason , but that you may with more ease , and least suspition , conuey your poyson into the readers minde . B. C. 2. And although it be sufficient for a man of my profession to respect onely matters of heauen , and of another world : yet because this world was made for that other , 1 I haue not regarded mine owne estate , that I might respect your Maiesties therein : And after long and serious meditation what religion might most honour your Maiestie euen in this world , I haue conceiued vndoubted hope , that there is no other Religion that can procure true honour and 2 securitie to your Maiestie , and your posteritie in this world , but the true Catholike Roman Religion , which was the very same , whereby all your glorious Predecessours haue beene 3 aduanced and protected on earth , and are ●uerlastingly blessed in 4 heauen . G. H. 2. The deuill howbeit he be rather a Polititian , then of any other profession , yet when he came to tempt our LORD tooke vpon him the habite of a Diuine : but you in tempting the LORDS annointed , lay aside the habite of a Diuine , and wholy take vpon you the person of a Polititian : But herein if I should tell you , you played Phormioes part before Hannibal , you would thinke your deepe Policie much impeached . Now as you differ from the Deuill in that he turned himselfe in appearance into an Angel of light , being indeede a Spirit of darkenesse , but you being an Angel in profession , turne your selfe into a tempter : so in this you both agree , as if you had learned your methode from him , and proposed him as your patterne , that as hee being beaten from Scripture , betooke himselfe ( as being his last refuge ) to the shewing of the kingdomes of the world , and the glorie of them to our Sauiour , promising him all , if hee would but fall downe and worship ; so you perceiuing belike all other arguments to bee spent in vaine , at length you purpose to try what vse may bee made of the deuils last motiue , by promising his Maiestie all worldly honor and securitie for himselfe and his posteritie , if he would but fall downe and worship your Lord the Pope : but as the deuil promised that which was none of his to giue ; so doth your Lord too , in the disposing of those kingdoms , and the glory of them which no way belong vnto him , except it bee by the title of being heire apparent to the god of this world , and the prince that ruleth in the aire : but were it not for feare of interrupting of your deepe and serious meditations , I should make bold to put you to the question , whether these were the baits that Saint Peter angled with to catch soules , or the weapons that Saint Paul fought with when he professed , that they were not carnall , but mightie through God to cast downe holdes : they proposed not honour and securitie to the disciples of CHRIST , but hazard and basenesse . I insist the longer vpon this argument because the whole following discourse is stuffed with nothing else but reasons of this nature , as if in the profession of Religion , not the sinceritie and trueth of it were so much to be regarded , as those secular and temporall commodities which sometimes attend it , as the shadow doth the bodie . His Maiesties owne words to his sonne of fresh & blessed memorie touching this point are most remarkeable , worthy to be written in letters of gold , and to be ingrauen in a pillar of brasse or marble . [ If ( sayeth he ) my conscience had not resolued mee ; that all my Religion presently professed by mee and my Kingdomes , was grounded vpon the plaine words of the Scripture , without the which all points of Religion are superfluous , as any thing contray to the same is abomination , I had neuer outwardly auowed it for pleasure or awe of any flesh . ] I take his meaning to be either for loue , or feare of any mortall man , or rather for any worldly and fleshly consideration , whether it were to gaine and make aduantage by entertaining and embracing it , or to loose and suffer disaduantage by reiecting and opposing the contrary . I speake not this as if ( by Gods grace ) as much and more , both honour and securitie did not waite vpon our Religion as vpon the Romish , but onely to shew that these are no sufficient inducements to draw so much as a priuate man , much lesse to mooue the diuine and noble spirit of a Christian prince , ( specially such a prince as hath often shewed himselfe able to iudge of reasons of a higher straine ) to the accepting of a new beliefe , and another forme in the seruice of God , but only the plaine demonstration and cleare euidence of the truth of that beliefe and necessitie of that forme . B. C. 3. The first reason of my hope is , the promise of God himselfe to blesse and honour those that blesse 1 his Church , and honour him , and to curse and confound those that curse his Church and dishonor him ; which hee hath made good in all ages . There was neuer any man , or Citie , or State , or Empire so preserued and aduanced , as they that haue preserued the vnitie and aduanced the prosperitie of the Church of Christ , nor any been made more miserable and inglorious then they that haue dishonoured Christ , and make hauocke of his Church by Schisme and heresie . G. H. 3. To grant that which you assume , that the Church of Rome is the onely true Church ; this argument drawen from temporall blessings is sometimes false , vncertaine alwayes : and your assertion , that neuer any man , or Citie , or State was preserued & aduanced , as they that haue pres●rued the vnitie , and aduanced the prosperitie of the Church of Christ , is very broad and too large , considering it extends euen to Solomon himselfe , who though hee aduanced the Church , yet can it not properly bee said that hee aduanced the Church of Christ , nay out of the Church who were euer more prosperous & succesfull in their affaires , then Augustus and Traian ? Of the former of whom it is said , that he found Rome of Bricke , and left it of Marble : of the later that hee raised the Romane Empire to the highest pitch of glory , and spread the power of their Command vnto the farthest borders , and largest circuit that euer before or since hath by them been possessed : for the kingdome of Dacia hee subdued , Armenia , Parthia , and Mesopotamia made subiect , Assyria , Persia and Babylon conquered , passed Tygris , and stretched the confines of the Romane Empire vnto the remotest dominions of the Indies , which neuer before that time had seene the Romane Banners , or so much as heard of their name ; besides his morall vertues were such , that in the choyce of a new Emperour , they euer wished for one more happie then Augustus , better then Traian : and yet this man with whom for outward prosperitie no Christian Emperour can bee balanced , was not only out of the Church , but an enemie to it , & raised against it the third , and one of the hotest persecutions of the tenne . For further proofe hereof , I referre the reader for this point to S. Augustines first 10. bookes of the Citie of God , and surely he that shal duely consider the flourishing greatnesse of the Assy rian and Grecian , but especially the 1 Romane Monarchy , will easily discouer the lightnesse of this reason , and the vanitie of the assertion . I speake not to detract from the Christian and truely Catholike religion , euen in regard of outward blessings , but onely to proue that God bestowes them sometimes vpon the good , thereby to shew that absolutely and in themselues they are not bad : sometimes againe vpon the bad , to shew that in themselues they are not good , and takes them sometimes from both , to shew that in their owne nature they are indifferent . B. C. 4. If I had leasure , and bookes , it were easie for mee to enlarge this point with a long enumeration of particulars : but I thinke it needlesse , because I cannot call to mind any example to the contrarie , except it be the State of Queene Elizabeth , or some one or two others lately fallen from the 1 vnitie of the Catholike Church , or the State of the great Turke , that doth still persecute the Church of Christ , and yet continues in great glory in this world : but when I consider of Queene Elizabeth , I find in her many singularities ; she was a woman , and a 2 mayden Queene , which gaue her many aduantages of admiration , she was the last of her Race , and needed not care what became of the world after her dayes were ended : she came vpon the 3 remainders of deuotion and Catholike religion , which like a Bowle in his course , or an Arrow in his flight , would goe on for a while by the force of the first moouer , and shee had a practise of 4 maintaining warres among her neighbours , which became a woman well , that she might be quiet at home , and whatsoeuer prosperitie or honour there was in her dayes , or is yet remaining in England , I can not but ascribe it to the Church of Rome , and to Catholike religion , which was for many hundred yeeres together the first mouer of that gouernment , and it is still in euery setled kingdome , and hath left the steppes and shadow thereof behinde it , which in all likelihood cannot continue many yeeres without a new 5 supplie from the fountaine . G. H. 4. Why you should ioyne Queene Elizabeth with the great Turke , I see no reason , but onely for the iustifying of Rainolds his booke of Caluino Turcisme . Otherwise a marueile it is that you would instance in her happinesse , whom the Pope in his Briefe declared amiserable woman , and yet her gouernement was not more happie , then her sisters ( who notwithstanding shee submitted her necke to the Romane yoke ) was vnfortunate , howbeit in her owne disposition , she is reported to haue been a gracious and vertuous Lady , instance may bee brought in the bringing in of a forreiner , the frustrating of the great hope of her conception , her short and bloody reigne , extraordinary dearths , and hurts by thunder , and fire , and lastly the losse of Calis , the last footing wee had in France , being held by her predecessors the space of about 250 yeeres : whereas Queene Elizabeth oppugned and accursed from her very Cradle by the Church of Rome , their thunderbolts returned vpon their owne heads , and her selfe like a tender plant after a thunder shower prospered the more , and being no lesse full of honour then dayes , she was gathered to her fathers as a ripe sheafe of corne that is carried into the barne , in so much that her Successour our most renowned SOVERAIGNE , in admiration of her singular vertues and excellencies , erected to her euerlasting memorie a princely Monument in the magnificent Chappell of her grandfather Henry the seuenth ; inscribed with this ensuing Epitaph of her greatnesse . Sacred vnto memorie Religion to its primitiue syncerity restored , Peace throughly setled , Coine to the true value refined , Rebellion at home extinguished , France neere ruine by intestine mischiefes relieued , Netherland supported , Spaines Armado vanquished , Ireland with Spaniards expulsion and traitors coercion quieted , both Vniuersities Reuenues by a law of prouision exceedingly augmented , finally all England enriched , and xlv . yeeres most prudently gouerned , ELIZABETH , a Queene , a Conqueresse , a Triumpher , the most deuoted to pietie , the most happie after lxx . yeeres of her life , quietly by death departing , hath left here in this most famous Collegiate Church , ( which by her was established and refounded ) these remaines of her mortality , vntil at Christs call they shall againe rise immortall . Shee died the xxiiij . of March , the yeere of Saluation MDCII . of her reigne xlv . of her age lxx . For an eternall memoriall . Vnto ELIZABETH , Queene of England , France , and Ireland , daughter of King Henrie the VIII , grandchild to K. Hen. the VII , great grandchild to K. Ed. the IIII , the mother of this her Countrey , the Nurse of Religion and Learning , for perfect skill of very many languages , for glorious endowments , as well of minde as body , and for regall vertues beyond her Sex. A Prince incomparable , IAMES of Great Britaine , France , and Ireland King , inheritor both of her Vertues and Kingdomes , to her so well deseruing , piously hath this erected . Which I haue the rather set downe at large , aswel for the reuerence I bare her memorie ( in whose reigne it is not the least part of my comfort that I was borne and baptized ) as to commend to posteritie his Maiesties Royall disposition , in giuing her right so farre , as were it not authorized by his princely testimonie , future ages would thinke it fabulous , but specially to shew that hee ascribeth all her honour and prosperitie , not to the Church of Rome , as Mr. Doctor doth , or to the religion by him called Catholike , but to her deuotion and pietie , and the restoring of religion to its primitiue syncerity : For with it as shee made the entrance of her reigne , so doth hee of her Epitaph , both esteeming it as the head spring from whence all that ensuing happinesse did flow and was deriued ; neither can it in mine vnderstanding bee otherwise ascribed to Rome , then in granting that the reputation and renowne which shee wanne was in part gained and much increased by escaping ( through Gods especiall prouidence euer watchfull ouer her ) the manifold treasons , and frustrating the barbarous attempts that were hatched at Rome , and to bee acted by Romish vassals , aswell against her person as estate : which made her greatest enemies confesse [ the finger of God is heere ] and surely had not Rome endeauoured by might and maine to quench and eclips● her light ; witnesse the Bull of Clement the 7th , while shee was yet in her mothers wombe , and afterward of Pius and Sixtus , and Cardinall Comoes letter to Parrie , and Cardinall Allens booke to the Nobilitie of England in the yeere 1588. I am clearely of opinion the beames of her honour had not shined so clearely and gloriously to the world , as they did . Lastly , those singularities which you bring of being a woman , a maiden Queene , and the last of her Race , they were indeed aduantages of admiration : but such in my iudgement , as rather shew that shee was blessed from heauen , then by any earthly meanes , in as much as liuing and dying both without the helpe of an husband , and hope of an heire from her owne body , she notwithstanding proiected and effected so great matters , and so much good to the State she gouerned . B. C. 5. As for the honour and greatnesse of the Turke and other Infidels , as it reacheth no farther then 1 this life , so it hath no beginning from aboue this world . And if we may beleeue S. Ambrose in Luc. 4. & alib● , those honours are 2 conferred rather by Gods permission , then his donation , being indeed ordained and ordered by his prouidence , but for the 3 sinnes of the people , conferred by the Prince that ruleth in the ayre . It is true that the Turkish Empire hath now continued a long time , but they haue other principles of State to stand vpon ; the continuall guarde of an 4 hundreth thousand Souldiers , whereof most of them know none other Parents but the Emperour , the tenure of all his Subiects , who holde all in Capite , ad voluntatem Domini , by the seruice of the Sword , their enioyned silence and reuerence in matters of Religion , and their facility in admitting other Religions , aswell as their own to the hope of saluation and to tolerate them , so that they be good Subiects . 5 These and such like are principles of great importance to increase an Empire , and to maintaine a temporall State : But there is no State in Christendome that may endure these Principles , vnlesse they meane to turne Turkes also , which although some be willing to doe , yet they will neither hold in Capite , nor hold their peace in Religion , nor suffer their King to haue such a guard about him , nor admit of Catholike Religion so much as the Turke doeth G. H. 5. You might with the Turke aswell haue ioyned the King of China , the Sophie of Persia , the Chame of Tartarie ; the great Magore , Presbiter Iohn & the like , whose estates few Christian Princes exceede , or can match in riches and greatnes : But that they should haue their estates Conferred on them by the Prince that ruleth in the aire , neither Ambrose affirmes it , nor is it in it selfe true ▪ Saint Ambrose his words are these , A Deo , potestatum ordinatio , amalo , ambitio potestatis : The ordaining of the power is from God , but the ambitious desire , not the conferring of it , from the diuell . Indeed it is his challenge in that chapter , [ To whomsoeuer I will , I giue it , ] speaking of the power and glory of earthly Kingdomes ; but it is the voice of God speaking in the person of wisedome , in the 8 th . of the Prouerbs , [ By mee Kings raigne , ] and Saint Paul teacheth vs , [ There is no power , such as himselfe liued vnder , but of God , ] to which purpose it is well sayd of S. Augustine ( whom M. Doctor pretendeth to follow most among the ancients ) [ Qui dedit Mario , ipse & Cesari : Qui Augusto , ipse & Neroni : Qui Vespasiano vel patri , vel filio , suauissimis imperatoribus , ipse & Domitiano crudelissimo : & ne per singulos ire necesse sit , Qui Constantino Christiano , ipse apostatae Iuliano : Hee that gaue it to Marius , gaue it to Caesar : He that gaue it to Augustus , gaue it to Nero : He that gaue it to Vespasian ▪ the father or his sonne most sweet Emperours , gaue it also to Domitian the most cruell : and that I should not need to reckon vp the rest in particular , He that gaue it to Constantine the Christian , gaue it to Iulian the apostata . ] So then in Saint Augustines opinon God did not onely order those honours by his prouidence , as you would haue it , but conferre them by his bounty . Neither haue we any reason to thinke , but that he who called Cyrus his Shepheard and his Anointed , and gaue him the treasures of darkenesse , and assured Nabuchadonosor by his Prophe● , that himselfe had giuen to him a Kingdome , and power , and strength , and glorie , may as truely bee sayd to haue conferred that gouernment vpon the Turke which now he holds . But it seemes you aime through the Turkes sides to strike at Queene Elizabeth , and through her at King Iames , Infidels and Heretikes being in the Roman language ranked together : So that their king domes being not by Gods donation , they might lie loose , and by occasion fall as it were by excheate to his holinesse gift . Your reasons of the largenesse and long continuance of the Turkish Empire are as farre from the purpose , as your whole discourse is from any sound Diuinitie : for not to stand vpon the sifting of the trueth of them , which in some of them may not vniustly be questioned , your inference is that such principles are of great importance to increase and maintaine a temporall estate : But the point is , whether any can be of sufficient importance to vphold any estate , when God for the dishonouring of his CHRIST is purposed to ruine it , and as the Psalmist speakes [ of a fruitfull land to make it barren for the iniquity of the people that dwell therein ] before you speake of a Supernaturall iudgement of God in destruction , and here of a Naturall and humane inuention for preseruation , which can hold no more proportion with the former , then a Venice glasse with an yron pot , or an earthen vessell with a brasen . Lastly , what states you should meane that are willing to become Turkish , I know not ; but what they are that inioy their estates in capite Ecclesiae ad voluntatem Domini Papae , and enioyne the greatest silence , and outward reuerence in matters of Religion , and withall are content to admit the toleration of Iewes and Turkes too , in their Dominions , rather then of Christians , your selfe when you wrote this could not bee ignorant . Nay , some of the Popes themselues , as namely Alexander the VI. and Paulus the III. if we may credite Thuanus , had secret commerce with the great Turke against the Christian Princes , and the former of them , if Iouius , and Guicciardin mistake not , tooke vnder hand of the Turke Baiazets two hundred thousand Crownes , to kill his brother Gemen . And Alexander the III. wrote to the Soldan , that if he would liue quietly , he should by some sleight murther the Emperour Frederike Barbarossa , and to that ende sent him the Emperours picture . B. C. 6. It is most true which I gladly write , and so giue out with all the honour I can of your Maiesty , to speake that I thinke there was neuer any Catholike king in England , that did in his time more imbrace and fauour the true body of the Church of England , then your Maiesty doth the 1 shadow thereof that is yet left : and my firme hope is that this your desire to honour our blessed Sauiour in the shadow of the Church of England , will moue him to honour your Maiesty so much , as not to suffer you to die out of the body of his true Catholike Church ; and in the meane time to let you vnderstand , that all honour that is intended to him by 2 schisme and heresie , doth redound to his great dishonour , both in respect of his realla , and of his mysticall body . G. H. 6. You honour his Maiesty much indeed , in giuing out that he imbraceth a shadow in stead of a substance , as Ixion did a cloude in stead of Iuno , and Iacob bleare-eyed Lea in stead of Rachel , but in trueth of the Church of Rome wee may safely say , that with Esops dog in snatching at the shadow , she hath lost the substance of religion , she hath so couered ouer all the parts of diuine seruice with the leaues of ceremonies , that hardly is the fruit it selfe to be seene , she hath so bepainted the face of Gods worship , that not easily is the natiue complexion thereof to be ●ound . The Poet spake it of the women of his time , Pars minima est ipsa puellasui . But we may more truely affirme it of the Romish religion , her ornaments and apparell are such , that a man may seeke Rome in Rome , and her religion in her religion , and not find either . I will giue but one instance for all . Bellarmine in the conclusion of his controuersies of the Sacrament of Baptisme , maketh no lesse then twelue ceremonies to march before it , fiue to assist , and fiue to hold vp the traine , of which some are profane , the greatest part ridiculous , and few or none ( wherein wee differ ) so much as knowen to the primitiue Church . Now if the Church of England haue scowred off the drosse , and pared away the superstition , and nouelty , retaining the substance , together with the most comely and ancient ceremonies , aswell in this Sacrament , as in other parts of diuine seruice , and his Maiesty follow her therein , shall he therefore be sayd to imbrace the shadow and not the body ? whereas in truth if euer King of England embraced the body of religion without respect to the shadow of vaine and needlesse ceremonies , it is his Maiesty , which while he doth , there is little feare ( by Gods grace ) of his dying out of the body of Christs true Catholike Church , whose head is , not the Bishop of Rome , but Christ himselfe , vnderstood in the 10. of S. Iohns Gospel [ and there shal be one sheepefold and one sheepeheard . ] B. C. 7. For his reall body is not ( as the vbiquitaries would haue it ) euery where , aswel without the Church as within , but only where himselfe would haue it , and hath ordained that it should bee , and that is amongst his Apostles , and Disciples , and their successours in the Catholique Church , to whom he deliuered his Sacraments , and promised to continue with them vntill the worlds end : So that though Christ bee present in that Schisme , by the power of his dietie ( for so he is present in 1 hell also ) yet by the grace of his humanity ( by participation of which grace , onely there is hope of saluation ) hee is not present there at all , except it be 2 in corners , and prisons , and places of persecution : and therefore whatsoeuer honour is pretended to be done to Christ in schisme and heresie , is not done to him , but to his vtter enemies . G. H. 7. By the reall body of Christ , I suppose you vnderstand the naturall , his mysticall body being also reall , but not naturall : and I see not but this naturall body may as well bee euery where ( wherein you taxe the Vbiquitaries ) as in heauen and on earth , and vpon earth in tenne thousand places at the same instant , which the Church of Rome maintaines : but it seemes by confining of him to the Church on earth , your purpose is to exclude him from heauen ; and surely mine opinion is ( God forgiue me if I thinke amisse ) that a great part of those who professe his naturall body to be here , doubt much of his being there . And for the grace of his humanitie ( as you call it ) thus much no Christian man will denie , that when Christ sanctified his owne flesh , giuing as God , and taking as man the holy Ghost , he did not this for himselfe onely , but for our sakes , that the grace of sanctification and life which was first receiued in him , might passe from him to his whole race ; as malediction came from Adam vnto all mankinde . That which quickeneth vs is the spirit of the second Adam , and his flesh that wherewith hee quickneth ; our corruptible bodies could neuer liue the life they shall liue , were it not that here they are ioyned with his body which is incorruptible , and that his is in ours as a cause of immortality , and as little doubt there is but that this vitall and sauing grace which flowes from the humanitie of Christ , is imparted vnto vs by meanes of the Sacraments , they being sensible instruments for the conueying of those blessings to our soules , which are in themselues incomprehensible . And for that Sacrament which is most properly said to impart life vnto the receauer ( as the other doth food and sustenance ) it is acknowledged by those very men , who are otherwise most bitter and vncharitable towards vs , that children baptized with vs , are thereby made capable of eternall saluation , as far forth as if they had receiued that Sacrament in that Church , & after that forme which they cal Catholike , & cōsequently you are inforced ( out of the strēgth of your own principles ) to grant ( howbeit out of malice you labour to denie it , ) that the grace of Christs humanity is not onely present with vs in corners and prisons among your complices , but in our publique congregations in a more speciall manner , then by the power of his dietie , by which he is as wel present among the diuels in hell , as among the Pope & Cardinals , assembled in consistory for the subuersion of states and ruine of kingdoms : yet to affirme , that he is none otherwise present in that Church ( except in corners and prisons and places of persecution ) but onely by the power of his dietie , and not at all by the grace of his humanity , I will neither be so vnaduised as to deliuer , nor so vncharitable as to conceiue ; howbeit I haue good reason both to conceiue and to deliuer thus much , that the honour which you pretend you doe him in your will-worship , cannot but redound to his great dishonour , nay our assurance is , that being successours of his Apostles and Disciples in doctrine , as you are of the Pharises in traditions , the promise of his presence to the worlds end , as well by the sanctification , as the direction of his holy Spirit , is rather made to vs then you . B. C. 8. And for his mysticall body , which is his Church and Kingdome , there can bee no greater dishonour done to Christ , then to maintaine Schisme and discention therein ▪ What would your Maiestie thinke of any subiects of yours , that should goe about to raise 1 ciuill dissention or warres in your Kingdome , and of those that should foster and adhere vnto such men ? It is the fashion of all rebels when they are in armes to 2 pretend the safety of the king , and the good of the countrey ; but pretend what they will , you cannot account such men any better then traitours ; and shall we beleeue that our blessed Sauiour the King of kings , doth sit in heauen , and either not see the practises of those that vnder colour of seruing him by reformation , doe nothing els but 3 serue their owne turnes , and distract his Church , that is his kingdome on earth by sedition ? or shall wee thinke that hee will not in time reuenge this wrong ? verely hee seeth it , and doth regard it , and will in time reuenge it . G. H. 8. Wee as willingly grant , as you are ready to prooue , that a great dishonour is done to Christ , by maintaining Schisme and dissention in his Church , which ought to bee without seame , as his coat . But we demand , who were the authours of this Schisme ? they which departed not frō the Church it selfe , but from the corruptions thereof , or they who stiffely maintaining those corruptions , inforced this departure ? when Iacob was driuen to depart from Laban by his ill vsage , was the breach in Iacob , or in Laban ? when God commaundeth his people to goe out of Babylon lest they should partake of her sinnes and plagues , doeth the going out of the people make a Schisme , or the sinnes of Babylon ? It is true that wee haue forsaken that society which wee held with Rome , but no farther then Rome it sel●●●ath forsaken Christ : and howsoeuer shee pretend the hon●●● of Christ , as rebels doe the name of the King and State , yet in trueth she is Antichristian in persecuting the members of Christ , and as in many other things , so chiefly in challenging that vniuersality of power and infallibility of iudgement to her selfe , which is onely due to our Sauiour . And shall we thinke that he will not in time reuenge this wrong ? It cannot be but that [ her sinnes are come vp to heauen , and God hath remembred her iniquities , and in due time that command will take place , Reward her as she hath rewarded you , and giue her double according to her workes , and in the cup that shee hath filled to you , fill her the double ; in so much as she glorified her selfe , and liued in pleasure , so much giue ye to her of torment and sorrow : for shee saith in her heart , I sit being a Queene , and am no widow , and shall see no mourning ▪ Therefore shall her plagues come at one day , death , and sorrow , and famine , and shee shall bee burnt with fire : for strong is the Lord God , which will condemne her . ] And thus our assurance is , that your threats shall returne vpon your selues , verily hee seeth it , and doth regard , and will in time reuenge it . B. C. 9. But I 1 hope and pray that hee will not reuenge it vpon you nor yours : but rather that he will shew that your desire to honour him , is accepted of him , and therefore will mooue you to honour your selfe and your posterity , with bestowing the same your fauour vpon his Church in the vnity thereof , which you doe now bestow in the Schisme , and that hee will reward both you and yours for the same , according to his promise , not onely with euerlasting glory in heauen , but also with long continued temporall honour and security in this world , and this is the first reason of my hope grounded vpon the promise of God. G. H. 9. You are herein somewhat more manerly in words , though litle lesse malicious in heart then Dr. Bishop , a bird of the same feather , who in an Epistle directed in like manner to his MAIESTIE as yours is , spares not to speake out , but tels him plainely [ when they see no hope of remedie , the state being now setled , and a continuall posteritie like to ensue of one nature and condition , God knoweth what that forcible weapon of necessitie may constraine and driue men vnto at length : ] But thankes be vnto God the Father of our Lord Iesus CHRIST , who hath so fixed and stablished the Royall heart of our gracious Soueraigne , as that neither his bloodie threates , nor your sugred promises , can moue it one point from the center of that trueth which himselfe hath still professed , and in which his posterity are trained vp . And thus the weakenesse of the foundation , vpon which the first reason of your vaine hope is grounded , is discouered . God in his promises is alwayes most sure , but this your reason pretended to be grounded thereupon most vnsure , since neither the true Religion is found at this day in that Church which you call Catholike ▪ neither are temporall blessings alwayes annexed to that Religion which is indeed true . Thus much you might haue learned of Hall the Iesuite , who after the discouery of the Powderplot , recites vnto Littleton for his comfort certaine examples of Heretikes ouercomming Catholikes in battell , and Infidels ouerthrowing Christians , or of father Robert Parsons in his Replie to his MAIESTIE touching Queene ELIZABETHS happinesse ; [ outward felicities ( saith hee ) are worldlings arguments , no necessary improuements of Gods blessing , ] howbeit Father Robert Bellarmine makes it one of the 15. and Bozius one of his 100. notes of the true Church : but much rather and better might you haue learned it of the Prophet Dauid , who was so sorely perplexed with this point , that till he went into the Sanctuarie of God , and there vpon consultation with him vnderstood the reason of it , hee was well nigh at his wits end , saying to himselfe in a kinde of despaire , [ * Then haue I clensed mine heart in vaine , in vaine haue I washed mine hands in innocencie . ] Yet if the argument were infallible , God hath approued the trueth of his Maiesties Religion by those manifold outward blessings and miraculous deliuerances , which of his merc●e hee hath vouchsafed him : So that his Maiestie might iustly take vp that of the same Prophet in another place , [ * Blesse the Lord , O my soule , and forget not all his benefits : who redeemeth thy life from destruction , who crowneth thee with louing kindnesse , and tender mercies ] and our hope and vnfained prayer to God is , that whiles his Maiestie ceaseth not in this maner to honour God , God will not cease in like maner to honour him and his posteritie , with many blessings in this world , and in the next with eternall happinesse . B. C. 10. The 1 second reason of my hope that Catholike Religion may be a great meanes of honor & security to your Maiesties posteritie , is taken from the consideration of your neighbors , the Kings and Princes of Christendome ; among whom there is 2 no state ancient and truely honourable , but onely those that are Catholike : The reason whereof I take to be , because the 3 rules of Catholike Religion are Eternall , Vniuersall , and Constant vnto themselues , and with all so consonant to Maiestie , and Greatnesse , as they haue made and preserued the Catholike Church reuerent and venerable throughout the Christian world for these thousand and sixe hundred yeres , and those temporall states that haue beene conformable thereunto haue beene alwayes most honourable , and so are like to continue vntill they hearken vnto Schisme . And as for those that haue reiected and opposed the rules of Catholike Religion , they haue beene driuen in short time to degenerate , and become either tyrannicall or popular . Your Maiestie I know doth abhorre tyrannie , but if Schisme and Heresie might haue their full swinge ouer the Seas , the very shadow and reliques of Maiestie in England should be vtterly defaced , and quickly turned into Heluetian or Belgian popularity : for they that make no conscience to prophane the Maiesty of God , and his Saints in the Church , will , when they feele their strength make no bones to 4 violate the Maiestie of the King , and his children in the common wealth . G. H. 10. Hauing opened your entrance to a second reason in shew , but indeed the same with the former , you tell vs that among all the Kings and Princes of Christendome , there is no state ancient and truely honorable , but onely those that are Catholike ; wherein you doe the King of Denmarke and Sweden , specially the former , great honour , in consideration belike of his neere alliance to his Maiestie , as also to all the secular Princes of Germanie , ( the house of Austria and the Duke of Bauaria onely excepted ) and among the rest the Prince Elector Palatine of Rhine , his Maiesties sonne in law is most bound to thanke you , and it seemes you conceiued so much by intending your iourney to Hydelberg : and good reason you should haue been welcome , considering you make both him and all the rest of the Kings and Princes of Christendome that haue forsaken Communion with the Church of Rome , to bee both base and tyrannicall : wheras I may be bold to say it , that at this day there are none more moderate in their gouernments , then those whom you call Schismatikes , and of them the greatest part were neuer so flourishing , as since they renounced societie with that Church , specially the Heluetians and Belgians , in whom you instance , being growen more rich , more powerfull and politike in their affaires , then euer before : And for popularity the Heluetians had it long before any change of religion , and those very Cantons which call themselues Catholike , retaine that forme and none other vnto this day : And for the Belgians it appeares by the Prince of Orenge his Apollogie , that they euer challenged their freedome as due by the Capitulations betweene them and their gouernours the Dukes of Burgundy , and now at last after so much Christian blood spilt ( as all the world knowes ) in the Articles of peace concluded betweene the King of Spaine and them , they are declared a free State. Now whether they make any conscience of profaning the Maiestie of God , let their published Confessions which testifie , and hee that compares their practise with that of the Italians , may easily iudge of the tree by the fruits , whether wee regard the prophanation of his Maiesty in the blaspheming of his Name , or the disgracing of his word , or the vnsanctifying of his day ; & for his Saints they all agree ( I speake for the maine body of their guides and professours ) in giuing them as much honour as they are lawfully capable of , or would themselues willingly receiue ; and if this bee the heresie you meane , wee professe it hath had its full swinge ouer seas already , but doe not yet perceiue that ther●by the Maiestie of our King is any way violated , but rather strengthened and increased . Lastly , whereas you tell vs that you take the reason of all this to bee , because the rules of Catholike religion are eternall , vniuersall and constant to themselues ; I graunt there is and ought to be a mutuall dependance betwixt religion and ciuill policie , the one both giuing and receiuing life and strength vnto , and from the other : yet true religion medleth not so much with the temporal state , as to hinder or further the proceedings of it , otherwise then by the force of the word and the power of Ecclesiasticall censures : but that which you call the Catholike religion , hath ( like the Iuie that growes into the wall ) so incorporated and intwisted it selfe into the bowels of those States where it is setled , that it can hardly bee rooted out , or remooued without endangering the bodies of the States themselues , which cannot but giue vs iust occasion to suspect , that it is for the most part in the points controuersed betweene vs , nothing else but a policie inuented of men , to serue their owne turnes . And consequently according to your owne rule set downe in the second Section of your first chapter , a false and counterfeit religion . And in trueth when wee shall come to examine the rules of that Church , wee shall finde that they are not so consonant to the Maiestie and greatnesse of temporall Princes , as you pretend , but rather tend to the trampling of their Maiestie vnder foote , and laying their honour in the dust , and to the aduancing and raising of the greatnesse of the Bishop of Rome to the vtmost pitch and possibilitie of height . Some of these rules which make so much for the Maiestie of Kings are brought by Bellarmine , and by his Maiestie truely obserued and quoted in the latter end of his Apologie for the Oath for Allegeance , which because they are so pat to this present purpose , I will craue pardon to borrow and annexe hereunto : they are twelue in all , a fit number for the Iesuites Creede , or to make vp a full Iury to passe a verdict vpon Mr. Doctors Assertion . 1 That Kings are rather slaues then Lords . 2 That they are not onely subiects to Popes , to Bishops , to Priests , but euen to Deacons . 3 That an Emperour must content himselfe to drinke , not onely after a Bishop , but after a Bishops Chaplen . 4 That Kings haue not their authority nor office immediatly from God , nor his Law , but onely from the law of nations . 5 That Popes haue degraded Emperours , but neuer Emperour degraded the Pope : nay , euen * Bishops that are but the Popes vassals , may depose Kings , and abrogate their lawes . 6 That Churchmen are as farre aboue Kings , as the soule is aboue the bodie . 7 That Kings may be deposed by their people for diuers respects . 8 But Popes can be deposed by no meanes : for no flesh hath power to iudge of them . 9 That obedience due to the Pope is for conscience sake . 10 But the obedience due to Kings is onely for certaine respects of order and policie . 11 That those very Churchmen that are borne and inhabite in Soueraigne Princes countreys , are notwithstanding not their Subiects , and cannot bee iudged by them , although they may iudge them . 12 And that the obedience that Churchmen giue to Princes euen in the meanest and meere temporall things , is not by way of any necessary subiection , but onely out of discretion , and for obseruation of good order and Custome . His Maiesties inference hereupon is this : These contrarieties ( saith hee ) betweene the Booke of God and Bellarmines bookes , haue I here set in opposition each to other , [ vt ex contrarijs iuxta se positis veritas magis elucescere possit : ] and thus farre I dare boldly affirme , that whosoeuer will indifferently weigh these irreconciliable contradictions here set downe , will easily confesse that Christ is no more contrary to Beliall , light to darkenesse , and heauen to hell , then Bellarmines estimation of Kings is to Gods , by whom they are called ( as his Maiestie noteth before ) * The sons of the most High , nay , * Gods themselues , * The Lords annointed , * Sitting in his throne , * The angels of God , * The light of Israel , * The nursing fathers of the Church , with innumerable such stiles of honor , wherwith the old Testament is filled ; and as for the New Testament , Euery soule is commanded to be subiect vnto them , euen for conscience sake . All men must be prayed for , but specially Kings , and those that are in authoritie . * The Magistrate is the minister of God to doe vengeance on him that doth euill , * and reward him that doth well : yea , we must obey all higher powers , but specially Princes , and those that are supereminent . * Giue vnto Caesar what is Caesars , and to God what is Gods : So that wee may iustly conclude out of his Maiesties true collections , and iust inferences , that the rules of holy Scripture which wee make our principall and onely infallible leuell , aswell in matter of manners as of doctrine , are indeed most consonant to the maiesty and greatnesse of Kings ; but the rules of that religion which you call Catholike , as they are reported by Bellarmine , ( next his Holinesse , the chiefe pillar and Proctor thereof this age hath aforded ) most disconsonant and repugnant thereunto . I cannot but wonder then what Mr. Doctor meant to write thus to his Maiestie , who hauing so particularly and exquisitely published his mind to the world in this point , it must needs argue grosse ignorance and negligence in him , not to haue read or obserued what was by him written , or a strong presumption of his owne abilitie with one breath of his mouth , or blot of his pen to perswade his Maiesty to the contrary . B. C. 11. I knowe well that the Puritans of England , the Hugonots of France , and the Geuses of Germany , together with the rest of the Caluinists of all sorts are a great faction of Christendome , and they are glad to haue the pretence of so great a Maiestie to be 1 their chiefe ; and of your posteritie to be their hope : But I cannot be perswaded that they euer will or can ioyne together to aduance your Maiestie or your children further then they may make a present gaine by you , they are not agreed of their religion , nor of the principles of vniuersall and eternall trueth , and how can they be constant in the rules of particular and transitory honour , where there is nullum principium ordinis , there can bee nullum principium honoris : such is their case , there is a voyce of confusion among them as well in matters of State , as of Religion : their power is great , but not to edification : they ioyne together only 2 against good order which they call the common enemie , and if they can destroy that , they will in all likelihood turne their fury against themselues , and like deuils 3 torment , like serpents deuoure one another : in the mean time of they can 4 make their Bourgers Princes , and turne old kingdomes into new States , it is like enough they will doe it , but that they will euer agree together to make any 5 one Prince , King or Emperour ouer them all , & yeeld due obedience vnto him further then either their gaine shal allure them , or his sword shall compell them , that I cannot perswade myselfe to beleeue : and therefore I cannot hope that your Maiestie or your posteritie can expect the like honour or securitie from them , which you might doe from Catholike Princes , if you were ioyned firmely to them in the vnitie of Religion . G. H. 11. His Maiestie neither needes nor desires aduancement from forraine parts , or parties : yet we cannot but acknowledge that those whom you call 1 Geuses of Germanie ( a nicke name first imposed on the Netherlanders by Barlamont a Spanish factor ) ( who withstood the bringing in of the Spanish Inquisition among them , and vpon occasion of that name , tooke for their deuice a wallet and a dish , with this Inscription ; Faithfull to God and the King euen to beare the Wallet : Inferring thereby , that they were better Subiects then Barlamont and his adherents ) are more able vpon all occasions to second his Maiestie , specially vpon the Seas , then any other State in Christendome . What seruice they did vs in the yeere 1588. by keeping the Prince of Parma from ioyning with the Spanish fleete , which had swallowed vs vp in conceit , it is well knowen , and no doubt but being confederates and friendly vsed , they would be readie vpon like occasion to performe the like friendly office . And for those whom you call Catholikes , I would know how many of them labor to aduance their confederates farther then it stands with their owne aduantage or reputation . In matter of Religion the Netherlander , Heluetian , and French differ not at all : and from some States of the higher Germanie , they differ not so much as the French Catholike , from the Romish and Spanish , in as much as the latter admit of the Councell of Trent , the former not so : and againe , ( which is another notable and maine point of difference ) the former submit the Pope to a generall Councell , the latter not , but as they haue made him transcendent ouer Kings ; so haue they ouer Bishops too , not onely single , but assembled in Synode . So that vpon the matter they were as good keepe themselues at home , and saue so much trauell and charge : But to graunt those ( whom notwithstanding you call Caluinists without exception or distinction ) were not agreed of their owne religion , yet to say that the rules of particular and transitorie honour depend vpon the principles of vniuersall and eternall truth , it can by no meanes be admitted as a true principle , since those rules by reason may be , and by practise are as certaine and constant amongst Infidels as Christians . No people were euer more punctuall and precise in termes of honour then the ancient Grecians and Romanes , yet were they we know without God in the world , without the knowledge of vniuersall and eternall truth . And the same may be iustified of many of the Easterne princes at this day : but I cannot but meruaile at your folly ( specially taking vpon you to play the Statesman ) in telling his Maiestie that the Caluinists will neuer agree together in making any one king ouer them all , as if any Prince in Christendome were so sencelesse as to expect it , or they so mad as to offer it , considering they are all either vnder the obedience of other Soueraignes , or free Estates of thēselues : And yet no doubt but as great securitie may be expected from them , as from your Catholikes , though his Maiestie were vnited to them in Religion , in as much as they maintaine not the lawfulnesse of aequiuocation , nor acknowledge any superiour power able to assoile them from the obligation of their oathes , and solemne promises . What reason hath his Maiestie ( if hee were as firmely ioyned to them in the vnitie of their Religion , as the Pope himselfe could desire ) to expect greater securitie from them then his Predecessors found at the hands of their Ancestors , or themselues vpon occasion and opportunitie finde at the hands each of other ? Nay if they find no securitie many times from the Popes themselues , who are the pretended heads of that Religion , with what assurance can they expect it one from another , being thereby onely linked together as members vnto that head ? It hath beene sayd of some of them , how iustly I leaue to those who haue made triall , that they neither sing as they pricke , nor pronounce as they write ▪ nor speake as they thinke : the latter of which ( if we may credit Comines ) might iustly be verified of Lewis the XI . of France , who made shew of deuotion in the vnity of that religion , no man more , in so much that he would often sweare by , and kisse his Nostredam of lead which he euer wore as a brouch in his hat , yet what little security other princes of the same religion found at his hands in their contracts with him , the same historiographer who was well acquainted with his secrets , witnesseth , and were he silent , yet his counsell giuen to his sonne Charles the eight , that hee should learne no more latine but this , Qui nescit dissimulare , nescit regnare , would speake as much ; which lesson is indeede onely recorded of him , but it may rather bee wished , then thought that it is not learned and practised of the greatest part of the great ones in the world ; Machiauels name being hatefull and odious to all , but his rules and preceps too much imbraced of some . B. C. 12. The third reason of my hope that Catholike religion should bee most auaileable for the honour and security of your Maiesty and your children , is taken from the consideration of your subiects , which can be kept in obedience to God and to their king by no other religion , and least of all by the 1 Caluinists : for if their principles be receiued once , and well drunke in , and digested by your Subiects , they will openly maintaine that God hath as well predestinated men to be 2 traitours , as to be kings , and hee hath as well predestinated men to be theeues , as to be iudges , and hee hath as well predestinated that men should sinne , as that Christ should die for sinne ; which kinde of disputations I know by my experience in the countrey , that they are ordinary among your countrey . Caluinists , that 3 take themselues to be learned in the Scriptures , especially when they are met in an 4 alehouse and haue found a weaker brother whom they thinke fit to instruct in these profound mysteries : and howsoeuer they be not yet all so impudent as to holde these conclusions in plaine termes , yet it is certaine they all hold these principles of doctrine from whence working heads of greater liberty , doe at their pleasures draw these consequences in their liues and practises : and is this a religion fit to keepe subiects in obedience to their Soueraigne ? G. H. 12. Your third reason to perswade his Maiesty to the renouncing of his owne religion , and the imbracing of yours is , by bearing him in hand that none other will keepe his subiects in obedience , and least of all the Caluinisticall . But is it possible so learned and so wise a man as you take your selfe to bee , should write in this maner , and withall remember that your letter was directed to his Maiesty , who hath long since 1 proclaimed it to the world that [ no other sect of heretikes , not excepting Turke , Iew , nor Pagan , no not euen those of Calicute , who adore the deuill , did euer maintaine it by the grounds of their religion , Marke ( by the grounds of their religion ) that it was lawfull or rather meritorious ( as the Romish Catholikes call it ) to murder princes , or people for quarrell of religion : And although particular men of all professions of religion , haue beene some theeues , some murtherers , some traitours , yet euer when they came to their ende and iust punishment , they confessed their fault to be in their nature , and not in their profession , these Romish Catholikes onely excepted . ] And if that be your religion which we finde maintained by the chiefe pillars and Doctours of your Church , and determined to bee Catholike by your Popes and Cardinals , surely we haue as litle reason to entertaine your doctrine , as wee haue good reason euer to be iealous of your practise . Your doctrine is , That the Pope , if hee thinke good , may excommunicate and depose kings , and dispose of their kingdomes , by absoluing their subiects from their allegeance , and setting forraine princes to inuade there dominions , as if they held not their Crownes from God , but from him , and as if they were to write no more in their stiles , by the grace of God , but by the Popes grace , king of such or such a kingdom . Your doctrine is , that treason deliuered vnder the seale of cōfession is not to be discouered , though it be to the indangering of your Soueraigns person , & the subuersion of the whole body of the State. Your doctrine is , That as many Churchmen as are in the Kingdom ( which in most is a third part , in some more ) they are all exempted from the coertion of the ciuill Magistrate , being for punishment , whether in bodie or in estate , onely lyable to the censures of Ecclesiasticall courts , which haue both dependance vpon the Popes authoritie , and direction from his Canon Law. Your doctrine is , That as many Bishops and Arch-Bishops as are any where consecrated , ought to take their oath to bee true and loyall to their good Lord and holy Father of Rome , to the vtmost to execute and further his Commaunds , without any limitation or reference to the authoritie of their Soueraigne Lord the King , as may appeare by the tenour of the oath here ensuing , which I haue annexed , to the end the Reader may iudge whether this be the onely Religion ( as Mr. Doctour pretendeth ) to keepe Subiects in obedience to their Kings . [ I Iohn Bishop or Abbot of A. from this houre forward , shall be faithfull and obedient to S. Peter , and to the Holy Church of Rome , and to my Lord the Pope and his Successors Canonically entring . I shall not bee of counsaile , nor consent that they shall lose either life or member , or shall bee taken or suffer any violence or any wrong by any meanes . Their counsaile to mee credited by them , their messengers or Letters , I shall not willingly discouer to any person . The Popedome of Rome , the rules of the holy Fathers , and the regalities of S. Peter , I shall helpe , retaine & defend against all men . The Legate of the Sea Apostolike going and comming , I shall honourably intreate . The rights honours , priuiledges , authorities of the Church of Rome , and of the Pope and his Successors , I shall cause to bee conserued , defended , augmented and promoted . I shall not bee in Counsell , Treatie , or any act in the which any thing shall be imagined against him or the Church of Rome , their rights , states , honours or power : And if I know any such to bee mooued or compassed , I shall resist to my power , and assoone as I can , I shall aduertise him , or such as may giue him knowledge . The rules of the Holy Fathers , the decrees , ordinances , sentences , dispositions , reseruations , prouisions , and commandements Apostolike , I shall keepe to my power & cause to be kept of other . Heretikes , Schismatikes and Rebels to our Holy Father and his Successours , I shall resist and persecute to my power . I shall come to the Synode when I am called , except I bee let by a Canonical impediment . The lights of the Apostle I shall visite personally , or by my deputie : I shall not aliene or sell my possessions without the Popes Councell , so God mee helpe and the holy Euangelists . ] No meruaile then that Henry the eight when he commaunded the forme of this Oath to bee publikely reade in Parliament , complained to the Speaker Sir Tho. Audely and some others , whom for that purpose he sent for , that he had thought the Clergie of his Realme had bene his Subiects wholly , [ but now we haue well perceiued ( sayeth hee ) that they are to vs but halfe Subiects , or indeed scarce Subiects at all . ] Finally , your doctrine is , that the Christians in the Primatiue Church abstained from taking armes , not so much for conscience sake , as because they wanted strength : which must needs open a wide gappe to the people , vpon any humorous discontent , when they once feele their owne strength , like an vntamed horse to cast their rider if they may ; and that I may speake in your own phrase , to make no bones of violating the Maiestie of the king and his children , and is this a Religion fit to keepe Subiects in obedience to their Soueraignes ? Whereas our doctrine on the other side is , That the persons of princes are sacred , and by Gods ordinance priuiledged from all violence : and for their actions , that they are onely accomptable to God , their Crownes and Scepters not disposeable by any ; but by him who set the one vpon their heads , and the other in their hands , who hath the name written on his thigh , King of Kings , and Lord of Lords , ( who as Iob speaketh ) [ * leadeth Princes away spoiled , and ouerthroweth the mightie , and againe he powreth contempt vpon Princes , and weakeneth the strength of the mightie . ] Lastly , our doctrine is , that the Subiects duetie is not by any dispensable , but by him alone , who by his diuine prouidence subiected them to that power . Now whether of these doctrines , ours or yours is most likely to keepe men in obedience , euen our enemies shall bee our Iudges : Yet this to bee your doctrine your bookes witnesse , and no man of learning and ingenuitie among you will denie . But for our doctrine you pretend the opinions of Caluinists , and those countrey Caluinists , and those met in an Ale-house , not in plaine termes , but by consequences gathered , not by sober or setled braines vpon iudgement , but by working heads of greater libertie at their pleasure , and that not in their bookes or speeches , but in their liues and practises . Thus the mountains swell as if wee should haue a giant borne ; but at length after much expectation wee haue a little mouse brought into the world . What Mr. Doctour , are there no principles in the Romish Catholike Religion , from whence working heads , of greater libertie , doe at their pleasures draw the like dangerous consequences in their liues and practises ? If there bee none , how comes it to passe that there are so many of that profession by whose deedes a man may safely guesse , they say in their hearts there is no God ? If there be any , why doe you so pathetically exclaime against Caluinists , as if they stood single in this bill of inditement ? Shall we accuse our Blessed SAVIOVR , because he is to some a rocke of offence , or his precious Word , because to some it prooues a sauour of death vnto death ? and if wee must acquit him , and lay the fault where it is , on them who draw poison to hurt themselues out of the sweetest flowers , and dazell their owne eyes by looking on the comfortable beames of the Sunne , surely you haue no reason in my iudgement in this case ( as by your selfe it is opened ) to accuse our doctrine . I am not ignorant that all the Popes chiefest Proctors lay it confidently to our charge , That wee make God the author as well of sudas his treason , as Pauls vocation ; aswell of Dauids adulterie as Iosephs chastitie ; as namely Vasquez , Feuardentius , Campian , Hayus , Panigirolla , Bozius , Ignatius , Armandus , Kellison , Posseuin , Bellarmin . But I will be bold to say it , there is none of our writers of note , euen among them , who are reputed the most zealous followers of Caluin , haue written any more in this point then Occham , Hugo de Sancto Victore , Gregorius Ariminensis , Cardinall Cameracensis Medina , Durandus , Bannes , Scotus , Thomas , and Bellarmine himselfe , who as his Maiestie rightly obserueth in the Catalogue of his contradictions set downe in his Apologie , manifestly opposeth himselfe touching his opinion in this point , in the Booke and Chapter before quoted , in as much as hee affirmeth in the 3. Section thereof , that God doth not incline a man to euill either naturally or morally , and in the tenth Section of the same Chapter auoucheth the cleane contrary , namely , that God doth not incline to euill naturally but morally : and in the same place hee is bold to say , that God not onely permitteth wicked men to doe many euils , but that by a figure he commandeth it , and exciteth men vnto it , as a huntsman setteth the dogge vpon the Hare , by letting goe the slip that held the dogge : Nay , hee further addeth , hee fits as president ouer the willes of wicked men : hee ruleth and gouerneth them , he boweth and bendeth them by working inuisibly in them , and that positiuely , as hee acknowledgeth within a few lines , though before hee denie it : These very wordes of Bellarmine doth Kellison reprehend in Caluin , in the 1. Chap. of his booke of his Suruay , the same man maketh Caluin to teach that God is the onely sinner , in as much as hee doubteth not to say , that the will of God is the necessitie of things , whereas indeede they are S. Augustines words , de Gen. ad lit . lib. 6. cap. 15. and so rightly quoted by Caluin , though Kellison professe S. Augustine haue no such thing in the place by him alleaged . So that if they had the charitie to interpret the speaches of our men as gently and fauourably as they doe their owne , there would appeare little difference , or none at all , and I will vndertake to shewe , if I bee put to it , that many speaches and passages goe for currant and Catholike doctrine among them , which if they should bee alleaged out of Caluin , would be censured as heresie : but it seemeth the ground of the song which Mr. Doctor here descanteth on , was taken out of Kellison in the forenamed booke and chapter , where hee alleageth Caluins words to be these , but falsly quoted out of his 37. Booke : [ I grant that theeues and murtherers , and other euill doers are the instruments of Gods prouidence , whom the Lord doth vse to execute those iudgements which hee hath himselfe determined , ] as if Caluin said any more , or so much herein then S. Peter hath giuen him warrant for , in the 4 chap. of the Acts , where he thus speaketh , [ * Of a trueth against thy holy child IESVS whom thou hast anointed , both Herod and Pontius Pilate with the Gentiles and people of Israel were gather●d together , for to doe whatsoeuer thy hand and thy counsell determined before to bee done . ] or Ioseph in the 45. of Genesis , comforting his brother , * God did send mee before you to preserue life : or Iob when the Caldeans had robbed him of his cattel , and flaine his seruants , * The Lord hath taken away : or the Prophet Esay , where hee likeneth the King of Assyria to an * Axe , to a Sawe , to a Rod , to a Staffe moued and directed by the hand of God , for the execution of his iudgements : wherefore let Kellison either accuse these holy penmen of God , and teach them to correct their manner of speaking , or let him cease to accuse Caluin for this passage , who there in affirmeth no more , nor so much as they doe . To conclude , what wee maintaine in this poynt touching the will or cooperation of God in sinne or with sinners , is among many others fully and cleerely deliuered by the pens of the most Reuerend father in God the Lord Archbishop of Canterbury his Grace , now being , in the last of his sixe solemne Lectures , read in the Vniuersitie of Oxford , for his degree of Doctorship , of Doctor Abbot now L. Bishop of Salisbury in his answere to Doctor Bishops preface to his second part , of Doctor Morton Deane of Winchester in the first Booke and 25. Chap. of his Cath. Apologie , of Doctor Feild Deane of Glocester in his third Booke and 23. Chapter of the Church , and lastly of my late worthy Colleague Doctor White , in the 41. Digression , and 50. Paragraph of The way to the Church . The summe of all is this , that about and concerning sin God doth three things ; first as a cause vniuersall hee sustaineth and vpholdeth the beeing and moouing , both of the nature and actions whether good or bad of all mankind : Secondly , by withdrawing his grace which should lighten the vnderstandings and soften and mollifie the hearts of men : Thirdly by giuing way to Satan , to worke vpon them , and no way either strengthening them against him , or weakning his force : Fourthly , by ordinating sinne , which is nothing else but the disposing and directing of it in such maner and measure , as to him seemeth best , that it stretcheth it selfe no further or otherwise , either for time or place , or persons , then his good pleasure willeth : sometimes he turneth it to another end then the person doing it thought of , somtimes he maketh way for it by shutting vp and stopping all other passages by which it might breake foorth , sometimes hee punisheth one sinne with another , as pride is punished with enuie , he being not the author of enuie , as it is sinfull , but as is it carries a sting with it , implying a contrariety betweene it and the soule of man , which maketh it bitter and afflictiue . Fiftly and lastly , by occasioning sinne accidentally , as when God doeth that which in it selfe is good , and yet knoweth through the euill disposition which is in men , it will giue occasion to increase their wickednesse , and make it greater then it was before . This I take to be the substance and effect of that wee hold touching this point , and I doubt not but the vndertaking of my deceased fellow Chaplaine may bee made good , in shewing euery parcell of this doctrine in the writings of those , who either liue or died in profession , members of the Church of Rome . To conclude then , God predestinateth no man to bee a Traitour or a Theefe , but foreseeing hee will bee so , hee determineth to make vse of their theft or treason for the aduancement of his owne glory , and the aduantage of his Church and children , hee being in himselfe so good as hee would suffer none euill in the world , were hee not withall so powerfull , as out of euery euill to draw some good , as by the same power hee brought light out of darkenesse and caused water abundantly to flowe out of the hard and drie rocke . B. C. 13. Here I know the great masters of schisme will neuer leaue obiecting the 1 horrible treason of certaine Catholikes against your Maiesty , which if the 2 deuill had not wrought to their hands , they had had little to say against Catholikes before this day : But I humbly intreat that the fact of some few men may not for euer bee obiected against the trueth of a general rule . It is not the question , which religion will make all your subiects true , but which religion is most likely to make all true . It is certaine there bee traitours against God and man of all religions , and Catholikes as they are the 3 best subiects ; so when they fall to it , they are the worst traitours . But if we will looke vpon examples , or consider of reasons , the Catholike is the onely religion , which as it doth duely subordinate kings vnto 4 God ; so doth it effectually binde subiects to performe all lawfull 5 obedience vnto their kings . I will not repeat examples , because the ancient are tedious , and the present are 6 odious : but if there can be but one king named in all the world , that did euer receiue honour from Caluinists , farther then to bee their champion or protectour , vntill their turne were serued : then I may be content to beleeue that your Maiesty and your family shall receiue 7 perpetuity from them , But if your Caluinists doe professe to honour you , and all other Caluinists doe ouerthrow their kings and princes wheresoeuer they can preuaile , I can hardly beleeue that yours meane any more good earnest , then the rest . There is certainely some other matter that they are contented for a time to honour your Maiesty , it cannot bee their religion ties them to it , 8 for it doeth not tie them to it selfe . There is no principle of any religion , nor no article of any faith , which a Caluinist will not call in question , and either altogether deny or 9 expound after his owne fancie : and if he be restrained , he cries out by and by he cannot haue the liberty of his conscience , and what bound of obedience can there be in such a religion ? G. H. 13. The world is now come to a good passe , that those who obiect the haynousnesse of horrible treasons , shall carrie the title of the great masters of schisme : But notwithstanding we bee held Schismatikes for our labour , we will not leaue to obiect it , and not onely to obiect it , but crie and thunder against it , being as his Maiesty hath rightly obserued [ not onely a crying sinne of blood , but a roaring and thundering sinne of fire and brimstone : ] and the rather for that we doe not therein so much obiect the fact of those who were to be the actours in it , as the rules of those their ghostly fathers and spirituall guides , who were acquainted with it , and consenting to it , 1 some of whom haue since bene apologized by the pens of Romish writers , and 2 other some protected and countenanced in or by the court of Rome it selfe . One reports it that the Pope caused the massacre of Paris ( what time in diuers places of France were murdered about 60000 persons ) to bee painted in his palace , it should seeme ad perpetuam rei memoriam , lest so extreme wickednesse should be forgotten . So no doubt should this Powder worke haue bene painted by it , if it had not miscaried , saue that no art could haue imitated the confusion , no colour haue represented so barbarous cruelty . What staine could shadow the blood of so royall Princes ? what red were sufficient to paint the blood of so many and noble Christians ? what blacke the darknesse of that day ? what azure the vnmercifulnesse of that fire ? what deuise , what inuention could haue expressed the wofull crie of the innocent , and the infernall noise of the blow ? it was the vttermost point of all villeny , beyond which is terra incognita , no man can deuise what should bee betweene Hell and it : and shall they then bee reputed masters of schisme who obiect the foulenesse of a treason by your owne confession so horrible ? then let our greatest Bishops , our wisest Counsellours , our grauest Iudges , and our Soueraigne himselfe , bee all accounted the great Masters of schisme , who describe it by so much more liuely then others , in as much as they looked more narrowly into the particular veines and bowels of the plot , were more capable to conceiue the vast extent of the mischiefe likely to haue ensued vpon it , and lastly were more sensible of the horrour of it , in regard of their owne danger . Yet thus much we all conceiue , that if all the deuils and damned spirits in hell , together with all the reprobates on earth , should meet in Conclaue , and set all their inuentions aworke to the vttermost , they could neuer finde out againe the like hellish and damnable designe . But had not the deuill ( you say ) wrought this to their handes , we had litle to say against Catholikes before this day : As if the Bull of Pius Quintus , the intiteling of the Spaniard to the kingdome of Ireland , the rebellion of Northumberland and Westmerland were now quite forgotten , or the practises of Sommeruile set aworke by Hall a Seminary Priest of Spaine , furnished at the Popes charge , with fiftie other resolutes , of Throgmorton , sollicited by Bernardine Mendoza , the Spanish Leiger Ambassadour lying in London , of Parry , incouraged by Cardinall Comoes perswasion , of Ballard and Babington , together with twelue other gentlemen imboldened by the same Mendoza , of Stanly apologized by Cardinall Allen , of Cullen an Irish fencer hired by Stanly for thirty pound , of Lopez a phisitian and Portugall by birth , set a worke by Christophero de Moro , a speciall counseller of the king of Spaine , for a iewel of gold garnished with a great diamond , and a large rubie in hand , and the promise of 50000. crownes more to bee pay●d , of Yorke and Williams intised by Holt a Iesuite , and Owen an English fugitiue , and Spanish pensioner , & lastly of Squire animated and instructed by Walpoole , were not yet fresh in memory : besides infinite other conspiracies of Romanists plotted against the State and person of our late renowned Soueraigne . Had not her Maiesty iust cause then to complaine as she did , in open Parliament , That shee knew no creature breathing , whose life stood hourely in more perill then her owne , and that euen in the first entrance into her estate , she entred into infinite dangers of life , as one that was to wrestle with many and mighty enemies ? And that it may appeare to the world , that his Holinesse could not plead ignorance or innocency in these proceedings , I will hereunto annexe the copie of the Cardinals letter to Parry translated out of the Italian originall , very worthy in my iudgement not to be buried in forgetfulnesse , but to bee commended to the knowledge of succeeding ages . SIr , his Holinesse hath seene your Letter of the first , with the assurance included , and cannot but commend the good disposisition and resolution , which you write to holde toward the seruice and benefit publike , wherein his Holinesse doeth exhort you to perseuer , with causing to be brought to effect that which you promise ; and to the ende you bee so much the more holpen by that good Spirit which hath mooued you thereunto , his Holinesse doth grant you Plenary Iudulgence , and remission of all your sinnes , according to your request , assuring you that beside the merit that you shall receiue therefore in heauen , his Holinesse will further make himselfe debtour to acknowledge and require your deseruings by all the best meanes he may , and so much the more in that you vse the more modesty in not pretending any thing . Put therefore to effect your holy and honourable determinations , and attend your health , and to conclude , I offer my selfe vnto you , heartily wishing all good and happy successe . From Rome , the 30. of Ian. 1584. At your disposing , N. Card. of Como . Now if this bee not directly to make God the authou of treasons , as well as of kingdomes , to perswade men that they are moued thereunto by the good Spirit , that they are not only satisfactory for sinne , but meritorious , holy , honourable , for mine owne part I know not what is . But to proceede , who were they , but pretended Catholikes , that were authors of the Prince of Aurenge his vntimely death ? of that bloody and barbarous massacre in France , of which 1 one of their own Catholike historians writes , Excidat illa dies aeuo , nec postera credant Saecula . And were not Philopater and Doleman , and Rossaeus Peregrinus the bastards of Creswell and Parsons , and Reynolds long since censured here at home , and lately the seditious bookes of Mariana , Becanus , Suarez , all Romish Catholikes , and Iesuites , condemned to the fire by the high Court of Parliament of Paris ? and yet notwithstanding all this and much more that might be brought to this purpose out of his Maiesties Apologie , would you now beare him and vs in hand , that had it not bene for the Powder-treason , we had had little to say against Romish Catholikes before this day ? Certainely it must needes argue ( when you thus wrote ) either your extreme ignorance in not vnderstanding the passages of our estate , or extreme malice in publishing the contrary to that which in my iudgement you could not but vnderstand . But you demand , one king to bee named in all the world that euer receiued honor from Caluinists , farther then to be their champion and protectour , vntill their turne were serued ; as if you were ignorant what honour Caluin himselfe yeelded to Francis the first , in his Epistle prefixed to his institutions , howbeit he were rather a persecutour , then a protectour of that profession , as appeared by his commending the destruction of Mirandol and Cabrieres to the Parliamēt of Prouence , howbeit afterward he repented himselfe of the fact , and gaue charge to Henry his sonne , to doe iustice vpon the murtherers : Henry the III. they forsooke not to the last being persecuted , and at last murdered by the leaguers : and as for Henry the IV. surnamed the great , they not onely stucke close to him in all his distresses , when his Romish Catholike subiects banded themselues against him , but when hee had quitted his owne and their religion , and of their champion became a great patron and benefactour of the Iesuits , their most malitious opposites ; yet did they not cease to honour him still as much as any his most loyall and louing subiects , both liuing , by their pennes and tongues , and persons , and states , and beeing dead with their teares , and desire of search to be made , and iustice to bee done vpon such as should bee found to haue any finger in his death : Or if you were ignorant of these forraine examples , yet could you not but remember that here at home Edward the sixt , and Queene Elizabeth of famous memory , and our present gracious Soueraigne , receiued as much honour from those whome you call Caluinists , as euer any prince in the world , from his pretended Catholike subiects , and that not so much for the seruing of their owne turnes , as for conscience sake , and the performance of their dueties . What turne can they now expect to be serued from Queene Elizabeth being gathered to her fathers , yet doth her name remaine alwayes honourable among them , and the memoriall of her pretious , as the remembrance of Iosias , [ * like the composition of the perfume that is made by the art of the Apothecary , sweet as hony to all mouthes , and as musicke at a banquet of wine . ] wheras many of her Romish Catholike subiects endeuoured what they could to haue taken her heart blood from her beeing liuing , and still indeuour what they can to take her good name from her beeing dead . At his Maiesties entrance some of them pretended to honour him , none more , but it was for the seruing of their owne turnes , in hope of a toleration : for when once they sawe the constancie of his MAIESTIES minde , and the vanity of their owne hope , they hoped to haue serued him and his posterity such a turne , as should haue sounded through the Christian world , and haue made the eares of him to tingle , that should haue heard it : whereas they who receiued not that satisfaction at the conference of Hampton Court , which they desired , and hoped for , continue notwithstanding faithfull and loyall Subiects to their Soueraigne . Lastly for Queene Mary though they could expect no good turne from her in regard of their profession , but rather all the shrewd turnes that her misguided zeale , and the malice of others could heape vpon them , yet the Norfolke and Suffolke Protestants , were her strongest furtherance to attaine the Crowne , and afterward the rest as well as they , ceased not to honour her as farre foorth as the honor due to God would giue them leaue , except some few , who opposed themselues not so much against her Person or Gouernment , as against the mariage with a forreiner , whose power they feared would bee preiudiciall to the Realme , and yet was not this attempt neither seconded or approued by the maine bodie of that profession : [ But all other Caluinists ( you say ) doe ouerthrow their Kings and Princes wheresoeuer they can preuaile , ] in which passage can none other bee intended but the Netherlanders , of whom touching this point , I will say no more , that they are now after the wasting of so much treasure , and the shedding of so much Christian blood , declared a free estate by him , whose Regall right you pretend they ouerthrow . Lastly , those whom you call Caluinists , either denie , or call into question as few principles of Religion or Articles of Faith , as any Romish Catholike : nay , I will be bold to say it , and readie to make it good , that the former maintaine some of them strongly , which the latter ouerthrow , if not in plaine termes and directly , yet at least indirectly and by consequence , by establishing their owne Articles : Vnknowne to the Apostles and the Primitiue Church , they make the Articles of our Christian Creede of none effect ; and for exposition which concernes not points in difference betweene vs , and the Church of Rome , if I can iudge any thing , your Writers differ more among themselues , and assume to themselues a greater libertie in expounding then ours : and if they be restrained of their Allegoricall , Tropologicall , and Anagogicall interpretations , ( as impertinent many times to the point in hand as wide from the scope of the Text ) they will presently cry out that wee despise the authoritie of the Church , when it may be they haue wrested the meaning of one or two latter Fathers against the streame of Antiquitie ; and what bond of obedience can there be to God or to Kings for Gods sake in such Religion ? B. C. 14. It is commonly obiected by States-men that it is no matter what opinions men hold in matters of Religion , so that they be kept in awe by Iustice and by the sword . Indeed for this world it were no matter at all for Religion , if it were possible to doe Iustice and to keepe men in awe by the Sword : In Militarie estates while the Sword is in the hand there is the lesse need of Religion ; and the greatest and 1 most martiall estates that euer were , haue beene willing to vse the Conscience and reuerence of some Religion or other , to prepare their Subiects to obedience : but in a peaceable gouernment , such as all Christian kingdomes doe professe to be if the reines of Religion bee let loose , the sword commonly is too weake , and comes to late , and is like enough to giue the day to the Rebell . And seeing the last and strongest bond of iustice is an Oath , which is a principall act of Religion , and were but a mockerie if it were not for the punishment of Hell , and the reward of Heauen ; it is vnpossible to execute iustice without the helpe of Religion , and therefore the neglect and contempt of Religion hath euer beene , and euer shal be the forerunner of destruction in all setled States whatsoeuer . G. H. 14. Hauing now spent your powder and shot in discharging your three substantiall reasons , and the Apologizing of the Powder-treason ; for the filling vp of your paper , but to the abusing of his Maiesties leisure and patience , you here begin a fresh with a solemne discourse of the necessitie of Religion for a well ordered Common-wealth , vnder colour of meeting with an obiection of States-men , that it matters not what opinions men hold in matters of Religion , so they bee kept in awe by iustice , and by the sword : But these Statesmen I take to be of Machiauels sect , who , of what nation he was by birth , and of what religion by profession , wee are not ignorant . The ancient Romans indeed being themselues . Lords of the world , became vassals to the Idoles of all nations , by admitting the free vse of their diuerse Religions of them all , holding that ( as it seemeth ) the most perfect Religion , which refused none as false : neither is the Turke much different from that opinion , howbeit hee preferre his owne Religion before all others : but all other States-men who are so conuersant in affaires of State , as they neglect not Christanitie , can not but hold the Christian religion alone , admittable in Christian Common-wealthes . Now as we grant in all States some Religion necessary , and in Christian States onely the Christian admittable : So with all we confesse an Oath to bee a principall acte of that Religion : But how it is abused by Romish Catholikes for seruing their owne turnes , by Dispensations , by aequiuocations , and Mentall Reseruations , both Histories witnesse , and wee haue had too great experience : By which meanes that which indeede should be the surest and strongest band of truth & iustice , and as the Apostle speakes , [ * an end of all strife , ] is become the matter of quarrell , and a meere visard for iniustice and falshood to maske vnder : and by the same meanes , as the Romish Religion is growen odious to vs ; so for their sakes , both ours and theirs , ( going both vnder the common name of Christians ) is in that respect growen odious to the very Turkes , who obserue an oath made by the name of their Mahomet more inuiolably , then wee by the Name of CHRIST one to another ; as well appeared by our King Henry the third , who being a great exactor vpon the poore Commons , as euer was any king before him , or since , and thinking thereby to winne the people sooner to his deuotion , most faithfully promised them once or twice , and thereunto bound himselfe with a solemne oath , both before the Clergie and Laitie , to graunt vnto them the old liberties and Customes of Magna Charta , and Charta de Foresta , perpetually to bee obserued , whereupon a Quindecim was granted to the King : but after the payment was sure , the King trusting the Popes dispensation for a little money to be discharged of his oath and couenant , went from that he had promised , and solemnely sworne before . In like manner the sayd King at another time being in neede of money , signed himselfe with the crosse , pretending and swearing deepely in the face of the whole Parliament , that hee himselfe would goe in person against the Saracens : but as soone as the money was fingred , small care was taken for the performance of the oath , being so put in head by certaine about him , that hee needed not to passe of that periurie , for so much as the Pope for an hundred pounds or two , would quickly discharge him thereof , as Matthew Parris reports it , who liued at the same time , and was often in Court with him , this was then the account ( which by reason of the Popes easie dispensations ) Kings made of their oathes to their Subiects . The like account by the same meanes did Charles the 9th . of France and the Queene his mother make of their oath taken to the King of Nauarre , the Prince of Condie , the Admirall , and the rest of the Protestant profession , at what time his sisters marriage was made more red with their blood then his wine ; but this blood crying for vengeance , himself at his death issued blood at all the passages of his bodie : Neither did Subiects make any other reckoning of their oathes , taken to their Kings , if they had the like dispensations , or Kings to Kings , or Subiects to subiects : And if this be not to make a meere mockery of oathes ( which should be made * in trueth , in iudgment and in iustice , ) and consequently of religion , as if indeede there were no punishment of Hell , no reward of heauen , I conceiue not what is : and by your owne rule this contempt of religion cannot but in time drawe on the destruction of those States , which thus vnder pretence of religion and obedience to their holy Father , neglect and contemne it . Lastly , if they esteeme so little of oathes made one to another , what should we expect at their hands , to whom they hold Faith is not to bee held , bee it neuer so solemnely plighted : whereas * Abraham made conscience of his oath taken to Abimelech , and * Iacob to Laban , both Idolaters ; and so did they againe , though Idolaters or Infidels , to Iacob and Abraham . But let such as maintaine that position , That faith giuen or sworne to Heretikes or Infidels is not to bee held , call to minde what successe it tooke at the battaile of Varna in Bulgaria , in the yeere of our Lord 1404 , what time Ladislaus the yong King of Polony , by the dispensation of Pope Eugenius , and the perswasion of Iulianus his Nuntio , broke his Oath and League made with Amurath the second , Emperour of the Turkes : in which battell the King ( his horse being first killed vnder him ) was stricken downe and slaine , the Popes Bishops that were in the field to incourage the souldiers , fleeing to saue themselues fell into Bogges and Marishes , and there perished : Iulianus the Cardinall , which with the Pope was the chiefe doer in breaking the League , was found dead in the way , being full of wounds , and spoyled to his naked skinne , and all the ditches and trenches were filled with the blood of Christians : A memorable spectacle of Gods vengeance vpon the breach of oathes made euen to Infidels . Discite iustitiam moniti , & non temnere Diuos . B. C. 15. The deuill that intendeth the destruction aswell of bodies as of soules , and of whole States as of particular men , doth not commonly beginne with mens bodies , and with matters of State , but being himselfe a Spirit , and the father of lies , hee doth first insinuate himselfe into mens vnderstandings by false principles of religion : whereunto hee hath the more easie entrance , because hee hath perswaded their 1 gouernors to beleeue , that it is no great matter what opinions men hold in matters of religion , so that they looke well into their actions , and keepe them in obedience : Which perswasion is all one , as if the enemie that besiegeth a citie , should perswade the garison that they might surrender the Castle to him well enough , and keepe the base towne to themselues . But when the deuill hath preuailed so farre , as by the matters in the first truth , that is of religiō , to get the vnderstanding in possession , which is the Castle , as it were , and watchtower of both the soule and bodie , and state , and all , hee will peraduenture dissemble his purpose for a while , and by slandering of the trueth , and pleasing them with the trifles of the world ( which by Gods permission are in his power ) make men beleeue that the world is amended : For , 2 nemo repentè fit pessimus , but shortly after when hee seeth his time , hee will out of his 3 arsenale of false apprehensions in the vnderstanding , send foorth such distorted engines of life and actions , as will easily subdue both bodies , and states , and goods , and all to his deuotion . G. H. 15. This Section together with your former ( for any thing I can gather ) serue onely to make a large Portall to a little Cottage , and wide Gates to a Citie that may runne out of it : you fetch a great swinge to strike a litle blow , and a full carriere to leape ouer a straw . It is throughout a meere flourish , & rather intended , as it seemes , to amaze the reader , as Mountebankes doe their hearers with arsenals of apprehensions , and distorted engines of actions , then to teach him the plaine and simple trueth , scarce so good as a Metaphor , which I haue heard tending to the contrary of yours , that if the Faux of our concupiscence , should once giue fire to the powder of our appetite , it were likely to blowe vp the Parliament house of our reason . The scope you driue at ( as I conceiue ) is this , that the vnderstanding being misinformed in religion , produceth answerable effects in the cōuersation , which we as easily grant as you vnnecessarily goe about to proue . The heathen Philosopher could tell vs , [ Si cui intueri vacet quae faciunt , quaeque patiuntur superstitiosi , inueniet tam indecora honestis , tam indigna liberis , tam dissimiliasanis , vt nemo fuerit dubitaturus furere eos si cum paucioribus furerent : nuncsanitatis patrocinium est insanientium turba . If a man had the leisure to looke on those things , which men possessed with superstitious opinions , both doe and suffer , hee should find thē busied about matters so vnbeseeming honest minded men , so vnworthy of free & ingenuous spirits , so vnlike the effects of sober and setled braines , that a man would sweare they were starke mad , were but the number of them lesse that went a madding , whereas now the onely cloake to palliate and patronize their madnesse is , the multitude of mad men . ] Which words sound to me , as if the marke they shoot at , had been the practise of the present Church of Rome , issuing from their false and superstitious opinions touching Gods worship : In which , whether we consider the things they doe in the administration of their Sacraments , about the reliques of dead men , in setting foorth the feasts of our Sauiour and the Saints , or what they suffer in Pilgrimages , in Penances , and the like , if the same things were acted but by fewe in number , which now by long custome and common consent are growen familiar to them , being practised by multitudes , I cannot iudge them so vnwise , but themselues if they stood by and looked on would iudge them mad . I haue heard of a Turke , who comming to Rome , and beholding their most abominable and licentious disorders at their Carneuals , and presently vpon it their counterfet sadnesse , and hanging downe their heads like a bul●ush vpon Ashwednesday ( so named for the ashes which they tooke ) he conceiued that the sprinkling of ashes had bene a speciall remedie for the curing of madnes ; but to the matter . It is true indeed that where Idolatrie and vngodlinesse goeth before , there a giuing vp to a reprobate sence and worldly lusts follow after , as S. Paul rangeth them in his first to the Romanes , and his second to Titus : Yet on the other side it is as true , that vpon the putting away of good conscience in the entertainement of worldly lusts , as often ensues a shipwrake of Faith , in opening a gappe to vngodlinesse , as we learne of the same Apostle . 1. Tim. 1. I haue obserued it in mine owne experience , and so I thinke haue others , that few haue forsaken our Religion to imbrace the Romane , but such as haue bene first in their liues notoriously deboshed , or extremely thirstie and ambitious of honour and preferment , beyond the opinion of other men , and their owne desert . And whether more distorted engines of actions be sent foorth from the arsenall of Romish apprehensions , or English , in regarde of Religion , let the barbarous Massacre of France , and the vntimely death of their two last Henries , the often attempts vpon the person of our late happie and famous Queene , and of late the damnable Powder-treason intended against our gracious SOVERAIGNE and the State , and lastly , the cruelty and ambition , the vnnaturall , and vnmeasurable lust , euen of those nations which are most zealous of the Popes greatnes , and are therefore accounted most Catholike , decide the controuersie . It was a good answere which was returned by one of our side to a pretended Catholike , demaunding what reason hee had , not to imbrace that Religion : why saith hee ? Because it teacheth a man to eate his God , and kill his King. And in any Religion whatsoeuer , it is not so much the knowledge of the truth , which maketh an honest and happie man , as the practise of that we know . The deuill himselfe when wee haue done our best , will know more then we : howbeit it is certaine wee must endeuour to know the will of God , before we can doe it , and therefore the good Angels are so much more foreward and constant in the execution of his wil then we , as they know it better then we : [ * We see through a glasse darkely ; but they face to face : Wee in part know ; but they euen as they are knowen . ] B. C. 16. The Caluinisticall preacher , when hee hath gotten his honest abused and misguided flocke about him , 1 will cry out against mee for this Popish collection , and call God and them to witnesse , that he doth daily in his Sermons exhort men to good workes , and to obedience to the Kings MAIESTIE : and am not I and my brethren ( sayeth he ) as 2 honest and as ciuill men as any Papist of them all ? for mine owne part 3 I will not accuse any Caluinist though I could , neither can I excuse all Papists though I would : Iliacos inter muros peccatur & extra : But I must neuer forget that most true and wise obseruation , which the noble and learned 4 Sir Francis Bacon maketh in one of his first Essayes , viz. [ that all 5 Schismatikes vtterly failing in the precepts of the first Table , concerning the Religion and worship of God , haue necessitie in policie to make a good shew of the second Table , by their ciuill and demure conuersation toward men : for otherwise they should at the first appeare to bee , as afterwards they shew themselues to be , altogether out of their ten Commandements : and so men would bee as much ashamed to follow them at the first , as they are at the last . ] It is a sure rule of policie , that in euery mutation of State , the authors of the change will for a while shew themselues honest , rather of spite then of conscience , that they may disgrace those whome they haue suppressed : but it doth neuer hold in the 6 next generation . You scarce heare of a Puritan father , but his sonne 7 proues either a 8 Catholke , or an Atheist . Mutinous souldiers whiles the enemy is in the field will bee orderly , not for loue of their general ; but for feare of their enemy : but if they be not held in the ancient discipline of warres , they will vpon the least truce or cessation quickly shew themselues . G. H. 16. Whatsoeuer fond conceit your idle braine fancieth to it selfe , or your pen paints foorth to others , touching our Preachers whom you terme Caluinistical , we may freely speake it , and thanke God for it , that this Iland affoords as many learned sufficient Preachers , and that in a more substantiall conscionable fashion , then all the Popes hierarchie : it may seeme a bolde assertion , but he that in forraine parts hath seene , and obserued the apish action , and heard the ridiculous and vnsauoury tales of their Friers , who are commonly their most famous Preachers , will vndoubtedly grant as much : Nothing so frequent with them as fictions against Lutheranes , and Caluinists , of fables out of their golden legend , deuised by leaden braines , and vttered by brasen foreheads : whereas the word of God , the only meanes of rightly informing the vnderstanding , and conuincing the conscience , they either vse not at all , or very sparingly , and that commonly in Latine , without quotation of verse or chapter , as if they feared indeede the people should haue too much knowledge of it , whereas S. Paul professeth that * [ hee had rather speake fiue words in the Congregation to the instruction of others ▪ then tenne thousand in a strange tongue . ] But herein he scarce shewes himselfe a good Catholike , and a marueile it is the index expurga●ory had not wipte it out . Now for the piece of the Sermon which you put into the Caluinisticall Preachers mouth ▪ that himselfe and his brethren and their flocks were as honest ciuill men , as any Papist of them all , howsoeuer you are pleased to play the iester , and make your selfe merrie in such kind of flouting , yet I may truely say , and I thinke it will not be denied , that many of those preachers and their brethren , are honester men then the Pope and his brethren the Cardinals , whose excessiue pride and luxury , had it not beene counterballanced by the fained humility of the Friers , impossible it is that their kingdome could haue stood thus long , which made Panigirolla ( as I suppose ) when he came to speake of Sanctam Ecclesiam in his sermons at Turim in Sauoy , to fetch the word sanctam from 1 sancio , sancis , sanciui , distrusting as it seemes to proue the Romish Church the true Catholike by the marke of sanctity and holinesse , which he saw rather to agree to the Caluinists then to them ; otherwise it was impossible hee should so childishly wrest the meaning of the Apostles , the ordinary sense of the Latine word , the onely sense of the Greeke word , and the common consent of all antiquity : And it seemes your selfe foresaw so much when you tell vs , you could not excuse all Papists , though you would . And for mending the matter , you presse vs with the authority of S ir Francis Bacons Essayes , that all Schismatikes failing in the precepts of the first table , concerning the worship of God , haue necessity in pollicie to make a good shew of the second Table , by their ciuill and demure conuersation towards men : But herein in my iudgement you doe that noble and learned gentleman ( as you deseruedly stile him ) some iniury in applying his obseruation ( if it bee his ) against the religion which himselfe professeth : whereas in trueth it fits it selfe more properly to your Romish Catholikes here at home among vs , who pretend some of them great shew of morall vertue and ciuill honesty , specially in matter of mortification and charitable workes , whereas they mangle the precepts of the first Table in their number , making of foure but three , and of those three they breake the first and second , in worshipping the Blessed Virgine , Angels , Saints , Reliques , Images with diuine worship , and in speciall the Crucifix and Sacramentall Bread , professedly with the same kind of worship which is due to Christ as God , and what account they make of the other two , their little reckoning of blaspheming and profaning Gods Name , and Gods day , giue but too sufficient demonstration to the world . But to bee plaine with you , I finde no such words in S ir Francis Bacons Essayes printed the yere 1612. 2 which vpon this occasion I haue reuised , there beeing onely one of religion , and that the very first which speakes so wittily , so learnedly , so fully against your drift in this place , and the former section , which shewes how the deuill out of the arsenall of false apprehensions , sends forth the distorted engines of actions , ( they be his owne words in that place : ) as I cannot but hold it both a fence and a grace to insert it into mine answere whole and intire , ( as himselfe hath deliuered it : ) lest I should doe him iniury by mangling it . [ The quarrels and diuisions for religion , ( saith hee ) were euils vnknowen to the heathen ▪ and no maruell , for it is the true God that is the ielous God , and the gods of the heathen were good fellowes : but yet the bounds of religious vnitie are so to bee strengthened , that the bounds of humane societie bee not dissolued . Lucretius the Poet when hee beheld the acte of Agamemnon , induring and assisting at the sacrifice of his daughter , concludes with this verse , Tantum religio potuit suadere malorum . But what would hee haue done if hee had knowen the Massacre of France , or the Powder treason of England ? Certainely hee would haue been seuen times more Epicure and Atheist then hee was : nay , hee would rather haue chosen to haue been one of the mad men of Munster ; then a partaker of those counsels : For it is better that Religion should deface mens vnderstanding , then their pietie and charitie , retaining reason onely but as an Engine and Chariot-driuer of cruelty and malice . It was great blasphemie when the deuill sayd , I will ascend and bee like the highest : but it is a greater blasphemie , if they make God to say , I will descend and bee like the Prince of darkenesse : And it is no better , when they make the cause of Religion descend to the execrable actions of the murthering of Princes , butchering of people , and firing of States ; neither is there such a sinne against the person of the holy Ghost , ( if one should take it literally ) as in stead of the likenesse of a Doue , to bring him downe in the likenesse of a Vulture or Rauen ; nor such a scandall to their Church , as out of the Barke of S. Peter to set foorth the flagge of a Barge of Pyrats and Assassins . Therefore since these things are the common enemies of humane society , Princes by their power , Churches by their decrees , and all learning , Christian , Morall , of whatsoeuer Sect or opinion , by their Mercurie rodde , ought to ioyne in the damning to Hell for euer these facts , and their supports ▪ and in all counsels concerning Religion , that counsell of the Apostle would be prefixed , [ Ira hominis non implet iustitiam Dei. ] The same noble gentleman speaketh much to the same purpose in his Essay of Superstition , as [ that it erecteth an absolute tyrannie in the mindes of men , it hath been the confusion and dissolution of many States , an● bringeth a new Primum mobile ▪ that rauisheth all the Spheres of gouernement . The master , saith hee , of Superstition is the people , and in all superstition wise men follow fooles , & arguments are fitted to practise in a reuersed order . ] And thus I hope by this time Mr. Doctor hath gained little to the aduantage of his cause from the true and wise obseruations of Sir Francis Bacon . Lastly , for your instance in Mutinous souldiers , I cannot conceiue whither your discourse tends , but to shew that more honestie is yet left amongst vs , then in those of your profession , and is like to bee as long as we feare the assault of a common enemie , which is like to bee as long as you remaine in opinion and condition like your selues . B. C. 17. And as for their exhortations to obedience to your Maiestie , when they haue first infected the vnderstanding of your Subiects with such principles of rebellion , as haue disturbed and ouerthrowen all other States where they had their will , it is a ridiculous thing to thinke vpon such exhortations , and all one as if a fantasticall fellow finding a 1 herd of young cattell in a close , should first breake downe the hedges , and then crie aloud to the cattell , they doe not venture to goe out , not seeke any fatter Pasture , for feare they bee put in the pound , and if they chance to feede where they are , because they haue no experience of other , and to tary in the Close for an houre or two , then the vnhappie fellow should runne to the honour of the cattell , and tell him what great seruice hee had done him , and how hee had kept his cattell in the Close by ●is goodly 2 charmes & exhortations . Let them say what they list , of their own honesty , and of their exhortations to obedience , 3 as long as they doe freely infect the peoples soules with such false opinions in religiō , they do certainly sowe the seedes of disobedience & rebellion in mens vnderstandings , which if they bee not preuented by your Maiesties giuing way to Catholike religion , will in all likelihood spring vp in the next generation to the great preiudice and molestation of your MAIESTIE , and your posteritie ; so that whether I doe respect heauen or earth , mine owne soule or the seruice of your Maiestie , God or your neighbours , or your subiects , my assured hope is that by ioyning my selfe to the Catholike Church , I neither haue done nor shall doe any ill duety or seruice vnto your Maiestie . G. H. 17. You say that our exhortations to obedience are ridiculous , the vnderstanding being once infected with such principles of rebellion as wee teach : Had you vouchsafed to haue stooped to the nominating of those principles in particular , you had dealt ingenuously , and giuen some matter of reply : but as you would shew your selfe a polititian in the whole body of your discourse , so doe you specially in this , that throughout you insist vpon vniuersals , which not onely dazell the eyes of their vulgar Reader , but yeelde starting holes of euasion to the authour . What your Principles are , and what ours touching obedience to the ciuill Magistrate , I haue already opened in mine answer to the twelfth and thirteenth Sections of this Chapter . Now the remedie , you say , to preuent the mischiefe likely to ensue vpon such doctrine , is , the admission of Catholike religion , as if wee neuer heard nor read of any rebellion abroad nor at home raised from the professours of that religion during the space of a thousand sixe hundred yeeres , for so long you say hath it lasted , whereas in trueth , if that be true , where our religion hath yeelded one rebell ( to speake within compasse ) yours hath yeelded a thousand : and if the Principles of our religion , as the case now stands , induce men to rebellion , surely in common reason it should much rather doe so , if a contrary be once admitted to confront it : So that whiles you pretend to perswade his Maiestie to the safest course , you aduise him in all likelihood to the most dangerous . Whether his Maiestie then respect heauen or earth , his neighbours abroad or his Subiects 〈◊〉 home , his securest course will bee to maintaine and allow that onely religion which he professeth , and consequently in labouring to draw him to the contrary you cannot but doe him very ill seruice . B. C. 18. But perhaps there is such opposition both in matter of doctrine and matter of State , as it is impossible that euer there should be any reconciliation at all betwixt the Church of England and the Church of Rome ; of which I humbly pray your Maiestie to giue mee leaue to shew to you what I haue obserued . G. H. 18. Your imaginary possibility of reconciling England with Rome , is a fond speculation of an idle braine , and nothing else but a Castle built in the ayre , whether we consider ( as a later writer of our owne hath well obserued ) 1 the indisposition of the parties , or the qualitie of the Controuersies , or the difficultie of the meanes . For the first of which were we neuer so peaceably disposed , yet such a stiffe auersenesse there is in the Romanists , that they suffer not their adherents to ioyne with vs in any religious exercise , against which notwithstanding themselues can no way except . They excommunicate their Subiects who trauell or traffique into our countreys ; they straightly charge them not to reade or keepe any of our Bookes , though meerely tending to the practise of piety , no nor the Bible it selfe , without speciall leaue , though of their owne tran●lation : And for vs , they esteeme no better of vs then of Iewes or Turkes ; nay to the Iewes they allow Synagogues within Rome it selfe , whereas vs they persecute with fire and sword ; and for the Turkes they hold their Alcoran in nothing inferiour , and in some things much bette● then our religion , or our Translation of the Bible : No maruaile then though Cassander by labouring to mediate a reconcilement , howbeit hee were set a worke by Ferdinand and Maximilian , both Emperors , hath carried away blowes on both sides , which it seems Bellarmin in his 3. booke and 19. Chap. of Laiks , thought he well deserued , helping to lay on loade vpon him . The second thing that makes vs irreconcileable , is the qualitie of our controuersies , they being not verball differences , as some would haue , but materiall , and that of the highest nature , no lesse then the redemption of mankind , and the iustification of a sinner , but aboue all that ( vpon which the rest depend ) of the Bishop of Romes power in iudging and determining in●alliblely of all controuersies arising in matter of religion , wee may bee sure they will euer while they are able , without yeelding an inch , as stiffely maintaine , as wee iustly oppugne : which the latest writings of their Iesuites haue giuen vs so sufficient occasion ( by aduancing and inlarging this power to the vtmost ) to bee confident of , that wee neede make no farther doubt of that matter . The third thing which makes vs irreconciliable is the difficultie in the meanes of reconcilement , which in the iudgement of the wisest is in likelihood the definition of a generall Councill , or nothing . But who shall call this Councill ? and prescribe the time and place of meeting , and persons that shall meete ? who shall sit as President in it ? what shall be the rule of disputing ? and meanes of executing what is determined ? we shal need a former Councill to define . B. C. 19. It is true that the breach hath continued now these many yeres , and it is much increased by so long continuance : so that it was neuer greater then it seemes to be at this day , nor neuer more dangerous to deale withall . For if a man doe but goe about to stop it , there ariseth presently a great and fearefull noise , and roaring of the waters against him ; but yet neuerthelesse the greatnesse of the noise ought not to discourage vs ; but rather to giue vs hope , that though it bee wide , yet it is but shallow , and not farre from the bottome , as proceeding from affection , which is sudden and violent , and not from iudgement , which is quiet , constant , and alwayes like it selfe ▪ For if a man aske in colde blood , whether a Romane Catholike may be saued , the most learned Churchman will not denie it : and if a man aske whether a Roman Catholike may be a good Subiect , the most wise States-man will easily 1 grant it . May we be both saued ? then we are not diuided in God. May wee be both good Subiects ? then we are not diuided in the King. What reason is there then that we should be thus hotely and vnplacably diuided ? G. H. 19. The increase of the reformed Churches ( which you call a breach ) so that their strength was neuer greater , nor more dangerous to deale withall then at this day , though the disciples of Rome grieue and gnash their teeth at it , and consume away to see it , yet haue we good reason to thanke God for it , in as much as neither the deuil , nor the Pope , neither Rome nor the gates of Hell with all their bloodie Persecutions , their holy Leagues , and mischeiuous Combinations , could euer yet preuaile against it : Nay hitherto , the more they haue laboured to quench it , and trample it vnder foot , the more hath it shined like a bright torch , and flourished as the Palme tree , which the more it is pressed downe , the more it spreadeth . Their blood hitherto hath prooued the seede of the Church , and that which S. Augustine speakes of the first Christians may be verified of them , [ they were mangled , they were scourged , they were stoned , they were burned , they were multiplied , ] and because you cannot with all your malice and power and policie destroy it , we argue with Gamaliel that it is from God : neither can you iustly call that sudden or violent , which as your selfe before confesse hath now continued these many yeeres , and hath increased by continuance , whereas sudden things in their ordinary course , and by discourse of reason last little , and by continuance rather decrease , it being proper only to naturall motions to gather strength and fortifie themselues in going . And for that great roaring of the waters which you pretend , though it be a noise fearefull to you , yet to vs is it acceptable , as being occasioned not so much from the shallownesse of the waters themselues , as from the stoppings and opposition of others , and their own concurrence , to remoue and beare down by all lawfull meanes that which is opposed for the stopping of their current . But the reason which you adde why wee should thinke them shallow , as proceeding rather from affection then iudgement , is this , because if a man aske ( you say ) in cold blood , whether a Roman Catholike may be saued , the most learned Church-man will not denie it : Wherein if we be more charitable to you , then you are to vs , in passing censures of damnation , it should in my iudgement rather argue the goodnesse of that Religion from whence such charity flowes towards mens persons , then be vrged as a proofe for the approbation of that erronious doctrine , which in it selfe it condemns . The Turke is too liberall in admitting all Religions to the hope of saluation , and on the other side you are too niggardly and sparing in shutting out all from the hope thereof , which receiue not the marke of the beast in their foreheads or hands . We desiring to runne a middle course betwixt both extremes , as we shut out all such who directly deny the merits of CHRIST : so doe wee passe a fauourable censure on those who deny him not of malice , but of ignorance , and that not directly but by consequence . It is true that S. Paul hath in the fifth to the Galatians , [ ▪ If yee be circumcised CHRIST shall profit you nothing , ] That is , if a man put his trust in Circumcision , or in any thing else beside Christ , ( though with Christ ) in the matter of iustification , he is abolished from Christ , and the merite of his death and Passion . Now what confidence the Romanists put in their owne satisfaction for veniall sinnes and temporall punishment , either in this life or in Purgatorie , due to mortall , their writings testifie : but yet our assurance is , that many of them when they come to make their last account betwixt God and their owne Conscience , and throughly consider of the weakenesse and corruption of their owne nature , for the vncertaintie of their owne proper righteousnesse , and for the auoiding of vaineglory , according to Bellarmins aduise , they rest wholly in the alone mercie and goodnesse of God , renouncing in particular that merite of worke which their Church in generall for her owne aduantage maintaineth , and teacheth them to maintaine . Or lastly God of his Graciousnesse may accept of their repentance for vnknowen sins , and consequently for their erronious opinons , which by reason of their education they vnwittingly imbrace ; yet this charitable construction of ours can bee no sufficient warrant for vs , either to shut our eyes against a knowen trueth , or to open our eares to hearken to any motion of reconcilement to a knowen errour . Now whether a Romane Catholike may bee a good subiect , wholly submitting himselfe to Romish positions , I referre the reader to his Maiesties speech in Parliament in the yeere 1605 ( who should know what belongs to his owne state ) and to mine answere , to the 12. Sect. of this Chapter ; a part of his Maiesties very words in that speech are these : [ I therefore doe thus conclude this point , that as vpon the one part many honest men seduced with some errors of Popery , may yet remaine good & faithfull subiects : 1 so vpon the other part none of those that truely knowe and beleeue the whole grounds and schoole conclusions of their doctrine , can euer prooue good Christians or faithfull subiects . ] If then we bee so farre diuided both in God and in the king , how can we but be vtterly diuided in our selues ? B. C. 20. Truely there is no reason at all , but onely the violence of affection , which being in a course , cannot without some 1 force be stayed : The multitude doth seldome or neuer iudge according vnto trueth ▪ but according vnto customes , and therefore hauing beene bred and brought vp in the hatred of Spaniards and Papists , cannot chuse but thinke they are bound to hate them still , and that whosoeuer speaketh a word in fauour of the Church of Rome or of Catholike religion , is their vtter enemy : and the Puritanicall Preacher who can haue no being in charity , doth neuer cease by 2 falsifications and slanders to blow the coales that hee may burne them , and warme himselfe . But if your Maiesty shall euer bee pleased to commaund those make-bates to hold their peace a while , and to say nothing , but that they are able to proue by sufficient authority before those that are able to iudge , and in the mean time to admit a 3 conference of learned and moderate men on either side , the people who are now abused , and with the light of the Gospel held in extreme ignorance , are not yet so vncapable , but they will be glad to heare of the trueth when it shall be 4 simply and euidently deliuered by honest men ; and then they will plainely see that their light of the Gospel , which they so much talke of , is but a counterfeit light in a theeues lanterne , wherby honest mens eyes are 5 dazeled , and their purses robbed : and it will also appeare , that there is not indeed any such 6 irreconciliable opposition betwixt the Church of England and the Church , as they that liue by the schisme doe make the world beleeue there is , neither in matter of doctrine , nor in matter of State. G. H. 20. You farther endeuour to prooue in the entrance of this Section , that the diuision of the Church of England from the Church of Rome ariseth rather from affection then iudgement , in as much as the multitude doth seldome or neuer iudge according to trueth : but according vnto customes . Now whether it be the Church of England or the Church of Rome that stands vpon multitude , and that multitude vpon custome , the Bishop of Rome himselfe shall be the iudge ; nay not onely your multitude , but the chiefest pillars of your Church stand most vpon it : if you had but looked into your great 1 Cardinals notes of your Church , you should haue found antiquity or custome to haue beene the second , howbeit both 2 Acosta and 3 Xauerius in their seueral writings made the Indians standing vpon their customes , the chiefe difficulty of their conuersion to CHRIST . It was Symmachus the Pagans argument in his Epistle to Theodosius the Emperour , recorded by 4 S. Ambrose : [ Seruanda est tot saeculis fides nostra , & sequendi sunt maiores nostri , qui secuti sunt foeliciter suos . Our religion which hath now continued so many yeeres is still to bee retained , and our ancestours are to bee followed by vs , who happily traced the steps of their forefathers ; ] and is not this Mr. Doctors owne argument to perswade his Maiesty to the Romish religion in the 2. and 10. Sect. of this Chapter , how comes it then to passe that in this place he findes fault with those that iudge according to custome , and makes it a popular errour ? teach that a while , and indeed we may be brought to shake handes with Rome , she standing vpon a pretended truth of antiquity , but we vpon the antiquity of trueth , in as much as our Sauiour said not , I am antiquity , but I am trueth : And S. Cyprian his blessed Martyr , Antiquity without truth , is nothing els but ancient errour . Now the reason you giue that our multitude iudge according to custome , is because that they beeing bred and brought vp in the hatred of Spaniards and Papists , can not choose but thinke they are bound to hate them still . Wee might giue the same reason with more shew of truth , of your multitude , trained vp in the hatred of those who you call Lutheranes and Caluinists , whom they are taught to hate more then ours , either a Spaniard or Papist ; which two , what reason you haue to couple together , I vnderstand not , except it be to iustifie the front of Puentes his booke , Chronicler to the King of Spaine , which sets forth Rome as the Sunne , with this inscription , Luminare maius vt praesit vrbi & orbi ▪ and Spaine as the Moone , with this , Luminare minus vt subdatur vrbi , & dominetur orbi , ouer both is written , Fecit Deus duo magna luminaria ; and in the midst betweene both are the armes of Rome and Spaine knit together , with this motto , In vinculo pacis , vnder the one is set Rome as a conquerour , and vnder the other Spaine as a warriour , both supporting betweene them the ball of the world , vnder which is this title : [ Tomo Primero de la conueniencia de las dos Monarquias Catholicas la de la Iglesia Romana , y la del Imperio Espanol , &c. ] Neither are we ignorant who they are that doe not whisper it in corners , but publish it to the world in their bookes , that GOD MADE TWO GREAT LIGHTS . ☉ The greater , to be the Soueraigne of the City , and the World. ☽ The lesser , to be ruled by the City , and to ouer-rule the World. IN THE BOND OF PEACE . THE FIRST VOLVME OF THE CONVENIENCIE OF THE TVVO CATHOLIKE MONARCHIES ; THAT , OF THE CHVRCH OF ROME , and the other , of the Spanish Empire : With a Defence of the Precedencie of the Catholike KINGS of SPAINE , before all the KINGS of the World. TO THE MOST GLORIOVS PHILIPPO ERMENIGILDO OVR LORD , EMPEROVR OF THE KINGDOMES OF SPAINE , AND SENIOR OF THE GREAtest Monarchie that euer hath bene amongst men , from the Creation of the World , to this age . AVTHOR , Mr. Fr. IVAN de la Puente , of the Order of the Predicants , Chronicler to the Catholicall Maiestie , Calificador to the Inquisition , and Prior of S. Thomas in Madrid . 1612. We haue the true resemblances of royall linages . ROME SPAINE IN MVTVALL AYDE . At MADRID , Out of the Kings Print . P.P. fe . FECIT DEVS DVO LVMINARIA MAGNA Luminare maius vt praesit Vrbi et Orbi Luminare minus vt subdatur vrbi et dominetur orbi In vinculo pacis TOMO PRIMERO DE LA conueniencía de las dos Monarquías Catolícas la de la Iglesia Romana y la del Imperío Espanol y defensa de la Precedencia de los Reyes Catolicos de Espanna a todos los Reyes del Mundo . AL GLORIOSISIMO FILIPO Ermenigildo nuestro Sennor Emperador de las Espan̄as y Sen̄or de la maior Monarquia que antenído los hombres des de la creacíon hasta el Síglo presente . Autor el Maestro fr : Iuan de la Puente de la orden de Predicadores Chronísta de la Mag a Catolíca Calífícador dela Inquisicíon y Príor de S to Tomas de Madríd . 1612. as there is one head who guides all in spirituall : so there should bee but one ( to doe well ) in all Christendome to gouerne all in ciuill affaires : and not vnlikely Mr. Doctor , when he thus ioyned Spaniards and Papists together , might secretly ayme at some such matter , and yet are not the Pope and the Spaniard so firmely vnited betweene themselues , but that Charles the V. was content to winke ( at least ) at the sacking of Rome by Charles Burbon , then vnder his pay : and Phillip the II. his sonne , being one of the pretenders to the Crowne of Portugall , refused to stand to his Holinesse arbitrement in the decision of that controuersie : and they both while they liued were , and this present king yerely is accursed , at least inclusiuely , for withholding the kingdomes of Naples and Sicilie , as being of right , parts of S. Peters patrimonie . But all that is obiected against the Papists or Spaniards , are in your account the falsifications and slanders of puritanicall Preachers , howbeit , who they are that labour by that meanes to disgrace their opposites , let the Pictures forged and printed , of our fained persecutions , in couering your Catholikes with Beares skinnes , and baiting them with dogs testifie , and your reports which my selfe haue heard from your Friers in their Pulpits of our strange barbarisme , as well in manners as religion , as if no sparke of ciuilitie , or knowledge of God , were left amongst vs. It is your practise , if not your doctrine , Calumniare audacter , semper aliquid haeret : Bee bold to lay on loade with slandering , somwhat will alwaies sticke to ; though the wound be closed and cured , some scarre will euer remaine : though a man purge himselfe neuer so sufficiently , yet such is the nature of slander , that it runnes faster , and spreads farther then the purgation . Many who heard the one , neuer heard of the other ; or if they heard it , through malice and naturall corruption they more willingly hold fast and entertaine the one , then the other . I haue heard it credibly reported , that a Spaniard comming to Oxford , and seeing the Trinitie pictured ( long agoe ) in the Diuinitie schoole window , he wondred at it , considering hee had been taught by their Preachers that wee denied and blasphemed the Trinitie . And here the Pamphlet written and published of Bezaes death and reuolt , which himselfe liued to answere with Bezarediuiuus , though it bee famously knowen , yet it is not amisse to reuiue it , being so notable and shamelesse an imposture . Touching your motion to his Maiestie for the silencing of those Preachers , vpon whom , for speaking freely against the abuses of the Church of Rome , you bestow the liuerie of Make-bates , it is not vnlike for the manner of it to Philips capitulating with the Athenians , that for the better negotiating of a peace , they would be content for a while to deliuer ouer their Orators into his custodie : But Demosthenes finding himselfe to be chiefly interessed in that businesse , told his citizens that it was as much , as if the woolues should desire to haue the dogs in their keeping that guarded the sheepe . His Holinesse may permit and countenance , and by rewards incourage his Iesuites and Friars to speake and write what they list of Kings & Princes , and namely , of his Maiestie , our most renowmed Soueraigne , ( witnesse the railings and slanders of Pacenius , Christanouie , Becanus , Coquaeus , Eudaemon , Schoppius , Rebullus , Parsons , Coffeteau , Peletier , Gretser , ) their pennes may walke at libertie , their tongues are theirs they ought to speake , what Lord shall them controll : But his Maiestie shall doe well to bridle and restraine his most painefull and duetifull Ministers , who stand in the watch-tower , and keepe Sentinell to discrie the incursions of the enemie , and to discouer such false Prophets as come to vs in sheepes clothing , but within are rauening woolues : or if they bee not silenced , they must say nothing but what they are able to prooue by sufficient authority , before those that are able to iudge ; as if our Bishops were ignorant that it belonged to their charge to take notice of the preaching of vnsound doctrine within their Diocesse , and accordingly to censure it , or knowing what is their duety in that behalfe , they were more vnwilling or vnable to performe it , then Doctor Carier , and his Colledge of Critickes ; and in the meane time a conference must be had of learned and moderate men on either side , such belike as your selfe , like Metius Suffetius , luke-warme , halting betwixt two opinions , rowing to the shore and looking to the Sea , holding with the hare and running with the hound , who publikely pray for the King , and priuately worke for the Pope : true learning we reuerence , and Christian moderation we highly esteeme ; but * Science falsely so called , bent to the patronage of falsehood and neutralitie , vnder the vizard of moderation , to the reconciling of error to trueth , is but the abusing of faire and honourable Titles , to base and malicious ends , which imputation you labour to fasten vpō vs , as if by the light of the Gospel we held the people in extreme ignorance , wheras the Prophet Dauid tels vs , that * the word of the Lord was a lanterne to his feete , and a light vnto his pathes : and S. Peter , * You haue a most sure word of the Prophet , to which you doe well that you take heede as vnto a light that shineth in a darke place ; but you beare vs in hand , that the light of the Gospel holds men in extreame ignorance . Zachary prophesied of his ●onne the Baptist , that * he was ordained to giue light to them that sit in darkenesse and in the shadow of death , to guide their feete into the way of peace , and the Baptist himselfe of CHRIST , that he was * that true Light which lighteth euery man that commeth into the world : But you tell vs , that it serues to dazell mens eyes , and rob their purses : And no doubt , had you liued among the Pharisees in the time of CHRIST , or Iohn the Baptist , you would haue called their doctrine a counterfeit light in a theeues lanterne , aswel as ours , being in substance the same with theirs . And for ignorance , I may bee bolde to say it , with a thankefull acknowledgement to God for it , that a good part of our people are more expert in the Scriptures , and are better able to yeeld an account of that faith which is in them , then many of your Prelates and Priests , whereof some beare the name of the brotherhood of ignorance , and all ( at least by your practise ) acknowledge her the mother of deuotion , in as much as you * withhold the trueth in vnrighteousnesse : like Esopes dog , you neither eate hay your selues nor suffer others to eate it : You pretend the key of Knowledge , but you neither enter in your selues nor suffer others to enter ; you neither reade nor esteem the Scriptures your selues as you ought , nor suffer the people to reade them , but seale them vp in an vnknown language to the vse of a few , with whō you please to dispense . B. C. 21. For matter of doctrine there is no reason that your Maiestie or the Kingdome should be molested or burthened for the mainetenance of Caluinisme , 1 which is as much against the Religion of England , as it is against the Religion of Rome , and will by necessarie consequence ouerthrow not onely 2 the Catholike Church , the Communion of Saints , and the forgiuenesse of sinnes , but also all the Articles of the Creede , saue onely so much as the 3 Turke himselfe will be content to beleeue , which will be easie to proue vpon better 4 leasure . The doctrine of England which is contained in the Common prayer booke , and Church Catechisme , confirmed by act of Parliament , and by your Maiesties Edict , wherein all Englishmen are 5 baptized , and ought to be confirmed , and therefore there is some reason that this should be stood vpon . But this doctrine , in most of the maine points therof , as hath bene 6 touched before , and requireth a 7 iust Treatise to set downe in particular , doth much differ from the current opinions and Catechismes of Caluinisme ; doth very neere agree with , or at least not 8 contradict the Church of Rome , if wee list with 9 patience to heare one another , and those points of doctrine , wherein wee are 10 made to be at warres with the Church of Rome , whether we will or not , doe rather arguethe 11 corruptions of the State , from whence they come , then are argued by the grounds of that Religion wherevpon they stand , and the contradiction of doctrine hath followed the alteration of State , and not the alteration of State beene grounded vpon any trueth of doctrine . G. H. 21. We are now come to one of the maine points you driue at ( howbeit you seeme onely to glance at it in passage , and to draw it on vpon the bye ) which is to put vs off from all fellowship and communion with those Churches , who acknowledge Caluin to haue beene an excellent instrument of God , in the abolishing and suppressing of Poperie , and the clearing and spreading of his trueth , that so being separated from them , we may either stand single and be encountred alone , or returne againe to our old bias , and relaps vpon Rome , and so through Caluins sides you strike at the throat and heart of our Religion : For our parts , we all wish with the Reuerend & learned 1 Prelate of our owne Church , that you were no more Papists then wee Caluinists , no more pind on the Popes sleeue , then we on Caluins , whō we esteeme as a worthy man , but a man , and consequently subiect to humane error , and frailtie . We maintaine nothing with him because he affirmes it , but because from infallible grounds he proues it ; whereas the Popes bare assertion with you is proofe sufficient . You are so sworne to his words , that they are of equal or higher authoritie with you then Pythagoras his precepts with his Schollers , ipse dixit , is enough for your warrant : but for vs , we imbrace Caluin as himselfe doth authors not diuine , vsque ad aras , so farre foorth as with diuine hee accordeth , and no farther . This is our iudgement of Caluin : but to say that the doctrine which he maintaines , is as much against the Religion of England , as it is against that of Rome , is a desperate assertion , and such as can neuer be made good , did all our fugitiues lay their heads together , and were all their wits turned into one . And I much meruaile what you meant , pretending so much tendernesse of conscience , and diligence in search of the trueth , to suffer your malice so farre to preuaile vpon your iudgment , as to let so foule a blot , so manifest a falshood to drop from your pen , and not only so ; but to present it to the scanning of so learned a Prince , and to publish it to the view and censure of the world : For if Caluins doctrine bee as opposite to our Religion as to the Romish , then must it needs follow that either ours and the Romish agree in one : or that ours is as distant from Caluins as Caluins is from the Romish ; both which to bee vntrue appeares aswell by the testimonie of all other Romish writers , and the authority of the Pope himselfe in his 1 Bull against Queene ELIZBAETH , as those whome they terme Lutherans , who 2 euer range vs among the Caluinists , as also of our owne writers , and those of forraine Churches by you termed Caluinistical , because with him they ioyne in profession of the same trueth : the manifold 3 Letters by them written , and Bookes dedicated to our late blessed Queene , our Bishops and Noble men , by French and Heluetian Diuines , specially of Zurich and Basil , testifie to the world , that they then held their religion to bee the same with ours , and ours with theirs : and for any thing I know , neither theirs nor ours is since changed , saue onely some such neutrals as your selfe labour to drawe vs neerer to Rome then they can bee drawen , or the trueth it selfe will permit that wee should . Among many other testimonies I will onely instance in two , the one an Heluetian touching our conformitie with forreine reformed Churches in former times , the other a French man touching the present : the Heluetian is Bullinger , who dedicating his Commentaries vpon Daniel to Horne , Bishop of Winchester ▪ Iewell , Bishop of Salisbury , Sandes , Bishop of Worcester , Parkhurst , Bishop of Norwich , and Pilkington , Bishop of Durham , in his Epistle Dedicatory professeth hee did it chiefly to this ende , that posterity might vnderstand their indissoluble knot of friendship , and the mutual consent betweene England and Suisserland in matter of Religion , howbeit they were remooued farre asunder in situation of place . The French is Peter Moulin , who in defence of his Maiesties Booke against Coffeteau acknowledgeth that wee had enough sufficient men of our owne to defend the Cause , but that hee vndertooke the worke to let the world knowe , that the same Confession which his Maiestie had made was also theirs , and that they and the trueth were assailed in his Person and Writings . But what neede I stand vpon the particular testimonies of priuate men , since the Confessions of our Churches are extant to be compared , as well in the Booke , intituled , The Harmony , as in that other termed The bodie of Confessions ? In the meane time to giue the Reader some satisfaction , I will set downe the doctrine of the Church of England in points of difference together with Caluint on the one side of it , and the Romish on the other , that so wee may make some estimate whether Caluinisme bee as opposite to the Religion of England , as to that of Rome . Now for the doctrine of the Church of England , I will not extend it so wide as to the Bookes and Lectures of our Bishops , and publique professours , the lights and guides of our Church and Vniuersities , nor yet contract and confine it , as Mr. Doctor doeth , within the narrow compasse of the Common prayer Booke and Church Catechisme , the booke of Canons , and therein Nowels Catechisme , Can. 79. being confirmed and allowed by publike authoritie . But aboue all I very much maruell Mr. Doctors memory should so farre faile him , as quite and cleane to forget the Booke of Articles , solemnely agreed vpon by the Reuerend Bishops and Clergie of this kingdome , at two seuerall meetings or Conuocations of theirs in the yeeres of our Lord 1562 , and againe 1604 , and lately againe confirmed by two seuerall Canons , the 5 , and 36 in number , since himselfe subscribed to them at the taking of his Orders , if not of his Degrees , and liuing a long time as Chaplen in house with Archbishop Whitegift , and since keeping his ordinary turnes of waiting at Court , and residence at Canterbury , he could not bee ignorant of them , nay , I can shewe it vnder his owne hand , which argues hee fought against the light of his owne conscience , that setting downe the differences betweene the Olde English , and New French diuinitie , as he calles it , hee quotes diuers of those Articles for the doctrine of the Church of England , and besides , professing himselfe so skilfull in the Statutes , he could not but knowe that The Booke of Articles and Iniunctions , is by them aswell confirmed and authorized , as The Booke of Common Prayer , in which Articles are also allowed and ratified The second Booke of Homilies and holy Orders ; so that whatsoeuer is doct●inally deliuered in any of these , may safely bee called , The doctrine of the Church of England : But for the present I will content my selfe with the Booke of Articles onely , and for the doctrine of the Church of Rome , with the Canons and positions of the Tridentine Councell and Catechisme , and for Caluines doctrine , with that specially which hee hath deliuered in his 4. Bookes of Christian Institutions . Here followeth the Table of differences . B. C. 22. For when the breach was resolued on for the personall and particular ease of Henry the VIII . and the 1 children of his later wiues , it was necessary to giue euery part of the Common-wealth 2 contentment , for which they might hold out in the heate of affection , and studie to maintaine the breach , otherwise it was likely that in the clearenesse of 3 iudgement it would quickly haue growen together againe , and then the authours thereof must haue beene 4 excluded and giuen account of their practise . G. H. 22 Howbeit Henry the VIII . actually indeed made that breach with Rome , which continues at this day ( and is like to doe till Rome by her reformation endeuour to make it vp ) yet they certainely erre , who seeke the cause of it , onely in him and in his times , or fixing their eyes vpon his person & quarrel , looke not vp to the state and course of former ages : for as no wise man would assigne the cause of death to some accident falling out in the last point and period of life , but to some former distemper or intemperancie : so the reasons of vnhorsing the Pope , and reiecting his authoritie with the generall applause of all the estates of the Realme , hauing beene so long an● so deepely rooted in mens minds , are not to be searched for in the personall and particular proceedings of Henry the VIII . but in the ancient Records and euidences of our Histo●ians , who all complaine of the spurring , and gauling , and whipping of our land by those Italian riders , vntill like Balaams asse , shee turned againe , opened her mouth to complaine , and being out of all hope of reliefe by complaint , cast her rider . As many witnesses we haue hereof well neere , as Writers since the last 600. yeres : as many cleere testimonies as there be leaues in Mat. Paris , the most learned and sufficient Writer ( vnlesse you will except William of Malmesburie ) that those times afforded . It was a memorable speech of Robert Grosteed Bishop of Lincolne , who liued 358. yeres since , in the time of Gregory the IX . Caelestine the IIII. Innocent the IIII. and Alexander the VI. who lying vpon his death-bed , the very night of his departure , making a lamentable and bitter complaint to the Priests and Monkes that stood about him , of the miserable estate of the Church , and laying the burthen of so great a mischiefe vpon the Popes shoulders ( whom therefore he called Heretike and Antichrist ) at length hee yeelded vp his soule vnto God with these words in his mouth , [ Non liberabitur Eccles●a ab Egiptiaca seruitute , nisi in ore gladij cruentandi . The Church will neuer bee freed from this Egyptian slauery , but by the point of a bloodie sword . ] Thus did this holy man foresee and foretel , as it were by a Prophetical Spirit , that which we see accōplished : So that Henrie the VIII . serued onely as a midwife to bring to the world that birth , wherewith our countrey had bene in trauell many yeres before ; and had not he bene borne , some other meanes would haue beene found out for the doing of that which he did ; and what we see already done in England , will also vndoubtedly be brought to passe in other Nations , when their measure is full , and God will. In the meane time that the trueth of this assertion may the better appeare , I will adde to those examples , and instances brought to this purpose by his Maiestie in his Premonition , two others ( in my iudgment very obser●able ) the one of William surnamed the Conquerour , the other of Henrie ( for his learning ) surnamed Beauclerke his third sonne , and second Successor in the Kingdome , both out of the Manuscripts of that noble Antiquarie , Sr Robert Cotton knight Barronnet . The father thus writes to Gregory the VII . commonly knowen by the name of Hildebrand , vpon notice giuen him from his Legate Hubert , that he was to doe him fealtie , and ●o pay him money as his ancestors had done . [ Hubertus Legatus tuus ( Religiose Pater ) ad me veniens , ex tua parte me admonuit , quatenus tibi & successoribus tuis fidelitatem facerem , & de pecunia quam antecessores mei ad Romanam Ecclesiam mittere solebant melius cogitarem ; vnum admisi , alterum non admisi ; fidelitatem facere nolui , nec volo ; quia nec ego promisi , nec antecessores meos antecessoribus tuis id fecisse comperio . ] Hubert your Legate ( Religious Father ) comming vnto me , aduertised me as from you , that I was to doe fealtie to you , and your Successors , and that I should bethinke my selfe better of the money which my Predecessors were wont to send to the Church of Rome ; the one I admitted , the other I admitted not . The fealtie I would not performe , neither will I , because neither my selfe promised it , nor doe I find that my Predecessors performed it to yours . Vpon which occasion as it may well be supposed , the Pope returned this answer to his Legate Hubert , after signification ; how little he esteemed money without honour giuen him ; hee comes to the person of the King in these termes . [ Multa sunt vnde Sancta Romana Ecclesia aduersus eum queri potest , nemo enim omnium Regum etiam Paganorum , contra Apostolicam sedem hoc praesumpsit tentare , quod is non erubuit facere . ] There are many things whereof the holy Roman Church may complaine of against him , in as much as none of the Pagan kings haue attempted that against the Sea Apostolike , which hee hath not blushed to put in execution . Now for Henry the sonne , who in this regarde swarued not from his fathers steppes , part of Pope Paschals letter vnto him , runnes thus . [ Paschalis seruus seruorum Dei , dilecto filio Henrico , illustri Anglorum Regi , Salutem & Apostolicam benedictionem . Cum de manu Domini largiùs honorem , diuitias , pacemque susceperis , mir amur vehementius , & grauamur quod in Regno potestateque tua beatus Petrus , & in beato Petro , Dominus honorem suum iustitiamque perdiderit . Sedis enim Apostolicae nuncij , vel literae praeter iussum Regiae Maiestatis , nullam in potestate tua susceptionē vel aditum promerentur , nullus inde clamor , nullum inde iudicium ad sedem Apostolicam destinatur . ] Paschal the seruant of the seruants of God , to our beloued sonne Henry , the most renowned King of England , health and Apostolicall benediction . Sythence you haue plentifully receiued honour , riches and peace , from the hand of the Lord , We exceedingly woonder , and take it in ill part , that in your Kingdome , and vnder your Gouernment S. Peter , and in S. Peter , the Lord hath lost his honour and right , in as much as the Nuntioes and Breues of the Sea Apostolike , are not thought worthy entertainement or admittance in any part of your Dominions , without your Maiesties warrant , No complaint now , no appeale comes from thence to the Sea Apostolike . To which the King ( after termes of complement , ) replies in in this manner . [ Eos honores , & eam obedientiam , quam tempore Patris mei antecessores vestri in Regno Angliae habuerunt , tempore meo vt habeatis volo ; eo videlicet tenore , vt dignitates , vsus , & consuetudines , quas pater meus tempore antecessorum vestrorum in regno Angliae habuit ▪ ego tempore vestro in eodem regno meo integrè obtineam . Notumque habeat Sanctitas vestra , quod me viuente , Deo auxiliante , dignitates & vsus regni Angliae non minuentur : Et si ego ( quod absit ) in tanta me deiectione ponerem , Optimates mei , imo totius Angliae populus id nullo modo pateretur . Habita igitur ( Charissime Pater ) vtiliori deliberatione , ita se erga nos moderetur benignitas vestra , ne ( quod inuitùs faciam ) à vestra me cogatis recedere obedientia . ] That honour and obedience which your predecessors had in the Kingdome of England during the Reigne of my father , my will is you should haue in my time , with this condition , that my selfe fully and wholly enioy all the Dignities , Prerogatiues and Customes , which my father enioyed in the sayd Kingdome , in the time of your predecessors ; and I would your Holinesse should vnderstand , that during my life the digninities and prerogatiues of the Crowne of England , by Gods grace , shall not bee minished ▪ and if I should so farre abase my selfe ( which God forbid ) my Lords and Commons would by no meanes endure it : wherfore ( most deare Father ) vpon better aduice , let your gentlenesse be so tempered toward vs , that I bee not enforced ( which I shall vnwillingly doe ) to withdraw my selfe from your obedience . Whereby it appeares , that Henry the first began to hammer and beate vpon that which Henry the last , by Gods appointment , in the fulnesse of time brought to perfection : and though these two Kings , the Father and the Sonne , gaue way to some part of the Popes iurisdiction , as I shewed before ; Yet hereby it appeares it was a burthen vnto them . B. C. 23. Therefore to the Lords and 1 fauorites of the Court , was giuen the lands and inheritance of the Abbies and religious houses , that hauing once as it were washed their hands in the bowels and bloud of the Church , both they and their posterity might be at vtter ▪ defiance therewith ; and so hauing ouerthrowne and prophaned the good workes of the 2 Saints , it was necessary for them to get them Chaplins , that might both dispute , preach , and write against the merits of good workes , the inuocation of Saints , 3 the sacrifice of the Altar , prayer for the dead , and all such points of Catholike doctrine , as were the grounds of those Churches and religious houses , which they had ouerthrowen and prophaned : And it was not hard for those Chaplines by some shew of Scripture , to proue that which their Lords and followers were so willing to beleeue . G. H. 23. The Abbies and Religious houses were growen to that height of idlenesse , the mother of ignorance and luxurie , within themselues , and by reason thereof into that contempt and base estimation with the people , that it was high time some blood should haue beene drawen from their swelling veines ; specially considering the little vse the Common-wealth had of them , but chiefely for that they were so farre degenerated from the primitiue institution : Their number was great , it being 645. monasteries of men and women , accounting the Priories and Frieries , besides Chaunteries and free Chappels ; their seate commonly in the fairest and fattest part of the land , their reuenues amounting to an inestimable summe , as in the originall booke thereof taken by Commission , and giuen to the King may appeare ; though at their dissolutions their values were fauourably and farre vnder rated , in so much as in the raigne of Edward the first , a statute of Mortmaine was made for the restraining of that excesse : And had not Henry the fifth beene wisely diuerted vpon the French warres by Archbishop Chichly , he had in all likelihood preuented Henry the eight in diminishing , if not demolishing those houses ; being s●t on by his Parliament held at Leicester , in the beginning of his raigne ▪ in which a bill was exhibited , complaining how their reuenues giuen for deuotion , were most desorderly wasted vpon Hounds , and Hawkes , and Horses , and Whores which if better imployed , would serue for the defence of the land , and honour of the King , and suffice for the maintenance of fifteene Earles , fifteene hundred Knights , sixe thousand two hundred Esquires , and one hundred Almes-houses , for reliefe of impotent and diseased persons , and besides all this to the Kings Coffers , there would thereby yeerely accrew , twenty thousand pounds . And to speake a trueth , Cardinall Wolsey was the man who by pulling downe the smaller , both shewed and made a way to the King , Henry the eight , for taking the like order with the bigger . Neither did hee thinke his hands lesse bound towards his owne subiects , then the Pope and French King did theirs , for the rooting out of the rich and powerfull order of Templars through Christendome , accusing them of like grieuous and vnnaturall offences , as were in open Parliament layed to the charge of our monasticall professours , vpon the relation of such Commissioners , who were appointed to make search to that purpose : no marueile then that as after the dissolution of that order ( which fell out in the raigne of Edward the second , as Thomas de la More report● is , who at the same time liued as an officer in his Court ) the heires of the donors , and such as had indowed them with lands reentred vpon those parts of their ancient patrimonies : so in the downefall of Monasteries , the Lords tooke their share of those lands which their ancestors had formerly bestowed to piou●●vses , but were at that time very much abused by the posses●ours . But a great part of them , about , or somewhat aboue 600. yeeres since , were thrust into the possessions of maried Church-men , by 1 Dunstan Archbishop of Canterbury , so that if euery bird had his feather at their dissolution , the greatest part of their lands had returned to the Clergie , or at least their impropriations , which were as improper to them , though they held them by dispensation , as now it may well bee disputed , they are to the 2 possess●urs of them : A part whereof notwithstanding are so farre off from being at defiance with your Church , that they are professed Romane Catholikes . And in Queene Maries dayes among all those that intirely embraced that Religion , not so much as one was found that could be drawen to disgorge those sweet morsels they had deuoured , or to make restitution of a foote of land , though the Queene her selfe ( the rather to draw them on ) had offered all she held in possession . Then was your doctrine of good workes , your Inuocation Saints , your sacrifice of the Altar , and your prayer for the dead restored , which were the grounds ( you say ) of those religious houses : yet the land which had bene their maintenance , was not restored . And as the reuiuing of those doctrines could not serue to giue new life vnto the carkasses of those ruined houses , so the ruining of those houses was not the cause ( as you pretend ) of the impugning of those doctrines , since they were impugned ( by the confession of your owne Writers ) by the Waldenses , by the Albingenses , by Wicliffe , by Husse , by Luther , by Zuinglius , by Caluin , before those houses fell , and continued for the most part , during all the raigne of Henry the eight , as may appeare by the sixe articles , commonly called the whip with the sixe cordes . And for any thing I finde ▪ he altered nothing ( excepting the taking downe of Monasteries and the Popes authority ) but onely the translation of the Bible , and the singing and reading diuine seruice in our mother tongue : so that it is cleare to any indifferent iudgement , that the contradicting of those doctrines rather caused the ruine of those houses , then their ruine ( as you would beare vs in hand ) the contradicting of those doctrines . And it were no hard matter , not by shew of Scripture , but by Scripture it selfe , to prooue their vnsoundnesse : But an harder I am sure it were , for his Holinesse Chaplaines , from thence to proue their soundnesse , in that sense as they are now defended in the Church of Rome , howbeit you are as willing to beleeue the trueth of them for the 3 aduantage you reape by them ( specially by the sacrifice of the Altar , and prayer for the dead ) as any can bee vpon the like reason to beleeue the contrary . B. C. 24. To the Commons was giuen great hope of reliefe for their pouertie , ease of subsidies , and the burden of so great a Clergie , and many other 1 goodly gay nothings : And for the present , they should haue liberty , and the benefit of the common Law , that is leaue to liue by such Lawes as themselues list to make , and to contemne the authoritie of the Church ; which although it were for their benefit euery way , yet because it crossed their affections , like wayward children they could neuer abide it : and was not this reason enough for them to hold out the breach , and to study Scripture themselues , that they might be able to confute Confession , 2 Satisfaction , Penance , and to declaime against that tyranny of the Church of Rome , whereby themselues and their forefathers had bene kept in awe and 3 obedience vnto God and their kings ? G. H. 24. The Commons might haue beene disburdened of their Subsidies , had those reuenues and treasures which came , or might haue come to the Crowne by the downefall of monasteries , bene imployed as they might haue bene : the plates and wires of gold of Beckets onely shrine , together with the pearles and precious stones of inestimable value , filling two great chests : But God so ordered the matter for their laying of sacrilegious hands , ( as it may be thought ) vpon those tenths which by himselfe were consecrated to himselfe , that neither it , nor the rest prospered , neither was the king thereby much inriched , nor the Commons relieued , it beeing like the dead flie in the boxe of oyntment , or the Colloquintida in the Prophets pottage . Now for the peoples liberty in making lawes at their own pleasure , to liue as they listed , it is a matter fondly surmised and published of you , not promised by the State , nor demanded or expected by them . The Lawes Ecclesiasticall were in King Henries time , and by his authority appoynted to be compiled and digested , by a certaine company of Bishops and other diuines ioyned in Commission , with Ciuill and Canon-Lawyers , to the number of 32. but this worke being le●t imperfect by the death of that king , was afterward finished in the dayes , and by the command of his sonne Edward , which my selfe haue seene , though by the vntimely death of that king also , it neuer yet receiued publike allowance . And for other lawes , as the world knoweth , they neither could nor can make any without the consent of the Lords spirituall and temporall , and the approbation of the king . And lastly how the lawes of your Church crossed their affections , let their often and dangerous rebellions for the restoring of them testifie , there beeing none in trueth more fitting to the humour of a natural minded man , as may appeare by this , that a man of no religion , and like white paper , or sponged tables apt to receiue any impression , will sooner imbrace yours , then any other in the world . From this you digresse to their studying of the Scriptures , that they might be able to confute confession , satisfaction , penance , and to declaime against that tyranny of the Church , whereby themselues and their forefathers had bene kept in awe and obedience to God and their king . For their studying of the Scriptures , it is indeede a great eye-sore to you , because thereby your malice in withholding your followers from reading them , and withall your burdensome traditions thrust vpon them for your owne honor and gaine , but to their paine and grieuance , are clearely discouered and discerned , from that which before you call eternall trueth ; but to them nothing can bee more profitable , or to their guides more comfortable , so it bee done with reuerence and ●obriety , and ( as our Preface to the Bishops Bible exhorts ) [ not so much to dispute and contradict , as to learne and obey ] as being a practise which both our Sauiour himselfe , and his Apostles , and the holy Fathers of the Primitiue Church , ( specially S. Chrysostome ) in diuers homilies often and earnestly exhort their heares vnto . And for the confutation of those poyntes you name , I am of opinion ( and I thinke not without reason ) that many of our people are better able by Scriptures to confute them , as they are now held and vsed amongst you , then your greatest Bishops and Cardinals are from thence able to proue them , of whom some haue not sticked to professe that they thought that time which they passed in reading the Scriptures to be of all other the most vnprofitably spent , preferring Tullies Orations before Pauls Epistles , and Aristotles Ethikes before Solomons Prouerbes . B. C. 25. To the Clergiemen that would turne with the times , beside the possibilitie of present preferment by the alteration , was giuen shortly after leaue to marrie , & to purchase , and to enioy the profit and pleasure of the world , as well as the laitie , and what 1 carnall minded Monke or Priest would not with might and maine keepe open the breach after he was once plunged in it rather then to be in danger to forgoe so pleasing a cōmoditie : Hence did arise a necessitie of speaking and writing against Vowes , Vrginitie , Pouertie , Fasting , Praying , Watching , Obedience , and all that austeri●ie of life , which is by the Lawes of the Church required in a monasticall and Priestly conuersation . G. H. 25. Little hope was there giuen for the present to the Church-men that yeelded to the King for matter of preferment , since the Abbots and Priors were not onely turned out of doores , but their houses rased , and their goods and lands confi●cated . And for the Bishops , none of their places thereby fell voide , they all ( Rochester onely excepted ) ioyntly concurring with the king in casting off the Romish yoke : and for their marrying & purchasing , neither of thē were permitted , during the reigne of king Henry , who liued & reigned somewhat aboue 14. yeres after the breach with Rome : Howbeit if wee may credite Mr. Cambden , an vnpartiall Antiquarie , Churchmen were not forbidden mariage in England till the yere 1102. [ then Anselme Archbishop of Canterburie ( sayeth hee ) offered violence both to nature and to the Scriptures ] which he writes vpon occasion of one Ealphegus , a Priest famous for his learning , who was married and dwelt in the South part of Deuonshire : And further he alledgeth the words of Henry of Huntindon touching that act of Anselme [ He forbadwiues to the English Priests , being neuer before forbidden , which to some seemed a thing very decent , to others as dangerous , least whiles they aimed to a puritie aboue their reach ▪ they might fall into horrible impurities , to the dishonour of CHRISTS Name , and their profession . ] Those words of Cambden before quoted , together with these of Huntindon by him alledged , are commaunded to be rased by the Spanish Index : But they might aswell haue rased those of the●I ●I . in Platina , auouching that hee saw great reason why Priests should be restrained of mariage ; but greater why it should be restored them , or those of Cassander [ by that ouer rigorous and vnseasonable constitution ( speaking of restraint of marriage in Churchmen ) wee see much grieuous and abominable scandall to haue arisen in the Church , ] or those of Mantuan touching S ● . Hillary , Bishop of Poictiers in France . Non tibi progenies nocuit , non obfuit vxor Legitimo coniuncta toro — Or lastly those of the same Poet , speaking of the father of Nazianzen . Praesule Patre satus , nam tunc idiura sinebant , — non horruit illâ Tempestate Deus Thalamos , cunabula , toedas . And in another place of the father of Basil , and Gregorie Nyssen , Tutius esse volunt qua lex diuina sinebat Isse viâ , veterumque sequi vestigia patrum : Quorum vita fuit melior cum coniuge , quam nunc Nostra sit exclusis Thalamis , & coni●gis vsu. And if marrying be allowed them , I see no reason but they should withall be allowed purchasing , as they are and alwayes haue beene in the Easterne Church , * hee being worse then an Infidell that prouideth not for those of his owne houshold . To conclude wee neither speake nor write against lawfull Vowes , but the rashnesse of them , and impossibilitie in performing them : Not against true Virginity ; but the fained shew of it , and the preferring it by so many degrees before the honourable estate of mariage : Not against necessary Pouertie , but the voluntarie choise of it , when more good may be done by possessing and vsing those meanes God hath sent vs : Not against Fasting ; but the pharesaicall vse of it , and making it part of diuine worship : Not against Praying ; but the performance of it in a strange tongue , rather for custome then for conscience , rather by number then by weight , in drawing neere vnto God with our lippes , when our hearts are farre from him : Not against Watching ; but the pretended apish imitation and merit in it : Not against Obedience ; but the abuse of it in the enterprising of damnable and desperate attempts . Lastly , not against austeritie of life ; but inciuilitie , and that shew of wisedome which S. Paul censureth in the second to the Col. Consisting in voluntary Religion and humblenesse of minde , and not sparing the bodie . You doe well to adde that all these are required in a Monasticall conuersation , but how they were or are performed , God knowes , and the world not vndeseruedly suspects . B. C. 26. Vpon these conditions , the Lords , the Commons , and the Clergie were content to beleeue , that the King was Supreme head of the Church of England : Not that they did thinke so indeed , or that they desired to augment his authoritie ; but that they might bee protected by him , & freely enioy those commodities which they thought schisme had brought vnto them , and feared the vnity of the Church might againe take from them : Hence did arise a necessitie of inueighing against the Pope and the Church of Rome , as against Antichrist and Babylon , and the greatest enemies of the State of England : Insomuch that that Clergie man was most acceptable to them , and in their opinion most worthy of preferments , that could most confidently preach and write the most foule and monstrous assertions of the Pope , and the Church of Rome , though they were neuer so false . 1 These and such like are those temporall respects , which would faine seeme the daughters of those doctrines which themselues haue brought foorth , and to be diuided from the Catholike Church by doctrine , when they themselues haue caused the doctrine of diuision . G. H. 26. Vpon these conditions , you say , that the Lords , and Commons , and Clergie , were content to beleeue , that the King was supreame head of the Church of England , whereas your selfe before confesse , that these conditions were afterward graunted to the Clergie , who notwithstanding , were the forwardest in perswading the King to accept and assume that title , as may appeare by the booke set out by the whole Conuocation of England , intituled , The Institution of a Christian man , besides the Treatises of diuers particular Bishops to the same purpose , as namely Stephen Gardiners discourse of true obedience , together with Bonners Preface annexed to it , Longelands Sermon , and Tunstals Letter to Cardinall Poole , all which are extant to be reade and seene at this day , and surely he that shall obserue their vehement protestations , specially of Gardiner , whom I hold the most sufficient among them for learning , and withall the soundnesse and weight of the reasons , which they enforce against the Popes pretended iurisdiction , will easily beleeue , that they thought in very deede as they wrote , that their minds and their pennes concurred in one . But from hence ( you say ) arose a necessitie of enuying against the Pope and the Church of Rome , as against Antichrist and Babylon , as if his Holinesse had neuer beene graced with the title of Antichrist , before Henry assumed his title of supreame head ; nor Rome called Babylon before England was freed from that Babylonish captiuity . Whereas your famous Cardinall hath none other proofe from Scripture , that S. Peter was euer at Rome , but by expounding Rome to be the Babylon , from whence he dated his first Epistle : And when the seuerall markes of Antichrist shall be applied to any so properly , as to the Bishop of Rome , I will confesse he is iniuriously so styled ; in the meane time , I can hardly imagine any so foule and monstrous assertions , which some of your Popes haue not deserued , euen by the confession of your owne Writers , it being enough to make a modest man blush in reading , and relating that which they blushed not to act , nay boasted of being acted : in so much as I doubt not , but I may confidently affirme , that neither the Catalogue of Emperours , taking in the Heathenish among the Christians , nor any one succession of Kings in the world , since the first creation of it to this present age , euer afforded so many monsters of men , so many incarnate deuils , so expert in all kind of villanies , as that of your Popes : neither can any one King or Emperour be named , whom some of your Popes haue not out-stripped . And what needed then any imitation of your side , in faining false assertions , where true were so plentifull ? B. C. 27. In all these and all other doctrine of diuision , men haue receiued great countenance and encouragement from Geneua : For although M. Iohn Caluin were neuer any good subiect , or friend to Bishop , 1 Duke , or King , yet hee did so fit the common people with new doctrine , that no Gospel can be so 2 pleasing to them , nor so light some as his : for finding Geneua to be fallen out both with their Bishop , who was their ancient Prince , and their Duke , to whom they 3 pretended against their Bishop , and to bee all in a combustion amongst themselues for want of gouernment , although he were then a stranger , and a very 4 young man , of some sixe and twenty or seuen and twenty yeeres olde at the most , yet he thought good vpon the opportunity to giue the venture , and to step in himselfe to be founder of a new Church and state amongst them : And for that purpose , hee 5 found them such a Catechisme , as they might easily contemne all ancient learning and authority , and saue themselues by a strong fancie , which hee called 6 faith : And this pleased the Bourgers of Geneua so well , that they called a meeting , and caused all the Citizens to sweare , that that Catechisme was true , and all 7 Popery false ; as may appeare in Caluins life written by Beza , and prefixed to his Epistles . And although the ministeriall Presbitery of Geneua haue lost much of M. Caluins greatnesse , yet the Citie hath had the 8 fortune euer since by the helpe of their neighbours , to hold out against their Bishop and the Duke , and all their ancient gouernours . G. H. 27. You passe on in this Section , and the next to passe your censure vpon Geneua and Caluin , in as much as from them wee haue receiued great countenance and encouragement ; whereas neither Geneua nor Caluin were either of them of so much greatnesse , as to afford vs any great countenance . Yet for Geneua may truly thus much bee said , euen out of the mouth of Bodin a professed enemie in religion , that neither drunkennesse , nor idlenesse , nor professed Beggerie , nor open wantonnesse were to be found in that Citie , and that it flourished not so much in riches and power , as in piety and vertue , which God himselfe by strange and miraculous deliuerances of them at sundry times , hath in some fort testified to the world : Howbeit as a worthy Knight hath well obserued , [ the Friars would make their followers beleeue , that it is aboue all other places a professed retreat and sanctuarie of Roguerie , giuing harbour to all the runnagates , traytors , rebels , and wicked persons of all other Countries ; by which speech very generally in Italy spread and beleeued , some memorable accidents haue at some time happened , sundry of their picking and loose Friars , hearing Geneua to bee a place of good fellowship , and thinking the worse prankes they plaied with their owne ere they came thither , to finde the better welcome at their comming , robbed their Couents of their Church-plate , and other repositaries , and brought away the bootie in triumph to Geneua , vnder the colour of being reformed in their religion , where their aduancement hath beene straight to the gibbet , for their labour ; a reward vnexpected , and such as caused them to complaine pittifully of their wrong information . For such is the extraordinary seuer●ty of this Citie , as to punish crimes committed without their estate , with no lesse rigour then if they had beene amongst them . And not many yeeres since , it was the lot of a Spanish Gallant , who stood vpon his state , and caried a Mint about him , to repaire thither to haue stamps made him for the coyning of Pistolets : being apprehended and charged with it , his defence was , that he vnderstood their Citie was free , and gaue receite to all offenders , but withall ( said they ) when they were come they punished their offences , a distinction which the poore Gentleman neuer before studied , and the learning of it then cost him no lesse then his head-peece , ] And for Caluin I marueile that hauing so diligently read S. Augustine , and so highly esteeming him , you should haue such a tooth against Caluine , who professeth of S. Augustine in the latter end of his Chapter of the Sacraments in generall , that he often quoted him [ vt optimum , & ex tota antiquitate fidelissimum testem ] as the best and soundest witnesse which antiquity afforded : and he might wel say he quoted him often , there being no Tome , & scarcely any one booke of Augustines , out of which Caluine through the foure bookes of his Institutions , cites not many passages to the number of 280. if my computation faile not : and for the greatest part so iudiciously to the purpose , that I may well doubt , or rather indeed not doubt at all whether Mr. Caluin or Dr. Carrier had read S. Augustine with the greater attention and iudgment : And for their knowledge in Scriptures , I am sure malice it selfe will easily acknowledge , there was no comparison . Dr. Stapleton who was not otherwise very fauourable to Caluin , yet sends this testimony after him in the Preface of his Antidote against Caluins exposition of the Acts of the Apostles , [ that his Commentary on that booke was most elaborat , and his disputations acute and accurate ] and in another place [ for the literall sense hee is a diligent interpretour , so morall , so elegant , so sweet , that hee is read greedily of the Catholikes themselues , whom I haue heard sometimes wishing that those thinges beeing cut out which make against our Church and beliefe , hee might come abroad gelded , and that by that meanes his Commentaries might proue ●xceeding profitable . ] Thuanus doubts not to testifie of him that he was [ 1 acrivir , acvehementi ingenio , & admirabili facundia praeditus : a man of a smart and strong wit , and endued with admirable eloquence , [ who when hee had spent seuen yeeres ( saith he ) in wrestling with diuers diseases , yet was his diligence in his vocation thereby nothing lessened , neither did hee spare himselfe in the continuall course of his writing : ] but Panig yrolla his testimony is yet more obserueable , in as much as he was an Italian and a Friar , and purposely preached many bitter Sermons against Caluin at Thurin in Sauoy : His words in effect are these , [ 2 Caluin to speake the trueth , was a man of a quicke vnderstanding , and cleare iudgment , of great variety of reading , and rare indowments of nature . ] Salmeron , one of the first ten of Loyolaes foundation , of whom Ribadeneira in his Catalogue of the Iesuiticall writers witnesseth [ that by his speaking in the Councill of Trent , hee bred admiration , and an opinion of great learning in his hearers , being a professed and perpetual enemy of heretikes , whō he persecuted and quelled by his disputations , his lectures , his writings , ] yet ●his very man as eager and stout a champion as he was for the Church of Rome , and against the Caluinists , makes no bones to borrow almost whole pages from Caluin , as may appeare to any that please to compare their expositions on the second chapter to Titus , the 11. and 12. verses , a taste whereof I will here present vnto the readers view ; [ Apparuit enim gratia Dei salutaris omnibus hominibus . Caluin . A fine redemptionis argumentatur , quem docet esse studium piè & rectè viuendi , vnde sequitur boni Pastoris officium esse , potiùs hortari ad sanctam vitam , quàm vanis quaestionibus occupare hominum mentes . Redemitnos ( inquit Zacharias in suo cantico ) vt in sanctitate & innocentia seruiamus illi omnibus diebus vitae nostrae . Eiusdem rationis est quod dicit Paulus , Gratia Dei apparuit nos erudiens ; significat enim vice institutionis esse nobis debere ad vitam rectè formandam . ] [ Salmeron vpon the same words , Dicendumest Apostolum argumentari à fine redemptionis , quae docet studium sobriè & iustè & piè viuendi : nam praestat Doctorem ad honestam vitam homines adhortari , quàm vanis quaestionibus mentes hominum occupare ; nam ad id sumus redempti , vt in sanitate & iustitia seruiamus De● omnibus diebus nostris , & ob id apparuit gratia Dei , vt per eam instituamur ad vitam rectè formandam . ] From this collation we cannot but inferre , as one doth of Plato , and Philo the Iew , vel Philonizat Plato , vel Platonizat Philo , and another of Ramus and Viues , aut Ramizat Viues , aut Viuizat Ramus : so of Caluin and Salmeron , aut Salmeron Caluinizat , aut Caluinus Salmeronizat ; either Salmeron borrowes from Caluin , or Caluin from Salmeron , it beeing in my apprehension ( without the helpe of a miracle ) vtterly impossible , and consequently incredible , that two men should fall so neere vpon the same conceptions and wordes , without the sight one of anothers writings , now that Salmeron is the borrower , and not Caluin , it appeares from hence that in his exposition of the 10. verse of the third Chapter of the same Epistle , he mentioneth Marlorates Commentary on that place , which was compiled out of the Comments of diuers other learned men , but specially out of Caluins ; besides Caluin died in the yeere 1564. as Beza witnesseth , and Salmeron in the yeere 1595. as Ribadineira hath left it vpon record : So that it might well be , and I verily thinke it was so , that Caluin was dead many yeeres before Salmeron set vpon this exposition of the Epistles , specially of that to Titus , which among his sixteene seuerall Tomes is ranged in the last saue one : So that it seemes he wrote it not long before his death , and consequently many yeeres after Caluin was dead . Lastly the vniformity of the style , and the tenour of writing plainely discouers that Caluin was the creditour , and Salmeron the debtor , or rather the 1 thiefe , which I the more marueile at , considering in the Preface of his exposition vpon the Epistles he professeth , [ his intent was chiefly to dispute against the heretikes of these times , who called themselues Pa●ls Diuines , and gloried in his doctrine . ] And in the third part of his first booke next following , proposeth diuers questions touching the Church , and the gouernement against Luther and Caluin , by name . Now for Maldonate and Iansenius , though they colour the matter more cunningly in the change of words , yet are they nothing lesse beholding to Caluin in many places for the sence : And thus we see how out of the mouthes and pennes of those , who for reputation of learning were farre aboue , and for bitternesse of malice were nothing inferiour to Dr. Carrier . Caluins rare and singular gifts are truely acknowledged . But he was neuer ( you say ) any good subiect or friend , to Bishop , Duke or King : It was the same imputation which by the Iewes was cast vpon Christ ; and by the Pagans vpon the Christians , in the Primitiue Church , as may appeare in Tertullians apology for them deliuered by him to the Empero●rs Seuerus and Antoninus ; a great part whereof is spent in wiping off that aspersion , and therefore Caluin may beare it at your hands with the greater patience . Against the state of Bishops , if he any where write otherwise then becomes him , we may well impute it to his zeale against the great abuse of that order in the Romane hierarchie , and his desire of establishing his owne discipline , which though he did well to erect at Geneua ( as being a kinde of gouernment most fit for that city ; ) yet to shew that wee make him no god , we professe he did ill in imposing it as necessary on all other Churches . What friend hee was to Kings , beside infinite other passages through his voluminous writings , his onely Epistle to Francis the French king , prefixed to his Institutions , doth sufficiently declare , which ( as Beza not without good reason thinketh ) if that king had but read , it would haue occasioned the giuing of some deepe wound to the whore of Babylon , hee being not of the humour of those kings that followed after him in the kingdome , but a sharpe censurer , of a deepe iudgement , a great patrone of learning , and of himselfe not auerse from that side , and though in his Commentaries vpon Amos , he seeme to mislike Henry the 8th . his title of Supreame Head , which by Stephen Gardiner and other sycophants of Court , was then interpreted to spread as farre , & include as ample power as that he had taken from the Pope , yet the lawfull Supremacie of kings , he both alloweth and defendeth , as his Maiesty truely witnesseth for him in his Catalogue of Tortus lies annexed to his Premonition , and therein hee sheweth himselfe a better friend to kings , then D. Carrier was when he thus passed his censure on him ; for though hee often dranke to his Maiesties health , as he professeth in a letter which he thought worthy the imparting to all well minded Catholikes ; yet withall hee laboured by might and maine to readuance and reestablish his authority amongst vs , who hath professedly crossed and dashed the taking of that oath , by which is onely testified that naturall allegiance which we owe his Maiestie . [ Now for his comming to Geneua , and the founding of that gouernment & discipline there , which continues in force amongst thē with no ill successe at this day , whereas you tell vs , that being a very yong man , of some 26. or 27. yeres old at the most , yet he thought good vpon the opportunity to giue the venture and step in himselfe . For his age I will not much striue with you , but onely desire you to remember that some of your 4 Popes ; but many of your Bishops , and Archbishops , and Cardinals haue bin thrust , or at least haue thrust themselues into places of greater charge , before they arriued to those yeres , and perchance before they saw one halfe , or a quarter so many . Yet it cannot bee denyed but it pleaseth God sometimes to raise vp the Spirit of a yong Daniel , or a yong Samuel , or a yong Timothie , for the effecting of that which an old Ely is vnfit for , yong men for the most , being most zealous and aduenturous , but with all more inconsiderate , and old men more cold and remisse , but withall more wary and circumspect , according to that of S. Ierome in one of his Epistles to S Augustine , Bos lassus fortius figit pedem , The aduice of an old man is commōly best , but the execution of young : The former haue alwayes beene accounted fitter for setled businesse , but the latter for new enterprises , in as much as men of age commonly obiect too much , consult too long , aduenture too little , repent too soone , and seldome driue businesse home to the full periode ; but content themselues with a mediocritie of successe , as louing to sleepe in whole skinne . I am not of that Rabbyes mind , who because in Scripture [ Yong men are sayed to see visions , and old men to dreame dreames , ] thereupon inferreth , that young men are admitted neerer to God then olde , because vision is a clearer reuelation then a dreame : But yet experience teacheth vs , and a noble Gentleman before named , hath rightly obserued it , that the more a man drinketh of the world , the more it intoxicateth , and age doth profit rather in the powers of vnderstanding , then in the vertues of the will and affections : So that Caluin though hee had beene younger when he came to Geneua , then you make him ; yet had his youth bin no sufficient cause to 5 despise him , considering , as the Lawyers for the punishing of a malefactor vnder age are wont to say , malitia supplet aetatem , so may I much rather for a iust defence , scientia or prudentia supplet aetatem , which shewes it selfe in this , that before his comming thither , he had written his excellent Commentarie vpon Seneca de Clementia , and at Orleans had beene offered the degree of Doctorship in the lawes , without paying so much as the ordinary fees , by the generall consent of all the publike professours of that facultie : whereas their common determination is now sayd to bee , Accipiamus pecuniam , & dimittamus asinum in patriam : but to draw neerer to the purpose : Caluin , how rare and singular soeuer his gifts were , euen beyond his age , yet withall they were so tempered and seasoned with modestie , that single he attempted nothing in the reforming of that Church , as Mr. Doctour pretends ; but by aduise , and with consent of the chiefe Pastours , whom hee found there , Farell and Viret , which three , a fourth Minister in the same citie hath thus happily ioyned together . Gallica mirata est Caluinum Ecclesia , nuper Quo nemo docuit doctius : Est quoque te nuper mirata Farelle tonantem , Quo nemo tonuit fortius : Et miratur adhuc fundentem mella Viretum , Quo nemo fatur dulcius : Scilicet , aut tribus his seruabere testibus olim , Aut interibis Gallia . Nay he was so farre from excluding them , or putting himselfe out of his ambition into the businesse ( as Master Doctour would haue it , ) that by the former of them himselfe was in a maner drawen into it : for passing through Geneua by chance , and intending to trauell for his studies into farther parts , to Basil , or Strasbourge , Farel requesting him long and earnestly to set vp his rest there , and to ioyne his labours with them , for the good of that Citie , when hee sawe hee could not preuaile , being a man inspired with an Heroicall spirit , he suddenly breakes out into this vehement speech , [ At ego tibi sludia tua praetexenti denuntio omnipotentis Dei nomine , futurum , vt nisi in opus istud Domini nobiscum incumbas , tibi non tam Christum quàm te ipsum querenti , Dominus maledicat . ] But I ( saith he ) denounce vnto you pretending your studies ; in the Name of God Almightie , that except you set your selfe with vs to this worke of the Lord , it will come to passe , that seeking your selfe and not Christ , hee will send a curse vpon your proceedings . ] With which dreadfull threat , Caluin being terrified , submitted himselfe to the disposition of the Presbiterie and Magistracie : whence we may also gather that Caluin was neither the sole , nor first founder of that gouernement , but that the seeds of it were sowen , and the foundation layed before his comming thither . Now let the Reader iudge of the truth of that which Mr. Doctour hath published , namely that Caluin thought good vpon the opportunitie to giue the venture , and to step in himselfe to be the founder of a new Church , and State among them , and withall consider whether Mr. Dr. professing that he had read Caluins life witten by Beza ( frō whom I haue borrowed , what touching this point I haue deliuered ; hee fought not against the light of his own conscience , when hee thus wrote touching Caluin : Neither ( to speak a truth ) can I cōceiue any likely reason why he should aspire to be sole or chiefe commander in that Citie , which ( as Beza truely witnesseth of it , ) is and hath beene Paupertatis officina , the shop of pouertie , in so much that when hee dyed , his whole estate ( together with his studie of bookes sold at a deare rate , could hardly be valued at 300. Crownes , verefying therein that notable speech of his owne in the Preface of his Commentarie on the Psalmes : that 6 I am no money-monger ( saith hee ) if liuing I cannot perswade men , my death will put it out of doubt . Lastly , for the better clearing of this point , and the discouering of the trueth of his proceedings at his first comming to Geneua , I will hereunto adde the relation of one , who professedly wrote against the necessitie of imposing that discipline on other Churches , which he there erected , and therefore may well be thought not to speake partially on his behalfe , and yet for his learning and singular iudgement to haue vnderstood what he wrote better then Dr. Carier : His words are . 7 [ A founder it had ( saith hee ) whom for mine owne part I thinke incomperably the wisest man that euer the French Church did enioy , since the time it enioyed him , his bringing vp was in the studie of the ciuill Law : diuine knowledge hee gathered , not by hearing or reading so much , as by teaching others : for though thousands were debters to him as touching knowledge in that kind , yet he to none , but only to God the author of that most blessed fountaine the booke of life , and of the admirable dexteritie of wit , together with the helpes of other learning which were his guides , till being occasioned to leaue France he fell at the length vpon Geneua , which Citie the 8 Bishop and Clergie thereof , had a little before ( as some doe affirme ) forsaken , being of likelihood frighted with the peoples sudden attempt for the abolishment of Popish Religion : the euent of which enterprise they thought not safe for themselues to waite for in that place . At the comming of Caluin thither the forme of their ciuill regiment was popular , as it continueth at this day : Neither King , nor Duke , nor Nobleman , of any authoritie or power ouer them , but Officers chosen by the people , yeerely out of themselues , to order all things with publike consent : For Spirituall gouernement they had no Lawes at all agreed vpon , but did what the Pastours of their Soules by perswation could winne them vnto . Caluin being admitted one of their preachers , and a Diuinitie Reader amongst them , considered how dangerous it was that the whole estate of that Church should still hang on so slender a threed , as the liking of an ignorant multitude is , if it haue power to change whatsoeuer it listeth : wherefore taking vnto him two of the other Ministers for more countenance of the action ( albeit the rest were all against it ) they mooued and in the end perswaded with much adoe the people to binde themselues by solemne oath , first , neuer to admit the Papacie amongst them againe , and secondly , to liue in obedience vnto such orders concerning the exercise of their Religion , and the former Eccesiasticall gouernment , as those their true and faithfull Ministers of Gods word had agreeably to Scripture set down for that end and purpose . ] Whence wee may obserue , first , that Caluin was no founder of a new State amongst them ( as Mr. Doctor would beare vs in hand ) but as hee found it popular at his entrance , so at his death hee left it : Secondly , the citizens swore not that all Popery was false , as Mr. Doctor assures , but bound themselues with an oath , neuer to admit of the Papacie ( that is as I take the Popes vsurped authoritie ) amongst them againe , and for his Catechisme one hee wrote which Beza calles opus admirandum , an admirable peece of worke , so much desired of all nations , that himselfe hauing first written it in Latine and French , it was afterward at the request of strangers translated into High Dutch , Low Duch , English , Spanish , and by Immanuel Tremelius into Hebrew , and by Henry Stephens into Greeke : but that ( as I suppose ) which you meane was the heads of Christian Religion comprised in a few positions , not vnlike our Booke of Articles which we are bound to subscribe vnto : wherein , for any thing I can finde , hee speaketh none otherwise of Faith , then the Scriptures giue him warrant , which , it may bee in your opinion are but a strong fancie neither : but had you as throughly read him vpon that point of Iustification by faith , as Pighius did , though with a mind to confute him , you might haue had the grace to haue yeelded in opinion to him , as hee did by the confession of Tapper in the 8th . Article of his second Tome , sometimes his fellow-pupil vnder Adrian , the VI. Pope of that name , neither doth hee in that Catechisme teach them to contemne all ancient learning and authoritie as you faine , but fained authoritie and learning falsely so called : For what learning haue wee more ancient then the Scriptures ? or what authoritie more binding ; and yet for authoritie of the most auncient Councels and godly Fathers , I thinke hee voucheth more then euer Doctor Carrier read , though hee built not his faith vpon them , and teach others to doe the like : in regard of such auncient learning and authoritie , being but humane ( the aduise of the Prophet is to bee regarded , or rather the command of God by the Prophets mouth to bee obeyed , * Thus saith the Lord , Stand in the wayes and see , and aske for the olde pathes , where is the good way and walke therein , and yee shall finde rest for your soules : For it is true , that with all wise and moderate persons , that kind of antiquitie obtain●th that authoritie and reuerence , as it is sufficient matter to moue them to make a stand , and to discouer and take a viewe , but it is no warrant to guide or to conduct them , a iust ground , I say , it is of deliberation , but not of direction : but on the other side ( as it is well obserued by a writer whom Master Doctor himselfe before nameth with honour ) who knoweth not that time is truely compared to a streame , that carrieth downe fresh and pure waters into the salt sea of corruption , which enuironeth all humane actions ; and therefore if man shall not by his industry , vertue , and policie , as it were with the Oare , rowe against the streame and inclination of time , all institutions and ordinances ( be they neuer so pure ) will corrupt and degenerate . Finally , for the iustifying of that which you haue deliuered touching Caluine and his proceedings , you send vs to Bezaes narratiō of Caluins life , but had you not in the perusal therof shut vp the eye of charitie , and onely opened that of malice and enuie , you might as easily haue seene and obserued in the same narration , his wonderfull assiduitie in reading , in preaching , in writing , in conferring ; insomuch that being aduised by his physicians , and by his friends requested a little to forbeare , in regard of the weakenesse of his body , and his manifold infirmities , his vsuall answere was , that [ idlenesse to him was the greatest sickenesse , or Vultis me otiosum à Domino deprehendi , will yee that the Lord when hee commeth should finde me doing nothing ? ] his zeale to Gods trueth , and courage in maintaining it , such , that he not only crushed the errors of the Church of Rome , but quelled like another Hercules so many new monsters of opinions by the clubbe of Gods word , that the very mētioning the names of the authors , and summ● of their seuerall heresies , would take vp much time and many lines : his sound and profound knowledge in his profession such , that Melancthon , no childe in Diuinitie , was wont to style him by an excellencie The Diuine : his temperance such , that for many yeres he tooke but one repast a day : his modesty such that by his will hee ordained after his death , there should be no monumēt erected to him , or so much as a Tombe-stone layed ouer him ; yet Beza his Colleague would not spare to bestowe this ensuing Epitaph on him , which hee was as able , as ( vpon that sad occasion ) vnwilling to afford , and the other ( out of his deserts ) as worthy , as ( out of his modesty the crowne of all his other vertues ) vnwilling to receiue . Romae ruentis terror ille maximus , Quem mortuum lugent boni , horrescunt mali , Ipsa à quo potuit virtutem discere virtus , Cur adeo exiguo , ignotoque in cespite clausus Caluinus lateat rogas ? Caluinum assidue Comitata modestia viuum Hoc tumulo manibus condidit ipsa suis. O te beatum cespitem tanto hospite : O cui inuidere cuncta possint marmora . After his death many of the citizens who had often seene him before , yet much desired to see him againe , and many strangers came from forreine parts purposely to know him , and to bee knowen vnto him ; among whom was a worthy Gentleman at that time Ambassador in France for the Queen of England : and howsoeuer malice haue found Lucianus in his name , charitie hath found Alcuinus . B. C. 28. Now it is the nature of all common people especially of Ilanders , not onely still to affect more and more 1 noueltie and 2 libertie , and to bee weary of their 3 olde Clergie , but also to 4 admire any thing that comes from beyond the Seas , and to cherish and comfort one another with reporting the good successe which Schismatikes and Rebels happen to haue against their lawfull Prelates , and ancient gouernours , and to impute all their good fortune to their new Religion . Hence it is come to passe that that doctrine which is indeed the lawfull doctrine of the Church of England , is neglected or contemned , as a relike or a 5 ragge of Popery , and Caluins institutions being come from Geneua , and fairely bound vp with the 6 Preface of the Gospell , is dispersed throughout all Schooles , Cities and Villages of England , and hath so infected Priest and people , as although it bee 7 against law , yet is it 8 cryed vp by voyces to be the only current Diuinitie in Court and Countrey , in hope belike that it may one day serue the turne in England , as well as it hath done in Geneua , and in 9 other places where it hath preuailed . G. H. 28. Your Countrey-men are herein much bound to you , in that you make Ilanders so much to affect nouelty , ascribing their change of religion to the changeablenesse of their nature : whereas other nations in the continent of Europe , are by consent of those , who are interessed in neither , by nature more changeable then they . That Polander who first by his pen encountred his Maiesties Premonition , labouring to wype off the staine of the Powder-treason , from the religion of the actours , laid it vpon the nature of an English man , whom in all religions he accuses to be naturally disloyall to his Prince ; to his imputation of disloyalty , you adde the affectation of nouelty , thereby to lay a staine vpon our religion : But , Qui mala non mutat , in bonis non perseuerat . The seruant is not aboue his lord , nor the disciple aboue his master : and we know that it was the question which the Iewes proposed to our Sauiour , [ * What new doctrine is this ? ] and of the Grecians to S. Paul , [ * May wee not know what this new doctrine wherof thou speakest is ? ] but we may truely answere both in their defence , and our owne , 1 Nos non sumus nouatores , sed vos estis veteratores , It is not we that affect nouelty : but you the counterfait face of antiquity , thereby labouring to make a peace , and to strike a league with vs , as the Gibeonites did with Ioshua , * deceiuing him by the shew of old sackes , olde bottles , old shooes , old garments , and bread that was drie and moldy . You farther charge vs with comforting one another in reporting the good successe which Schismatikes and rebels happen to haue against their gouernors , whereas the very enemies of those whome you call Schismatikes and Rebels haue bene many times inforced to acknowledge their good successe to haue come , not so much from good fortune , as from the extraordinary hand of God ; so that they haue beene constrained to crie out with Pharaohs sorcerers , The finger of God is here . At the siege of Rochell , the inhabitants being brought to great want , ( as Thuanus reports it ) euery tide were brought in a kinde of shel-fish , ( he calles them Surdones , or Pectunculos ) which I take to bee little scallops or muscles , and that in great abundance , for the relieuing of the besieged ; they hauing neuer bene seene vpon that coast before that time , nor since . Of Ziska the Bohemian , Aeneas Syluius , afterwards Pius the second ( being Pius indeed before he was so in name ) recorded it to posterity , that eleuen times in fought battels , hee returned conquerour out of the field , and was himselfe neuer foiled . The Duke of Medina , Generall of the Spanish inuincible nauy , sent against vs for the rooting of vs out in the yeere 1588. and blessed by the Apostolicall benediction , when hee saw how the windes , and the waues , and the starres in their order fought against them , professed he thought Iesus Christ was turned Lutheran . [ Hispanus ipse ( saith our famous Annalist ) Cladem acceptam , vt à Deo , composito animo tulti , Deoque et Sanctis quod non tristior fuerit gratias egit , et per Hispaniam agi iussit . The King of Spaine himselfe tooke the blow patiently , as giuen by God , and both himselfe gaue thankes , and commanded his Subiects through Spaine to doe the like , that it fell no heauier : ] in the consideration of which admirable successe , we might apply that to our Church and Religion , which was written of the Emperour Theodosius . O nimium dilecta Deo , cui militat equor , Et coniurati veniunt ad classica venti . Vpon that occasion , and not without reason were some coynes stamped , with this inscription : Glory to God alone , others with this , Man proposeth , God disposeth : and lastly , others with this , Impius fugit , nemine sequente . Which all tend to this purpose , that it was God fought for vs in the maintainance of his owne cause . I will conclude this point with the testimonie of Bizarro an Italian , and , for any thing I can find , no Protestant , speaking of our late renowned Soueraigne , [ Quod verò ad me attinet , id tantum in praesentia dixerim , Elizabetham Britanniae Reginam , singulari Dei opt . max. bonitate , ac prouidentia gubernari . Quamuis enim ipsamet egregiâ virtute ac sapientia praedita sit , et apud se consiliarios habeat summo iudicio , summaque prudentia prestantes ; tamen fatendum est humana consilia persaepe inania reddi , nisi ea diuinitù regantur : Id vero vt ita esse iudicem , superiorum temporum facit recordatio , cum cogito quot interni externique hostes huic opt . Reginae insidiati sint , et quàm mirabiliter illam Deus ab eorum insidijs , atque conatibus eripuerit . Touching my selfe , I will onely say this for the present , that Elizabeth Queene of Britanny , hath beene hitherto preserued by the singular goodnesse and prouidence of almighty God. For though her selfe be indued with singular vertue and wisedome , and shee haue about her Counsellours of excellent iudgement and foresight in the managing of her affaires , yet must wee confesse that humane Counsels are often frustrated , vnlesse they bee guided from heauen ; and that I should so thinke , the remembrance of the passages of latter times inforceth me , when I call to minde how many home-bred and forraine enemies haue layed in waite for the life of that vertuous Queene ; and how miraculously God hath freed her from all their plots and assaults . ] You goe forward , and tell vs that from hence it is come to passe , that the lawfull doctrine of the Church of England is contemned as a ragge of Popery , and Caluins Institutions cried vp by voyces in Court and Countrey , in hope it may one day serue the like turne in England , as it hath done in Geneua , as if Geneua had not discharged her selfe of the claime of her Bishop and Duke , before Caluin compiled his Institutions , or as if we knew not that Caluins Institutions make nothing against the gouernment of lawfull Magistrates ; or if it bee a booke so dangerous as you would make it , a wonder it is to mee , that neither your selfe nor any as yet of that side , haue so much as vndertaken a through confutation of it . Must it needes be that all who imbrace his paines and learning in those Institutions , intend the subuersion of the state , or presently contemne the doctrine of the Church of England ? Your olde Master , Archbishop Whitegift was of another minde , who maintained to his vtmost the doctrine of the Church of England , and yet gaue he Caluin his due also , labouring alwayes where any occasion was offered , to countenance his writings with Caluins authority , and specially out of that booke which you most mislike , yeelding him the title of a famous and learned man : Nay , euen in the vse of things indifferent , hee giues this testimonie of his iudgement and moderation . [ 1 If Mr. Caluin were aliue , saith he , and rightly vnderstood the state of our Church and Controuersie , truly I verely beleeue that hee would condemne your doing , and I am the rather induced to thinke so , because I vnderstand him to haue allowed many things in the English Church , being at Geneua , which you altogether mislike . ] To this Archbishops testimonie , I could adde the opinion of his predecessours , Cranmer Grindal , and Parker , gathered out of their seuerall Epistles to Caluin and other writings ; but I will content my selfe with that of Bishop Iewell , who was so far frō neglecting or contemning the doctrine of the Church of England , as a relique or ragge of Poperie , as that the Confession extant in his Apologie for our Church , is registred as the authenticall doctrine of our Church , as well in the body , as in the harmony of Confessions : But Archbishop 2 Whitegift goeth farther , making both his Apology & the defence therof , to be the doctrine of the Church of England : And by this Archbishops authority was it ordered , that those his bookes should be bought of euery Parish , and chained in their Churches to be read of the people at vacant times : Yet this worthy Bishop in the defence of his Apologie , 3 termeth Caluin a reuerend Father , and worthy ornament of the Church of God. Now touching his booke of Christian Institution in particular , M. Hooker ( who is well knowne not to haue contemned the doctrine of the Church of England , as a ragge of Poperie ) thus writes . [ Two things ( saith he speaking of Caluin , in his Preface to his bookes of Ecclesiasticall policie ) of principall moment there are , which haue deseruedly procured him honour through the world : The one his exceeding paines in composing the Institutions of Christian religion : The other his no lesse industrious traua●les for exposition of holy Scripture , according to the same Institutions : In which two things whatsoeuer they were that afterward bestowed their labour , he gained the aduantage of preiudice against them , if they gaine-sayed , and of glory aboue them , if they consented : Then which I cannot imagine what could bee vttered more effectually . Thus malice would not suffer you to see that worth in Caluin and his Writings , which these Worthies professed and published , who were notwithstanding more earnest and zealous Patrones of the doctrine of the Church of England , then your selfe : But it may be you thought it would bee credit enough for you onely to enter the lists with so stout and renowned a champion : howbeit , to hunt after applause by dishonouring the names of famous men , was held by S. Ierome , and is accounted by all good and wise men , but a tricke of vaine and childish arrogancie , there being lesse comparison betwixt Carier and Caluin , then Caluin and Stapleton , whom notwithstanding 4 a great Diuine and publike professour of one of our owne Vniuersities , comparing together , professeth there was more sound Diuinity in Caluins little finger , then Stapletons head or whole body . I will conclude mine answere to this Section , with the words of a graue 5 Bishop yet liuing , no enemie to the doctrine of the Church of England , as his Writings shew : Caluin is so well knowen ( sayeth hee ) to all those that bee learned or wise , for his great paines and good labours in the Church of God , that a fewe snarling Friars cannot impeach his name , though you would neuer so wretchedly peruert his words . ] Thus much of Caluin and his Writings , for I durst not goe so farre as Thurius . Praeter Apostolicas post Christi tempora chartas , Huic peperere viro saecula nulla parem . B. C. 29. These reasons or rather corruptions of State haue so confounded the doctrine of the Church of England , and so slandered the doctrine of the Church of Rome , as it hath turned mens braines , and made the multitude on 1 both sides like two fooles , which being set backe to backe doe thinke they are as farre asunder , as the horizons are , they looke vpon : But if it please your Maiestie to 2 command them to turne each of them but a quarter about , and looke both one way to the seruice of God , and your Maiestie , and to the saluation of soules , they should presently see themselues to bee a great deale more neere in matters of doctrine● , then the Pu●itanicall Preachers on 3 both sides doe make them beleeue they are . I can not in the breuity of this discourse descend into particulars ; but if it please your Maiestie to command me , or any other honest man that hath taken paines , to vnderstand and obserue 4 all sides freely , and plainely to set downe the 5 difference betwixt Caluinisme , and the doctrine of England , established by Law , and then to shew Locos Concessos , and Locos Controuersos , betwixt the Church of England and the Church of Rome , I doubt not but the distance that will be left betwixt for matter of doctrine , may by your Maiesty be easily compounded . G. H. 29. Whether reason , or rather corruption of State haue not bred confusion , rather in the doctrine of the Church of Rome , then of England , let Romes infinite ambition and insatiable couetousnesse , masked vnder pretence of doctrine testifie . As long as the Bishops of Rome kept them to their profession in the gaining of soules to God , matters went wel for doctrine : but when once they turned Statists , & in stead of gaining soules , cast about for the gouernment of the world , then were their Friars and flatterers found , who were as readie to shape and frame her Doctrine according to the modell of State. Before the Councill of Trent ( which was called in the memorie of some yet liuing ) it is made euident by my learned brother Dr. Carleton in his Consent of the Catholike Church against the Tridentines , that the Doctrine of the rule of Controuersies of the Church , of Iustifying Faith , of Grace , was the same in the Church of Rome , which is now publikely taught and professed with vs. If by the Church of Rome , we will vnderstand her chiefe Prelates , not those Friars and flatterers which belonged rather to her Court then her Church ; from whence then arose this confusion of doctrine which followed after , but onely from that corruption of State which went before ? and yet it cannot but bee acknowledged , that as our bodies first warme our clothes , and then our clothes serue to keepe warme our bodies : so the corruption of State first brought foorth this confusion of doctrine ; but being brought foorth , the daughter serues to nourish and maintaine the mother . Now for the confounding of our doctrine , wee answere with S. Paul , [ * If our Gospel ( saith he ) be hid , it is hid to them that are lost ; ] So we if our doctrine bee confounded , it is to them , whom the God of this world hath confounded and blinded , lest the light of the glorious Gospel of CHRIST , who is the image of God , should shine vnto them . The second thing which you charge vs with , is the slandering the doctrine of the Church of Rome : and are your Romanists cleare of that accusation , or dare any man of iudgement and learning discharge them ? doth not 1 Pererius accuse Catharinus for calling that an intollerable and desperate opinion of Luther touching Reprobation , which notwithstanding was the same opinion , and none other ( as Pererius confesseth ) then 2 S. Augustine maintained touching the same point ? Doth not 3 Reynolds our Countrey man ( howbeit otherwise maliciously bitter against Caluin , specially in his Caluino Turcisme ) in his iudgement free Caluin from the imputation of making God the authour of sinne in his latter yeeres , which notwithstanding is still pressed vpon him , both by your selfe and others ? Doth not 4 Bellarmine cleare him from making the second person in Trinitie to be from himselfe , and not from the first , with which errour notwithstanding hee is charged by 5 Genebrard , by 6 Lyndan ; by 7 Canisius ? And for our owne Church doth not 8 Bristow affirme , that our Religion is prooued by experience to be indeed no Religion ? Doth not 9 Allen speaking of our Sacraments , Seruice , and Sermons , call them things which assuredly procure damnation ? Doth not Reynolds in the booke before named , endeuour to make our Religion worse then the Turkish , not distinguishing betwixt Caluinisme , and the doctrine of the Church of England ? But one example for all may be that lewd libeller , who in the very entrance of his libell exclaimeth , [ That the Protestants haue no Faith , no Hope , no Charitie , no Repentance , no Iustification , no Church , no Altar , no Sacrifice , no Priest , no Religion , no Christ. ] What shall we say to these intemperate Spirits ? if they speake of malice , then I say with Michael the Archangel . * The Lord rebuke them : But if they speake of ignorance , then I say with the holy Martyr S. Steuen * Lord lay not this sinne to their charge , or with our blessed SAVIOVR , * Father forgiue them they wote not what they doe . Now for our slandring the doctrine of the Church of Rome , when you or any other shall produce the like Assertions out of any Writer amongst vs of note and credite , I shall be content to yeelde farther credite to your Assertion , then as yet I finde reason I should : for the residue of this Section I referre the Reader to my marginall notes , as deseruing , in my iudgement , no better or other answere . B. C. 30. But perhaps there is so great opposition in matter of State , that although the doctrine might bee compounded , yet it is impossible to heare of agreement ; and if there bee the same reason of State which there was in beginning , and continued all Queene Elizabeths dayes , there is as little hope now that your Maiestie should hearken vnto Reconciliation , as then was that King 1 Henry the VIII . or Queene Elizabeth would : but when I doe , with the greatest respect I can , consider the State of your Maiestie , your Lords , your Commons , and your Clergie , I do see as little cause in holding out in reason of State as I doe in trueth of doctrine . G. H. 30. From the matter of doctrine you passe to thereason of State , in which , if your reasons be of no greater waight or truth then in the former , his Maiestie , his Lords , his Commons , his Clergie , haue no more reason to hearken to reconciliation with Rome , then King Henry , or Queene Elizabeth , or the Subiects in their times had : which hee that lookes not through the spectacles of a preiudicate opinion , will as easily discouer , as you confidently affirme the contrary . B. C. 31. King Henry the VIII . although hee had written that Booke against the Schisme of Luther , in defence of the Sea Apostolike , for which he deserned the title of Defensor fidei , yet when he gaue way to the lust of Anne Bullen , and the flattery of his 1 fauorites , and saw hee could not otherwise haue his will , he excluded the Pope , and made himselfe Supreame head of the Church , that so hee might not onely 2 dispence with himselfe for his Lust , but also supplie his excesse with the spoyle of the Church , which was then very rich : But when hee saw God blessed him not , neither in his wiuing nor in his thriuing , hee was weary of his Supremacie before he died , and wished himselfe in the Church againe : but hee died in the curse of his father , whose 3 foundations he ouerthrew , and hath neither childe to honour him , nor so much as a Tombe vpon his graue to remember him , which some men take to bee a token of the Curse of God. G. H. 31. King Henry the VIII . wrote a 1 Booke indeed , or at least a Booke was in his name written , in defence of the seuen Sacraments , against Luther , ( as Mr. Doctor might haue learned , if no where else , yet out of Cardinall Bellarmins Apologie . ) But in defence of the See of Rome ( which hee cals Apostolike , ) I haue not mette with any ; and it should seeme by his mistake of the subiect , handled in that booke , himselfe neuer mette with it : as for the Title which King Henry receiued , the world is not ignorant , how liberall his Holinesse is in bestowing Titles , where hee expects some greater aduantage , sticking down a feather that hee may quietly carrie away the goose . 2 Thus did hee giue Charles the Emperour , neere about the same time , the Title of Defensor Ecclesiae , for directing a Writ of Outlawrie against Luther , whereupon at the Emperours beeing here in England , those verses were set vp in the Guildhall in London , ouer the doore of their Councell Chamber , where they yet remaine . Carolus Henricus viuant , defensor vterque : Henricus fidei , Carolus Ecclesiae . And in the Bull , by which Leo the tenth confirmed this Title to the King , subscribed with his owne name , and the names of fiue and twentie Cardinals and Bishops , it appeares that their chiefe scope of honouring him with this Title was , to tye him and his posteritie faster to that See : But as a learned and graue Prelate of our owne hath well obserued , being the high Priest for that yeere ( not so in the next ) 3 he foretold by way of prophecie what the King of England should bee , which we find to the honour of CHRIST , and the glory of our kingdome , most truely and happily accomplished in our Gracious Souereigne , now reigning , who hath to the vtmost defēded the truly Christian and Catholike faith by his Pen , and will no doubt bee as ready to doe it , when occasion shal serue , with his sword : and yet were it not for feare of crossing your imaginarie reconciliation , you would with Bellarmine tell vs , that his Maiestie in present , as vndeseruedly retaines that Title , as King Henry receiued it deseruedly , who afterward notwithstanding as deepely incurred his Holinesse disfauour , aswell by calling into question that Title which the Bishops of Rome had assumed to themselues , of Pastours vniuersall , S. Peters successours , and Christs Vicars : as by resuming to himselfe that Title which some of the Popes had yeelded his predecessours , as may appeare in the Letter of Eleutherius Bishop of Rome , to Lucius King of Great Britaine , in which Eleutherius attributeth to the King the Title of Gods Vicar within his kingdome : which letter , howsoeuer the Authour of the Threefold conuersion labour to staine with the blemish of forgery , yet is it to be found 4 inrolled in the Copie of King Edward the Confessors Lawes . Neither is it true , that Henry tooke this Title to himselfe : it was giuen him by the Parliament of his Lords , and Commons , and Conuocation of his Clergie , not as a new thing but as renewed . And if he were desirous to change his bedfellow in hope of heires male , as you tell vs before , it was not to giue way to the lust of Anne Bulleine , as here you affirme ; and if hee might haue had his will in being dispensed with by yeelding to the Popes will , in ioyning with Francis the French King , against the Emperour Charles as before it is proued , then did he not exclude the Pope , & take that Title to dispence with himselfe , especially being mooued with the approbation of so many Vniuersities and learned men : But if thereby he made himselfe a way for the supply of his excesse with the spoyle of the Church , wee haue not wherein so iustly to excuse him , howbeit hee conuerted much of it to good vses , namely to the erecting of sixe Bishoprickes , to wit , Westminster , Chester , Peterborough , Oxford , Bristol and Gloucester , whereof the fiue last are yet in being ; at which time hee also erected at Canterbury a Deane with 12. Prebends , at Winchester another with 12. more , at Worcester another with ten , at Chester another with sixe , at Peterborough another with sixe , at Oxford another with eight , at Ely another with eight , at Gloucester another with sixe , at Bristol another with sixe , at Carlile another with foure , at Durham another with twelue , at Rochester another with sixe , and lastly , at Norwich another with sixe ; 5 so that wee haue good reason to thinke he returned againe to the Church much out of the Abbey lands : and if , notwithstanding all this , God blessed him not in his thriuing , wee haue nothing else to answere but that of Salomon , [ It is a snare to the man who deuoureth that which is holy , and after vowes to make inquiry ] But in his wiuing hee so blessed him , ( though in this too hee shewed himselfe a man , and consequently subiect to humane passion , and frailty ) that three of his children successiuely wore the Crown after him , of which the first was renowmed for his vertue beyond his age , and the last beyond her Sexe ; of the one , and his mother it was written , Phoenix Ianaiacet , nato Phoenice ; dolendum Saecula Phoenices nullatulisse duas . And to the other might bee applied , Non decor effecit fragilem , non sceptra superbam , Sola potens humilis , sola pudica decens . And though they all died without issue , yet doth his honour still liue in theirs . Henry the II. of France died in the vnitie of the Church of Rome ; yet three of his sonnes reigning after him left the Crown to a neighbour Prince , as the children of Henry the VIII heere with vs did , yet none that I haue met with hold him in that regard accursed of God , and if in that respect God cursed Henry , because hee renounced the pretended authoritie of the Church of Rome , then should hee by vertue of that reason haue blessed Henries eldest daughter with issue , who with great submission and deuotion reconciled her selfe to that Church , and married to the most Catholike King ; and though the world were for a while so borne in hand ; yet in the end the great and solemne expectation thereof vanished into smoake . Now that Henrie was wearie of his title of Supremacie before he died , it appeares not , and that hee wished to bee reconciled to the Pope , which you call , being in the Church againe , is as vnlikely , since no doubt is to bee made , but vpon notice giuen of his Contrition , and desire of Satisfaction , hee might as easily haue beene absolued as wished it : But certaine it is , that hee wished it not , if we may make coniecture of his wishes from those speeches , which a little before his death hee deliuered to Mounsieur de Hannibault , Lord Admirall of France , and Ambassadour to the French king , being then at Hampton Court in the moneth of August , and in the yeere 1546. in the hearing of Cranmer Lord Archbishop of Canterburie , concerning the reformation of Religion , and afterwards more neere his death , and more openly to Bruno Ambassador of Iohn Frederike Duke of Saxonie , vnto whom the King gaue this answere , in the hearing of these foure sufficient witnesses , the Lord Seymer , Earle of Hartford , Lord Lisley , then Admirall , the Earle of Bedford , Lord Priuie Seale , and the Lord Paget , [ That if the quarrell of the Duke of Saxonie were nothing else against the Emperour , but for matter of Religion , he should stand to it strongly , and hee would take his part , willing him not to doubt nor feare , ] and with this answere dismissed him . Besides the manner of his sonne and heire Apparent , Prince Edwards education , the qualitie and disposition of those persons whom he named as the principall ouerseers of his Will , ( from which number hee excluded the Bishop of Winchester , the most busie and forward instrument in those times , for the maintenance of the Romish Religion , though hee had once admitted him , and was earnestly solicited by some of his bed chamber to readmit him ) are to mee so many euident demonstrations , that hee was so farre from wishiug reconciliation with the Church of Rome , that hee rather desired and intended , if God had spared him life a while longer , some more full and perfect reformation of Religon : But the secret working of Gods holy prouidence which disposeth all things after his owne wisedome and purpose , thought it good , rather by taking that King away , to reserue the accomplishment of that worke ( as he did the building of his Temple to Solomon , ) to the peaceable time of his sonne Edward , and Elizabeth his daughter , whose hands were vndefiled with any blood , and life vnspotted with any violence or crueltie . Lastly , not content to rippe vp the disgraces of his life , you dogge him to his very graue , bearing vs in hand , that he was accursed of God , in as much as hee wanted a Tombe ; which was the want also of Queene Mary his daughter : But if the want of a Tombe be a token of Gods Curse vpon Henry , then the hauing of it must consequently be a token of his blessing vpon Elizabeth , whom notwithstanding you wrappe in the same Curse : Nay how many of your Bishops of Rome then are Cursed of God , of whom a number are not onely without Tombes ; but some in the first age of the Church , by the fury of their persecutors , and some in latter times , by the malice of their Successors without Graues also ? Indeed wee reade of Dauid , a man after Gods owne heart : * His Sepulchre is with vs vnto this day But of Moses a faithfull seruant in all the house of God , * No man knoweth of his Sepulchre vnto this day . And yet in my remembrance we read it no were , that either Dauid was more blessed of God for the one , or Moses cursed for the other ; the heathen Poet could tell vs , Coelo tegitur , quinon habet vrnam . And S. Augustine that these kinde of Monuments and Memorials , are [ Solatia viuorum , not su●sidia mortuorum , comforts only for the liuing ; no helpes for the dead ] and many noble spirits may be of Catoes minde , desirous rather that after their deaths , it should be demaunded [ why they haue no statue erected to their memory , then why they haue one . ] This I speake onely to shew that had hee had no Tombe , yet were it no great dishonor to him : But if we may credite the last , but not the worst compiler of the Historie of our Countrey , hee was with great solemnitie buried at Windsor , vnder a most costly and stately Tombe , begun in copper and guilt , but neuer finished ; In the inclosures of whose grates is curiously cast this Inscription . Henricus Octauus , Rex Angliae , Franciae , Dominus Hiberniae , Fidei defensor . And that it might appeare to posteritie how Artificiall and Magnificent this worke was intended , he there sets downe the seuerall parcels and pieces of the Modell thereof , as he found it described in a Manuscript , receiued from Mr. Lancaster , one of the Heralds at Armes , the title whereof was this . The maner of the Tombe to be made for the Kings Grace at Windsor . So that I cannot but woonder , how either our Historiographer and our Herauld should be so much mistaken , or ( which I rather thinke ) how Mr. Doctor , so great a Polititian , should be so sowly deceiued , and so confidently leade others into the same errour . I will conclude this Section , with the conclusion of ourfamous Annalist , touching this Prince , [ Princeps Magnanimus , in cuius maximo ingenio inerant , confuso quodam temperamento , virtutes magnae , & vitia non minora . A stout and gallant Prince he was , in whose braue spirit a man might obserue , blended and tempered together , by a rare kinde of mixture , great vertues , and no lessevices . ] But had he honoured the See Apostolike , as much at last , as hee did at first , his vices had beene buried in silence , and his vertues highly extolled : whereas now by opposing himselfe against it , his vertues are suppressed , and his vices racked vpon tenterhookes , and set vpon the Stage : which course were enough to make the best Princes , nay the best men to appeare monsters to the world . B. C. 32. Queene ELIZABETH , although she were the daughter of Schisme , yet at her first comming to the Crowne , shee would haue the Common Prayer Booke and Catechisme so set downe , that shee might both by English Seruice satisfie the Commons , who were greedie of alteration , and by Catholike opinions , gaue hope to her neighbour Princes , that she would her selfe continue Catholike ; and all her life long she caried herselfe so betwixt the Catholikes and the Caluinists , as shee kept them both still in hope : But yet being the daughter of the breach-maker , and hauing both her Crowne and her life from the Schisme , it was both dishonourable and dangerous for her to hearken to Reconcilement : And therefore after she was prouoked by the 1 Excommunication of Pius Quintus , shee did suffer such Lawes to be made by her Parliaments , as might cry quittance with the Pope and Church of Rome : This course seemed in policie necessary for her , who was the daughter of King Henrie the VIII . by Anne Bulleine , borne with the contempt of Rome , the disgrace of Spaine , and the preiudice of Scotland . G. H. 32. From Henry the father you descend to Elizabeth , the daughter ( as you call her ) of Schisme : howbeit she were indeed the Nursing mother of the Church . And for the Common prayer Booke which she allowed , it was the same , with very litle alteration , which was current by publike authority , during the reigne of her brother King Edward : So that it was no inuention of hers to satisfie the Commons , as you falfly suggest , but an imitation of her renowned brother for the satisfying of her owne conscience , and the furtherance of the seruice of God in a knowen language . You adde that by Catholike opinions she gaue hope to her neighbour Princes , that she would continue a Catholike : wheras the world knowes that her mother was otherwise affected , being brought vp in France , vnder the Lady Margret Alençon , a principal fauouresse of the Protestant religion there , after shee had a while waited vpon Q. Mary , yonger sister of king Henry the VIII . and wife to Lewes the XIII . the French king , and as long vpon Claudia , sister to the Guise , and wife to Francis the first ; and in regard she was this way affected , the holy maide of Kent , was by Clergie men suborned to prophecie against her , and ( as one writes ) it seemeth very plaine , that the crimes supposed against her , were matters contriued by the Pope , and his instruments her chiefest enemies , none of them all that were accused in the same treason confessing the acte euen vnto death , but haue left direct testimonies in writing to the contrary , ( one meane groome excepted , namely Marke Smeton , who made confession vpon some promise of life belike , but was executed before he was aware , or had time to recall what he had said , ) Now the mother being thus affected , and that before king Henry cast his affection towards her , or disaffected Rome , in likelyhood the daughter had beene that way also affected , whether the breach with Rome by her mothers mariage had bene made or no. It was S. Pauls argument to Timothie , [ * that the faith first dwelt in his grandmother Lois , and his mother Eunice , and therefore he was well perswaded of him also . ] He argues not from his father and his grandfather , but from his mother , and his grandmother ; so may we by the same reason , from the faith , which dwelt in the mother of Queene Elizabeth , make some coniecture of her faith , that it was not different from her mothers : But her education vnder Roger Ascham , ( who was himselfe that way affected , & to cōtinue her so , read vnto her among other authors for her diuinity exercise , Melancthons common places ) will yet farther cleare this matter : but the suspition cast vpon her , ( though most vniustly ) as hauing a finger in Wyats conspiracy , and Stories damnable aduise [ to leaue lopping at the branches , and strike at the roote , ] will put it out of doubt ; and doubtlesse as in that regard shee suffered much hardenesse , during the raigne of her sister , so had shee not suruiued to haue worne the Crowne , had not God in his prouidence mooued the heart of the Spaniard to preserue her aliue , not so much out of any loue of her person , or pittie of her ruefull estate , as out of reason of state , lest she being taken out of the way , and her sister dying ( as she did ) without issue , the Kingdomes of England , Scotland , and Ireland , might in time be vnited and annexed to the Crowne of France , by meanes of the Lady Mary , Queene of Scotland ( next heire in right after Queene Elizabeth ) then affianced to Francis Dolphin of France , and heire apparent to Henry the second , the French King ; then which the Spaniards thought nothing could happen more disasterous to their affectation of greatnesse . Besides all this , being as she was the miracle of her sexe and ranke , for wit and learning , it is not improbable that , as the knowledge of the Arts and Languages , and the light of the Gospell brake forth both together ; so in her person the one might haue prepared , and as it were beaten out a way for the entrance of the other , though neither her Mother had beene that way affected , nor her Father made any breach , as wee see his Maiestie that now is , to the glory of God and our great comfort , though his Father were slaine before his birth , and his Mother liued and died in that Religion , in which shee was brought vp , yet by the excellencie of his naturall parts and learning ( but especially by the working of Gods holy spirit ) hath attained to such a light of Religion , that he hath not only discouered the trueth , but chosen and professed it being discouered , and with his Penne maintained and defended that which he professeth . True indeede it is , that Queene Elizabeth , during the raigne of her sister , tender both by sexe and age , and wrought by the frownes and threates of Cardinall Poole , then Archbishop of Canterbury , the Popes Legate , and in England the principall Proctor and Champion , for the aduancing of his authority , was once brought to acknowledge that shee was a Romane Catholike , but herein she did no more then St. Peter did ( whose successour the Bishop of Rome pretendeth himselfe ) in denying his Master : No more then the Prince of Condie , the King of Nauarre and his sister , who at the massacre of Paris , for feare renounced their Religion , and were by the Cardinall of Bourbon reconciled to the Church of Rome ; though after ward being at liberty they reimbraced their former profession : Nay , no more then Queene Mary her selfe , who being terrified with her Fathers displeasure , wrote him a Letter vvith her owne hand ( yet to be seene ) in which for euer she renounceth the Bishop of Romes authority in England , and acknowledging her Father vnder Christ supreame head of the Church of England , confesseth his marriage with her Mother to haue beene vnlawfull and incestuous . But I would faine know , after Queene Elizabeth came to the wearing of the Crowne , by what Catholike opinions shee gaue hope to her neighbour Princes that shee would continue Catholike ? If it were so , ( as Mr. Doctor would beare vs in hand ) how was it that the reformed Churches through Christendome applauded her comming to the Crowne , as it had beene the appearance of some luckie starre , or the rising of some glorious Sunne for their Comfort and reliefe , and your pretended Catholikes hung downe their heads as if they had seene some Come● or blazing-starre ? How she was then affected in religion , and so professed her selfe , may appeare , if no where else , yet in 1 Osorius his Epistle which he wrote her not long after her comming to the Crowne , where he highly commends her for her wit , for her learning , for her clemencie , for her constancy for her wisdome , for her modestie ; but disswades her by all the arguments he could inuent , from the opinions she had conceiued , and did expresse in the matter of Religion . Pius Quartus doth the like in his letter which he sent her about the same time by the hands of Vincentius Parpalia , Abbot of Saint Sauiours , who as it appeares in the Letters , dated the 5th . of May 1560 , had priuate instructions to impart to the Queene ; among which the chiefe were thought to bee ( as it is reported by the most diligent 2 searcher of truth ) that if she would reconcile her selfe to the Church of Rome , and acknowledge the Supremacie of that See , the Pope for his part would 3 bind himselfe to declare the sentence pronounced against her mothers marriage to be vniust , to confirme by his authority The English Liturgie , and to permit the administration of the Sacrament here in England , vnder both kindes : By which it appeares ▪ that at that time shee then maintained the same opinions which during her life shee altered not . And here it may be worth the remembring , that the fourteenth day of Ianuary , about two moneths after her sisters death , as shee passed in her triumphall Chariot through the streetes of London , when the Bible was presented vnto her at the little Conduit in Cheape , shee receiued the same with both her handes , and kissing it , layd it to her breast , saying , [ That the same had euer been her chiefest delight , and should bee the rule by which shee meant to frame her gouernment . ] Before this a Proclamation came foorth , that the Letanie , the Epistles , and Gospels , the Decalogue , the Creede and the Lords Prayer should bee read in all Churches in the English tongue ; and though it were the 14th . of May after , being Whitsunday , before the sacrifice of the Masse was abolished , and the book of the vniformitie of Common Prayer , and the administration of the Sacraments publikely receiued ; and Iuly following , before the Oth of Supremacie was proposed ; and August , before the Images were by authority moued out of the Churches , broken and burnt ; ( so moderately did shee proceede in this businesse of reformation by steppes and degrees ) yet is it plai●e , aswell by the choyce of those 4 eight whom she added to her sisters Counsell , beeing all in profession Protestants ( which Pius 5 tus in his Bull makes a part of his grieuous complaint ) and those whom she either 5 restored to their former dignities , or aduanced to new , being likewise as auerse from the Romane Religion , as also by the refusall of Nicholas Heath , then Archbishop of Yorke , ( the See of Canterbury by the death of Cardinall Poole , who deceased the same day that Queene Mary did , being then voide ) and of the rest of the chiefe 6 Bishops to annoint and consecrate her at her Inauguration , it being therefore performed by Owen Oglethorpe Bishop of Carlile : by these proceedings I say it is plaine , that at her first entrance to the Crowne , she sufficiently declared her selfe to bee the same in matter of Religion , as afterwards they found her . Wherunto , if full satisfaction be not yet giuen in this point , for farther proofe might be added , that when Philip of Spaine wooed her for mariage ( the funerals of her sister being not yet solemnized ) The French King by his Agent the Bishop of Engolesme laboured ( if it had gone forward ) to stop their dispensation at Rome , vnder colour that Queene Elizabeth fauoured the Protestants Religion , and the Earle of Feria , the Spaniards Agent here in England , bore our pretended Catholiks in hand , that except that match went forward , it could not goe well with them ; so farre was shee at her first entrance from giuing hope to her neighbours ( as Mr. Doctor would perswade the world ) of continuing or turning Catholike , by shew of Catholike opinions , vnlesse her retaining the ancient forme of Ecclesiasticall policie , and the godly Ceremonies vsed in the Primitiue Church be accounted Catholike opinions , as in truth , if wee take the word Catholike aright , they may : But no maruell hee should thus boldly and falsely charge the dead , since hee spareth not in the same kinde his Maiestie now reigning , and by Gods grace long to reigne amongst vs , to the confutation of such slanders and confusion of such slanderers . Hee goes on and tels vs , that all her life long shee caried her selfe so betwixt Catholikes and Caluinists , as shee kept them both still in hope : But herein he mainely crosseth himselfe , aswell in that which hee hath deliuered in the Section next saue one going before , that [ if there bee now the same reason of State , as there was all Queene Elizabeths dayes , there is as little hope that his Maiestie should hearken vnto reconciliation , as then there was that Q. Elizabeth would : ] as also in that which afterwards he addes in this Section , that [ being prouoked by the excommunication of Pius Quintus , shee did suffer such lawes to bee made by her Parliament , as might crie quittance with the Pope and Church of Rome . ] And in the next Section he sayth , [ It was necessary , in reason of State , to continue the doctrine of diuision , as long as the fruit of that doctrine did continue . ] Thus his owne testimonies , like the false witnesses which deposed against our Sauiour , agree not together , but is it likely that shee caried her selfe all her life long with such indifferencie ; considering shee sent helpe , both by men and money , to the Protestants in Germanie , in Scotland , in France , in the Netherlands ; Shee harboured and succoured such Italians , French , and Dutch , as forsaking their owne Countreys for conscience sake , fled for refuge into her Dominions , as to a common Sanctuary of piety and Religion , affording them conuenient places for the exercise of their deuotions , in the Isles of Iersey and Garnsey , in Hampton , in Norwich , in Sandwich , in Maidston , in Canterbury , in Colchester , and in London it selfe : Moreouer , shee that would not so much as admit Pius Quartus his Nuntio in the yeere 1561. to enter her Kingdome , though hee brought with him very friendly Letters from the Pope : Shee that would not bee intreated by the Emperour , and other Princes sollicitations to send her Bishops or Ambassadours to the Councill of Trent , nor to yeelde any toleration of the Ro●ish Religion within her Dominions , alleaging that it would bee dishonourable to her selfe , repugnant to the decrees of her Parliament , preiudiciall to her Realme , pernicious to her Subiects , vnlawfull in it selfe , offensiue to God , scandalous to her neighbours , and vnsafe for the Romane Catholikes themselues : Shee that was sought vnto for mariage , from 7 Scotland , from 8 Denmarke , from 9 Sweden , in regard of her Religion , and in treatise with the Emperour Ferdinand for his sonne Charles , and with the French King and Queene mother ; first for the Duke of Aniou , afterwards King of Poland and France , by the name of Henry the third ; and secondly for the Duke of Alençon his yonger brother , commonly knowen by the name of Monsieur , afterwards Duke of Aniou ; alwayes interposed this condition , That they should innouate nothing in Religion , onely hauing the exercise of their owne in some priuate place to themselues : Shee that in the yeere 1579 entertained with all honourable respect Iohn Casimere , sonne to Frederike the third , Count Palatine , and great Vncle to Frederike the fift , who now gouernes , himselfe a Protestant , and hauing led an armie of Germanes in defence of the Protestants , aswell into France as into the Netherlands , bestowing on him the noble Order of the Garter , which with her own hands shee put on , together with many rich presents , and an yeerely pension during his life bestowed on him : Shee that was voyced by the Papists to conclude all her Parliaments with Axes and Taxes , because of her exactions vpon Recusants , and rigorous Lawes ( as they pretended ) against Seminary Priests & Iesuites , in regard whereof they compared her to Nero and Dioclesian , the most bloody Emperours and cruell persecutors of the Christians : Lastly , Shee that could not be won to yeelde one iote either by the flatteries and faire promises of Paulus Quartus , nor to shew any token of being dismayed or dishartened by the threats and thundering Bull of Pius Quintus , is it possible ( I say ) that she , who ( notwithstanding all the difficulties & dangers that might from then cearise , ) was from her cradle to her graue thus zealous and constant in her Religion , sutable to that Motto which she had chosen to her selfe , Semper eadem , should now be said or thought to haue carried her selfe all her life long so coldly & indifferently , as to haue giuen hope to both contrary factions . [ But being , you say , the daughter of the Breach-maker , & hauing both h● Crowne and her life from the Schisme , it was both dishonorable and dangerous for her to hearken to Reconcilement : ] whereas in trueth she had her life , and held her Crowne from the Author of life and grand Commander of Crownes , to which shee had farre better right then hee , that would haue deposed her , to his triple Crowne , the one being helde of her by lawfull succession , ( which had beene so acknowledged by the Bishop of Rome himselfe , would shee haue submitted herselfe to the power of that See , ) but the other of him by vnlawfull vsurpation . And if in regarde shee was the daughter of the Breach-maker , it was both dishonourable and dangerous for her to hearken to Reconcilement , it must consequently follow , that likewise dangerous and dishonourable it would haue beene to keepe the Pontifician partie in hope : and though she were iustly prouoked by the biting Excommunication of Pius Quintus , being stricken by him before she was Legally cited or warned , in so much as some of the Romish Catholikes themselues , thought it a peece of rashnesse in that Pope so to deale with her , yet before this Bull was extant , shee gaue so little hope to those whom you call Catholikes , that the Pope therein labours to paint her foorth as a barbarous and bloody Persecutour : and wee may well imagine , that had shee giuen such hope as you pretend she did to the Romanists , the world had neuer heard the bellowing of that Bull : But thankes be vnto God * The raine fell , the floods came , the windes blewe , and beat sore vpon her house ; but it fell not : for it was founded vpon a Rocke , and that Rocke was CHRIST . During her happie and glorious raigne somewhat aboue the space of 44. yeeres , shee saw the change of no lesse then 8. Popes , Paulus the 4th . sitting in that See at her entrance , and Clement the eight at her death , betweene which two came these seuen , Pius 4. Pius 5. Cregorie 13. Sextus 5. Vrban . 7. Gregorie 14. and Innocent the 9th . all which wrought more or lesse both against her Person and State ; so that she might deseruedly take vp that of the Psalmist : [ * Many Bulles haue compassed me , strong Bulles of Bashan haue beset me round , they gaped vpon mee with their mouthes , as a rauening and roaring Lyon ] : But being by his Gracious prouidence , ( who set the Crowne vpon her head , ) deliuered from all their snares , shee might well stampe that of the same Psalmist vpon her coyne as shee did , and with all no doubt vpon her heart : Posui Deum adiutorem meum , and sing with Deborah after her victory vpon Sisera . * O my soule , thou hast marched valiantly ; or as some read it , thou hast troden downe strength . Now that which sharpened her against Pius Quintus , was not onely his Bull ( though that were in it selfe cause sufficient to inrage her ) but the setting aworke of one Ridolphus a Florentine , who vnder the colour of Marchandizing , became the Popes agent for blowing the coales , and stirring vp the minds , aswell of her owne Subiects , as of forraine Princes against her , by whom the olde Foxe promised if need were to goe in person himselfe against her , and to lay to pawne if occasion so required all the goods of the See Apostolike , euen to the Chalices , the Crosiers , the Reliques and the Holy Vestments : Besides all this he conferred an yeerely pension , and titles of honour vpon Tho Stanley a 10 discontented fugitiue , only for ra●ling vpon her , and vainely bragging that he would set on fire her Nauie , and with three thousand Spaniards● subdue Ireland to the Spanish dominion . These and many other sufficient reasons to prouoke her , we find recorded by Hieronimus Catena , in the life of Pius Quintus , who was Secretarie to Cardinall Alexandrin that Popes Nephew , so that though he haue in that discourse discouered many things to the world , of Pius his proceedings against that Queene , before vnknowen to our English , yet may wee well by reason of his place afforde him credite , as also in regarde his booke was Printed and published in Rome it selfe , with the Priuiledge and approbation of Sixtus Quintus , next Successor to Pius saue one . And had she not good reason then to suffer such Lawes to bee made by her Parliament , as might crie quittance with the Pope and Church of Rome ? Yet I will bee bold to say that lesse innocent blood , nay , lesse blood was shed in her 44. yeeres in maintenance of Christs and her owne authoritie , against the vsurpation of the Pope , then in her sisters foure yeeres in maintenance of the Popes vsurpation against her owne and her Successours lawfull authority , insomuch as an Italian , and hee no Protestant ( as I guesse ) giues this testimonie of her , [ 11 Tanta extitit eius animi moderatio , atque innata clementia , vt non immerito , &c. So great and so apparant was the moderation of her minde , and inbred clemēcie , that not vndeseruedly it may be said of her , which the ancient histories haue left to posteritie of Alexander Seuerus , borne of his mother Mammaea , ( Nempe Anaematon ) hoc est citra sanguinem : namely , that shee hath gouerned her kingdome without bloodshed , Cum suapte natura , semper à caedibus & crudelitate abhorreat , for euen her nature doth abhorre the thought of slaughter or crueltie . ] & so he goeth on in a large discourse of her praise : And when he thus wrote , she had reigned twenty yeres , it being a maruell ( as the late Bishop of Lincolne in his answere to Parsons hath well obserued ) their Index expurgatorius had not scowred him ere this , and for this ; nay , their owne Priests shall speake for Queene Elizabeths Lawes , who 12 say that [ considering Iesuiticall practises shadowed vnder the cloake of Religion , all the Lawes enacted against Catholikes , were made with great moderation and clemencie , as comming from a Prince most milde and mercifull : nor haue they cause to vrge repeale of any Statute made , so long as Iesuits take such courses . ] Nay , which is more , Parsons himselfe in the Preface to the first part of his triple conuersion commendeth Queene Elizabeth for her moderate gouernment , and that was in the last yeere of her reigne : and yet by the way it is worth the noting , that in one and the same leafe , hauing so commended her , in one page ( mary then she was aliue ) in the very next page , ( for then he heard shee was dead ) in a Preface to his Maiestie , he compares her to Dioclesian for crueltie , whereas her sobrietie and clemencie was such , that her brother King Edward was wont commonly to call her , His sweete sister Temperance ; neither did shee euer heare of any capitall punishment ( though neuer so deserued ) vpon offenders , euen of such as had sought her own death , but it bred a kind of horror and sadnesse in her , whereby had not her Counsellers earnestly inculcated the necessitie of some exemplary iustice , many dangerous attempters had escaped due punishment ; which mooued her to say , being once questioning with a great 13 Diuine in Oxford , about books meetest for Princes to studie on , that her reading of Senecade Clementia , had done her much good ; but some would perswade her it had done her State as much harme : howsoeuer I will shut vp this point with S. 14 Augustine , ( when he was intreated to mediate for a mittigation of some strait Lawes ) if Princes serue Christ in making Lawes for Christ , they doe what they ought , I will not gaine say them ; and your selfe graunt , that this course seemed in poli●ie necessary for her , who was the daughter of King Henry the VIII . by Anne Bulleine , borne with the contempt of Rome , the disgrace of Spaine , and the preiudice of Scotland : and it is true indeede that it both seemed , and was a necessary course for her , not onely in policie , but in pietie , who was the daughter of him , who vpon iust reason vnhorsed the Pope of his pretended authoritie , by her who was not onely a zealous professour , but a Patronesse of that trueth which wee professe : and for her birth with the contempt of Rome , and disgrace of Spaine , it seemed by her courses shee was not vnwilling to haue it so int●rpreted : but for the preiudice of Scotland , shee was vpon all occasions ( so farre as shee conceiued it stood with her safetie and honour ) most willing to expresse the contrary : and surely by her liuing and dying in a single State without marriage , she rather prepared a way to the furtherance of that Title , which wee now see to our great comfort , as she would also no doubt to hers . ( Si quis modo sensus in vmbris , if there were any feeling or knowledge in the dead of these temporall and transitory affaires ) seeing it is fallen out to bee as true in that succession , as it is in its owne nature strange , Mira cano , Sol occubuit , nox nulla sequuta est . B. C. 33. But now that your Maiestie is by the consent of all sides come to the Crowne , and your vndoubted Title setled with long succession , the case is very much altered : for your Maiestie hath no need of dispensations , nor will to pull downe Churches , nor no dependance at all on Henry the VIII : and if this Schisme could haue preuented your Title with the diuorce of one wife , and the marrying of fiue more , neither your mother , nor your selfe should euer haue made Queene Elizabeth afraid with your Right to the Crowne of England ; and therefore though it were necessary , in reason of State , to continue the 1 doctrine of diuision , as long as the fruit of that doctrine did continue , yet now the fruit of Schisme is all spent , and that Parenthesis of State is at an end , there is no reason but that the old sentence may returne againe , and bee continued in that sense , as if the Parenthesis had been cleane left out , and that God had of purpose crossed the fleshly pretence of Schisme , and raised your Maiestie to restore it as your most wise and Catholike progenitor King Henrie the VII . did leaue it . G. H. 33. If his Maiestie , by the consent of all sides bee come to the Crowne , why did Clement the VIII . the yeere before his entrance , and that as his Maiestie witnesseth in the Conclusion of his answere to Paulus Quintus his first Breue , [ contrary to his manifold vowes and protestations at the same time , and as it were with the same breath deliuered to diuers of his Maiesties Agents abroad ] send to 1 Henry Garnet Iesuite , their Arch-priest in England , two Bulles to the contrary , the one to the Clergie , and the other to the Laitie . The Title of the former was , [ Dilectis filijs , Archipresbytero , & reliquo Clero Anglicano , and the other , Dilectis filijs , principibus , & nobilibus Catholicis Anglicanis , salutem & Apostolicam Benedictionem : The summe of both thus : To our Beloued sonnes the Archpriest , and the Clergie , the Peeres and nobles , Catholikes of England , greeting and Apostolicall benediction . ] The tenor was , [ That after the death of her Maiestie then liuing , whether by course of nature or otherwise , whosoeuer should lay 2 Claime or Title to the Crowne of England , though neuer so directly and neerely interessed by discent , should not be admitted to the throne , vnlesse hee would first tolerate the Romish religion , and by all his best endeuours promote the Catholike cause , vnto which by a solemne and sacred Oath , hee should religiously subscribe after the death of that miserable woman ] ( for so it pleased his Holinesse to terme Elizabeth , that most great and happie Queene ; ) By vertue of which Bulles , ( if vertue may be in any such vicious libels ) the Iesuites disswaded the Romish minded Subiects , from yeelding in any wise obedience vnto our most gracious Soueraigne now being . But this not working to their wished effect , and hee now solemnely proclaimed with an vniuersall applause , loue , and peace , their hopes beganne to wither and growe colde ; and no succours from Spaine being now to bee expected , Garnet the Superiour for the auoyding farther dangers , sacrificed these starued Buls to the God of fire . Moreouer , in the yeere 1588. when his Holinesse blessed that inuincible Spanish Nauie , was it to settle the Crowne vpon his Maiestie after Queene Elizabeth should be deposed ? Surely his Maiestie both rightly conceiued , and freely expressed the contrary to Sir Robert Sidney , at that time sent into Scotland from Queene Elizabeth , affirming that hee expected none other good turne at the Spaniards hands , but that which Polyphemus promised to Vlisses , that others being first deuoured himselfe should haue the fauour to bee swallowed last : And did not the greatest part of Pius his Bull , aiming principally at her , through her sides also strike his Maiestie ? And did not one Robert Parsons who sate at the helme in Rome , write a certaine Booke of Titles , intituled Doleman , wherein he excludes his Maiestie , and prefers the Infant a of Spaines right before all other pretenders to the Crowne ? but when hee once saw his Maiestie setled beyond all hope and expectation , he made as you doe , and the rest at that time did , a vertue of necessitie , acknowledging his vndoubted and lawfull Claime , in his Preface to his Triple conuersion , whereof for mine owne part I can giue none other reason then that which you adde to another purpose , the case is altered : Whiles his Maiestie was onely in hope you shewed your selues in your owne colours : being now quiet in possession , you plucke in your hornes , yeelde to the times , and are content to bee carried with the streame . And though the personall case bee altered in regard of his Maiestie , and Henry the VIII . yet if his Maiesty either needed the like dispensations , or had the like will to pull down Churches , I make no question but his Holinesse would without any great difficulty giue way to both , conditionally that his pretended , but vsurped authority might be restored : But as he is a publique person , and represents the body of the State , the case is no way different , which is the freeing of it from forraine and vniust vsurpation : And for Queene Elizabeth I will be bold to say it , that at her comming to the Crowne , she was not so farre ingaged for the defence of that religion , which she constantly maintained to her dying day , as his Maiesty hath by manifold obligations bound himselfe to the maintenance and continuance of that which she at her death left , and hee at his entrance found established amongst vs. For testimonies wee neede goe no farther then his frequent and solemne protestations , aswell by his penne , as by word of mouth , and that not onely before , but since his comming to the Crowne ; to which if we adde the carefull education of his Sonne , the most noble and hopefull Prince , euen in that respect , the bestowing of his onely daughter that most sweet and vertuous Lady vpon the Prince Palatine , not onely a Protestant , but as you terme them , a Caluinist , the honourable entertainement of Isaac Casaubon , and Peter Moulin , the liberty giuen to the French & Dutch , for the free and publike exercise of their religion in diuers parts of his Maiesties Dominions ; and lastly his constant refusall of so much as the Toleration of any other religion , notwithstanding the importunitie of suits and supplications for it ; the matter as I suppose will be cleane out of doubt . And as Queene Elizabeth was prouoked by Pius V. so was his Maiesty by Paulus V. in a degree very little different ; the one absoluing her subiects from their oath of Allegeance , and the other forbidding his to take such an oath : So that though the Parenthesis in regard of personall succession bee ended , yet in respect of profession ( which of the two is the more to bee regarded ) the sentence as yet runnes on , and as we hope will haue no period , but with the worlds end . But the more to exasperate his Maiesty against King Henry the VIII . and his daughter Queene Elizabeth , you tell him that if the Schisme could haue preuented his title , neither his Mother , nor himselfe should euer haue made Queene Elizabeth afraid with their right to the Crowne of England . For the iustnesse of the diuorce I haue already deliuered mine opinion at large ; and yet if any desire farther satisfaction , let him reade the first dialogue of Antisanderus , who both strongly maintaines the equity of the Kings proceedings in that businesse , and clearely confutes the slanders of that base fugitiue ; and for his wiues , had the way bene fairely made vnto them , no iust exception could be taken to the number . Philip the II. of Spaine , besides his Mistresses , had successiuely 3 foure wiues , whereof the first was his fathers Cousin germane , and the last his owne : For the compassing of which , what strange courses he tooke , I list not to relate , but referre the reader to the Prince of Aurange his Apologie ; yet none that I know hath taxed him for his multitude of wiues , in as much as he liued and died a Romane Catholike . Did not Henry the last of France diuorce his first wife , after they had bene almost as long married , and vpon lesse shew of iust reason , then Henry the VIII . but the one made semblance at last of subiecting himselfe to the See Apostolike , which the other by no meanes could bee brought vnto , as he did at first , this alone beeing it that varied the case , and that which he did herein , may well be interpreted to haue sprong from a desire of setling the Crowne in his owne posterity , rather then of preiudicing the title of Scotland ; For though during his reigne , some discontentments there were between the two nations , yet not long before his death hee concluded a match betwixt his sonne Prince Edward , and Queene Mary of Scotland , that as his father had vnited the white and the redde Roses in the royall branches of Yorke and Lancaster , so his sonne might vnite the Lions passant and rampant , in the armes of England and Scotland , but it so pleased God , that that match vpon occasion fell asunder , and that happy vnion was reserued to our times . Now for Queene Elizabeths feare , those of her Sexe indeed by their nature are fearefull , and great Princes by reason of the place they stand in , are 4 ●ealous , specially of the heire apparent , if hee be potent , if neere at hand , if remote in blood , if in Religion different : yet all the feare she conceaued from his Masties Mother arose partly from the practises of the French , with whose King she matched , and partly of the Seminarie Priests and Iesuites , and pretended Catholikes , euer making her the highest marke and pitch of their ambition , till they had brought her to the lowest ebbe of her misfortune ; which was also hastned through her Subiects feare , rather then their own , as appeares by her seuerall answeres , and replies to the demands of the Parliament , and propositions of her counsel touching that point : as also in that , as soone as the newes of it was brought to her , not thinking on any such matter , she receiued it with indignation , her countenance & her speech shewed it , with excessiue griefe ; for a while she stood as it were astonished , and afterwards betook her selfe in priuate to mourning and weeping , shee sharpely entertained her counsellers , remooued them from her presence , and commanded Dauison her Secretarie , whom shee accused of being more foreward and officious in that businesse , then she either desired , or expected to be brought to his triall in the Starre Chamber , where he was deepely censured in a mulcte of ten thousand pound , and imprisonment at the Queenes pleasure ; but her displeasure was so heauy against him , that hee continued there long , and assoone as the excesse of her griefe gaue her leaue , she thus briefly wrote with her owne hande to the King of Scotland , now our gracious Soueraigne . Most deare Brother , I Wish you vnderstood , but felt not with what vnmatchable griefe my minde is perplexed , by reason of that wofull accident executed against my meaning , which my pen trembling to mention , you shall vnderstand by this my cousin . I shall request you that as God , and many others can testifie mine innocencie herein ; so you would rest assured , that had I commanded it , I would neuer haue denyed it . I am not of so base a minde , as either to feare to doe that which is iust , or to denie it being done . I am not so degenerate , or of a Spirit so ignoble : but as it is no Princely part to couer the inward intention of the minde with the outward speech ; so will I neuer dissemble mine actions , but labour rather that they may appeare to the world in their proper colours . Be you therefore fully resolued as the trueth is , that had I intended such a matter , I would neuer haue cast it vpon others ; neither haue I reason to charge my selfe with that which I intended not : For other matters , this Bearer will impart them to you ; and for my selfe beleeue it , there is none liuing , that loues you better , and more intirely , or is more carefully prouident for you , and your good , and if any happen to suggest any thing to the contrary , perswade your selfe , that such thereby aime at their owne aduantage , rather then yours . God keepe you long and long in safetie . Yet out of the blacke cloud of this sad accident , did the disposition of diuine prouidence , as some wise men haue obserued , most clearely shine , in as much as those things which both Q. Elizabeth of England , & Q. Mary of Scotland chiefly desired , and shot at in all their consultations , were by this meanes effected : The latter ( as at her death she witnessed ) wished nothing more earnestly , then that the two diuided Realmes of England and Scotland might bee vnited in the person of her dearest sonne : The former , that true Religion , together with the safetie and securitie of the Kingdome might bee preserued entire ; and that God was pleased to grant both their wishes , to our comfort , wee feele , and can not but most willingly acknowledge : And for his Maiestie ; he both signified to Queene Elizabeth by Sir Francis Walsinghame , in the yeere 1583. ( almost foure yeeres before his mothers death , ) that he would most constantly maintaine the same Religion which was then publikely receiued , and againe , sent her the same message by Sir Robert Sidney about two yeeres after ; So that she needed not to feare his right in that regarde , and for his affection otherwise , hee both testified it before her death in the Preface to his Basilicon Doron , where he thus speakes , [ In England reignes a lawfull Queene , who hath so long , with so great wisedome and felicitie gouerned her kingdomes , as I must in true sinceritie confesse , that the like hath not beene read or heard of , either in our time , or since the dayes of the Roman Emperour Augustus . ] And since her death , hee hath yeelded the like testimonies of her , aswell in his Apologie , as also in his Premonition , where he remembers , that being chosen to be his Godmother , shee sent into Scotland the Font wherein he was baptized : So that ( if by outward actions and speeches , we may make coniecture of the inward thoughts and Passions of the minde ) shee was so farre from fearing his Maiesties right to the Crowne , as she endeuoured rather by all conuenient meanes to aduance it : neither doe I find it recorded by her friends , or obiected by her enemies , that , during all her reigne vpon any occasion , shee euer conceiued a thought , or cast out a word toward the setting vp of any other Successour , or the preiudicing of his right ; Nay in the yeere 1587. she sent the Lord Hunsdon gouernour of Berwike into Scotland , to giue him notice that the Iesuiticall faction euen while his mother liued , proiected , how they both might be put by their right , and the Spaniard brought in : and withall was presented him an instrument , subscribed by the Iudges of England , assuring him that the sentence passed vpon his mother , could no way bee preiudiciall in law to the right of his title . But it will be sayd shee discouered her feare in stopping any declaration of the heire apparent , specially being vrged thereunto by the three estates assembled in Parliament , in the yeere , 1566. whereas in trueth she in reading might haue obserued , that few or no Successors in collaterall line had beene declared , a● Lewis Duke of Orleans was not declared heire to Charles the eight , yet succeded peaceably , that it hath o●ten prooued dangerous to name a successour , not only to the possessours , but sometimes to the Successours themselues : as it did to Roger Mortimer Earle of March , designed heire to the Crowne by Richard the second , his sonne Edmund being helde in prison , and there pining away vpon none other reason . The like befell Iohn de la Poole , designed by Richard the third ( after the death of his owne sonne ) to bee his Successour , himselfe being alwayes euen in that respect suspected of Henry the VII . till at last he was slaine , and his brother vnder Henry the VIII . beheaded . These reasons might mooue her Maiestie for the stopping of that declaration , not the feare of his Maiesties right , but the care of preseruing it , being sufficiently proclaimed in his blood and discent . Whatsoeuer it were , since his Maiestie who had the neerest interest in that errand , hath bene content thus graciously to passe it ouer , it cannot but argue want both of wisdome and charitie in Mr. Doctor , thus vnseasonably , and maliciously to reuiue it . Lastly , God of purpose no doubt raised vp his Maiestie , to crosse the worldly and diuelish pretence of Rome , and to perpetuate the life of that Religion which you call Schisme , and I make no doubt but if King Henry the VII . had found it left by his predecessor in the state , that his Maiestie did , hee would in his wisedome haue left it to his Successor , as hee is like to doe , and I am the rather induced to thinke so ; because in the first yeere of his raigne , the Pope hauing excommunicated all such persons as had bought allome of the Florentines , by his permission , if not command , it was resolued by all the Iudges of England , that the Popes Excommunication ought not to be obeyed , or to bee put in Execution within the Realme of England : and in the same yeere hee suffered sharpe lawes to be made by the Parliament , to which himselfe gaue , being by his Royall assent for the reformation of his Clergie , then growen very dissolute : and in the eleuenth yere of his raigne , a Statute was enacted , that [ though by the Ecclesiasticall Lawes allowed within this Realme , a Priest cannot haue two Benefices , nor a bastard be a Priest , yet it should be lawfull for the King to dispence with both of these , as being mala prohibita , but not mala per se , ] all which argues that they then held the King to bee personam mixtam , as it was declared in the tenth yeere of his reigne , that is a person mixt , because hee hath both Ecclesiasticall and Temporall iurisdiction vnited in his person . B. C. 34. But perhaps the Schisme , though it serue you to none other vse at all for your title , yet it doth much increase your authority and your 1 wealth , and therefore it cannot stand with your honour to further the 2 vnity of the Church of Christ. Truely those your most famous and renowned ancestours , that did part with their authority and their wealth , to bestow them vpon the Church of CHRIST , and did curse and execrate those that should diminish and take them away againe , did not thinke so , nor finde it so : And I would to God your Maiesty were so powerfull and so rich , as some of those kings were that were most bountifull that way . You are our 3 Soueraigne Lord : All our bodies , and our goods are at your command ; but our soules as they belong not to your charge , but as by way of protection in Catholike religion ; so they cannot increase your honour and authority , but in a due subordination vnto Christ , and to 4 those that supply his place 5 in iis quae sunt iuris diuini . It was essentiall to Heathen Emperours to bee Pontifices as well as Reges , because they were themselues authors of their owne religion : But among Christians , where Religion comes from CHRIST , who was no worldy Emperour , ( though aboue them all ) the spiritua● and temporall authority haue two beginnings , and therefore two Supremes , who if they bee subordinate , doe vphold and increase one another , but if the temporall authority oppose the spirituall , it destroyeth it selfe , and dishonoureth him from whom the spirituall authority is deriued . Heresie doth naturally 6 spread it selfe like a ca●k●r , and needes little helpe to put it forward : So that it is an easie matter for a meane Prince to be a 7 great man amongst heretikes , but it is an hard matter for a great king to 8 gouerne them . When I haue sometimes obserued how hardly your Maiesty could effect your most reasonable desires amongst those that stand most vpon your Supremacy , I haue bene bold to bee 9 angry , but durst say nothing ; onely I did with my selfe resolue for certaine , that the keyes were wont to doe the 10 Crowne more seruice , when they were in the armes of the miter , then they can doe now they are tyed together with the 11 scepter , and that your title in spirituall affaires doth but serue 12 other mens turnes , and not your owne . G. H. 34. Hauing passed your supposed remoouall of all opposition both in doctrine and State , thereby to make a readier way to your imaginary reconciliation , you now come to an endeuour of clearing such obiections , as you conceiued would offer themselues ; whereof the first is , that the religion established , ( which you call schisme ) serues to increase his Maiesties authoritie and wealth , and therefore it cannot stand with his honour to further the vnity of the Church of CHRIST : Indeed it must be confessed , and cannot bee denied , that the religion established , yeelds his Maiestie the authority due vnto him , which is more then the Romish yeelds to the Soueraigne Princes of her profession , and yet no more then CHRIST and his Apostles in practise yeelded , and in precept command : And yet withall it cannot be denied , but some of his Maiesties ancestours , partly through the insensible incrochment of some ambitious Popes , and partly through the neglect of some weake kings , did part indeed with some of their authority , to bestow it vpon that Church , to which you intitle Christ : yet that they reserued to themselues a power euen in Ecclesiasticall causes , I haue already made sufficiently to appeare in mine answere to the 16 ▪ section of the first chapter , and in diuers other places ; to which I wil presume to adde that , which his Maiesty hath published to the world touching this very point in his Premonition to all Christian Princes and States . [ My Predecessors ( ye see ) of this kingdome , euen when the Popes triumphed in their greatnesse , spared not to punish any of their Subiects that would preferre the Popes obedience to theirs , euen in Church matters , so farre were they then from acknowledging the Pope their temporall Superiour , or yet from doubting that their owne Church men were not their Subiects . And now I will close vp all these examples with an Acte of Parliament in King Richard the II. his time , whereby it was prohibited that none should procure ● benefice from Rome , vnder paine to be put out of the kings protection . And thus may ye see that what those kings successiuely one to another by foure generations haue acted in priuate , the same was also maintained by a publike law . By these few examples now I hope I haue sufficiently cleared my selfe from the imputation , that any ambition or desire of nouelty in me should haue stirred mee , either to robbe the Pope of any thing due vnto him , or to assume vnto my selfe any farther authority , then that which other Christian Emperours and kings through the world , and my owne Predecessours of England in especiall haue long agone maintained . Neither is it enough to say a● Parsons doth in his answere to the Lord Cooke : that farre more kings of this Countrey haue giuen many more examples of acknowledging , or not resisting the Popes vsurped authority ; some perchance lacking the occasion , and some the ability of resisting them : for euen by the ciuill Law in the case of a violent intrusion , and long wrongfull possession against me , it is enough if I proue that I haue made lawful interruption vpon conuenient occasions . ] Hitherto his Maiesty . And I cannot but wonder what Mr. Doctour meant , ( if he had read it , ) not to take any notice of it , or if he reade it not , how he durst presume thus to write to his Maiesty , without so much as the reading of his writings : From whence we may gather , that what Henry the VIII ▪ acted in that regard , was but a manifestation of the intents and desires of his predecessors , which they durst not fully expresse , and what they enacted , a preparatiue to the roundnesse of his proceedings . Besides I see not , but if his Maiesties predecessors granted that to his Holinesse , which was indiuidually annexed to the Crowne , as being a speciall branch of their prerogatiue Royall , his Maiestie stands none otherwise bound to maintaine that graunt , then they held themselues obliged to make that good , which King Iohn had yeelded vnto him , and if they did part with their authoritie ( as your selfe speake ) then was it their owne before they parted with it , and not the Bishops of Rome , ( as your Romane Catholikes would haue it ) by Diuine right : and consequently beeing their owne , as they vpon occasion best knowen to themselues , conferred it : so vpon a contrary occasion ( I see no reason , but ) either themselues or their successours might as lawfully resume it : But the trueth is , that it was not giuen by them , but stollen by the Bishop of Rome , and by him held vnder colour of prescription , yet your selfe by discourse of reas●n , and force of trueth are driuen to confesse , that our bodies and goods are at his Maiesties command , either forgetting 〈◊〉 whom you wrote , or not remembring , or it may bee so much as knowing what the Church of Rome ( whose defence you vndertake ) defends touching the 1 exemption , aswell of the bodies , as the goods of Churchmen from the iurisdiction of the secular , though Supreame power : and how his Maiestie in diuers parts of his writings , hath most sufficiently prooued the nouelty of this doctrine : so that what you write herein can bee imputed to none other but to grosse flattery , or palpable ignorance : flattery of his Maiestie , in that which he truely holds , or ignorance of that which is falsely held by the Church of Rome ; but like a shrewd Cow that hath yeelded a good meale o● milke , and then ouerthrowes it with a spurne of her foote ; so hauing subiected our bodies and goods to his Maiesties commaund , you exempt our soules from his charge , but by way of protection in Catholike Religion , as if you meant purposely to crosse that of the Apostle , [ Let euery soule be subiect to the higher powers : ] But I would ●aine d●maund if his Maiestie should not protect vs in that Religion which you call Catholike , whether our bodies and goods shall then bee at his commaund ? Surely if his Holinesse ( whom you cannot but vnderstand by those that supplie Christs place , in ijs quaesunt iuris diuini , and to whom you would haue vs subordinate , ) haue the command of our soules , and his Maiestie onely of our bodies , the later may command what hee list : but men will execute his commands no farther then the former will be pleased to giue leaue , whereof we haue had often and fresh experience , aswel in the Bulls of Pius Quintus , and in the Breu●s of Paulus Quintus : and in trueth ● cannot but commend his wit , though not his honestie , that hee intitleth himselfe vnto , and interesteth himselfe in the more actiue and noble part , the bodie without the soule being as the shales without the kernell , or the scabberd without the sword . Those Kings that out of their Regall authoritie purged the Church of corruptions , * and reformed the abuses thereof , brought the Arke to her resting place , dedicated the Temple , and consecrated it with prayers , proclaimed fastes , caused the booke of the Lawe new found to bee read to the people , renewed he Couenant betweene God and his people , bruised the brasen Serpent in pieces , which was set vp by the expresse commandement of God , and was a figure of Christ , destroyed all Idols and false Gods , make a publique reforma●ion by a Commission of Secular men and Priests mixed for that purpose , deposed the high Priest , and set vp another in his place , they that lawfully called Generall Councils , for the suppressing of heresies , as 2 Constantine did the Nicene , 3 Theodosius the elder , the first at Constantinople , 4 Theodosius the yonger , the Ephesin , 5 Valentinian & Martian the Chalcedonian ; they that made Lawes for the ordering of Church-men and Church-matters , as 6 Iustinian and Charlemaine , cannot in the iu●gement of any indifferent man be said , to haue no charge of the soules of such a● are committed to their charge , but onely by way of protection . Neither doeth it follow that his Maiestie in taking the charge of soules vpon him , according to the qualitie of his office , and Gods appointment , whose officer hee is , should therfore be himself a Priest , or be the author of his owne Religion , as you would maliciously inferre , from the custom of the heathen Emperors , no more then the Kings of Israel , or the Emperors of the Christian Primitiue Church were Priests , or authors of that religion , which by diuine ordinance they tooke care of , aswell in the Priest , as in the people , aswell in confirming and countenancing what was in order , as in censuring and restoring what was amisse : neither was it in the time of the law of nature held vnlawfull , that both the Regall and the Ecclesiasticall , the princely and the priestly power should reside together in one person , during which Law wee haue not many examples of Kings that gouerned a people , where the Church of God was planted : there is onely mention to my remembrance of Melchisedecke King of Salem , and of him it is sayd withall , that hee was a Priest of the most High God ; so that in his person these two offices , the principalitie and the Priesthood , were ioyned ; both which followed the prerogatiue of the birth-right : and to this double dignity was answerable a double portion : the like do we reade of Anias , that he was Rex idem hominū , Poebique Sacerdos ; and it was the speach of 7 Diogenes the Pythagorean , that [ to make a compleat King , hee had need bee a Captaine , a Iudge , and a Priest , ] of which two of these were ioyned in Ely and Samuel , and the other two in Moses . The name of Presbyter Iohn seemes to import that they haue beene , or should bee Priests , and at this day the Kings of 8 Malabar in the East Indies are all of them Bramenes , that is , Priests : whereby it appeares that the Office of a King , and a Priest are not incompatible in the same person : but as they are not incompatible ; so neither among the Heathen was the Priest-hood essentially annexed to the Regall power ( as M. Doctor affirmeth ) 9 Romulus indeed ioyned them , but Numa disioyned them , and Augustus againe reioyned them , aswell for the safetie , as the honour of the Emperour ; yet not so , but that they might , and afterwards did fall asunder . Indeede the Bishop of Rome , now as he succeedes those Emperours in place ; so doth he in that chalenge , assuming to himselfe , ( but in another sense then hee spake it , whose Successour hee pretends himselfe ) Regale Sacerdotium , a royall Priest-hood . And being * Christs Vicar , he cannot for shame take to himselfe the title of Emperour or King , but a power aboue them all , as you truely tell vs CHRIST had : but to none other purpose ( as I conceaue ) but from him , to deriue it to his Vicar , he being not only * that Spirituall man , who iudgeth all things , himselfe being iudged of none , ( by which hee is inabled to depose 10 Princes ) but a Spirituall Prince himselfe , which is the most fauourable construction that possibly can be giuen of those words , 11 Hunc vnum super omnes Gentes , & omnia regna , principem constituit , where Christ , ( vnto whom all power was giuen both in heauen and earth , ) is made to make the Bishop of Rome , his Vicar , the Soueraigne Lord , and graund Commander of all the Nations and Kingdomes in the world , applying that , as properly meant of himselfe , which was figuratiuely spoken to the Prophet , [ ast; I haue this day set thee ouer the nations , and ouer the Kingdomes , to roote out , to pull downe , to destroy , to ouerthrow , to build , and to plant ] but in that hee makes himselfe a Prince , he goes beyond euen the literall Commission of the Prophet . The vse hath beene that the Christian Emperours at their Coronation , 12 should administer to the Pope in place of Subdeacon , should put on a Surplis , & be admitted as Canonicks , not onely of S. Peters Church in Rome , but of St. Iohn Laterane , which argues their acknowledgement of some Ecclesiasticall power , to haue beene in them : Nay Maximilian the first , a Catholike Emperour , went so farre as to attempt the 13 vniting of the Papacie to the Empire : The Pope neuer yet attempted so much in open shew , and plaine termes ; but hath effected no lesse , nay more , indeede , and in trueth , in making the Papacie the Substantiue , and the Empire the Adiectiue : But among Christians , ( saith our Dr. ) the Spirituall and Temporall authoritie haue two beginnings , as if hee who gaue his Apostles Commission to preach the Gospel , did not also proclaime in the eight of the Prouerbes [ * By me Kings reigne ] it is there deliuered in the person of wisedome , by which no doubt is to be vnderstood the second person in Trinitie , the wisedome of the Father . It may be his meaning is , that the Spirituall authority is from the good God , and the Temporall from the euill god , distinguishing as the Manicheans did : Or that the Spirituall is from God , and the Temporall from the people ; or the Spirituall from Christ , and the Temporall from Antichrist : Howsoeuer from a double beginning he inferres a double Supremacie , whereas to speake properly ; that is onely Supreme which giues beginning , and not that which receiues , howbeit in themselues ( since the institution of the Leuiticall Law ) wee must confesse them distinct and independant , the Priest depending on the Prince , in regard of externall coactiue iurisdiction , but not of inward vocation , or outward ordination : Power of the keyes , of administring the Sacraments , of preaching the Word , in himselfe hee hath not , and consequently cannot confer it vpon others , and therefore was * Saul reproued by Samuel for sacrificing a burnt offering , and * Vzziah plagued with leprosie for burning incense in the Temple : Yet by special dispensation , * Moses the Supreme ciuil 14 Magistrate consecrated Aaron the high Priest , and is in regarde of preheminence termed * his god , and Iehoshaphat King of Iudah by his ordinary power gaue instructions , aswel to the * Priests as to the Iudges , how to administer their seuerall charges , himselfe being as it were the head , and these two as his two eyes or armes . Indeed before the Kingdome was erected , I take the high * Priest , and the chiefe Iudge among the Israelites , to haue bene as two heads , without any appeale either from each to other , or to any Superior : But when once they had a King , appeales lay to him from both . Thus did Saint * Paul appeale from the high Priest of his owne Nation to Caesar though an Heathen Emperour , and from him was there no appeale at all : So that the Spirituall authoritie was then subordinate to the Temporall : but when once it began to interpose it selfe in Temporall affaires , and within a while after to oppose it selfe against the Temporall power , it made a ready way to the destruction of both . B. C. 35. As for your wealth , it is true that the Crowne hath more pence payed vnto it now , then in the Catholike times it had : but it hath neuer the more wealth . It is but the gaine of the tellers to haue more money . True wealth is 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 〈◊〉 hee is the richest Prince that hath meanes to maintaine the greatest armie , and to doe most magnificent workes both in warre and in peace : wherin the facts of your Catholike ancestors doe appeare vpon good Record : your Maiesties are but yet hoped for , and if euer you haue the helpe of Catholike Religion to assist you , I hope you shall excell them all ; otherwise I assure my selfe , the 1 Schisme will doe what it can to make you poore , and then complaine that you are not rich . It was indeed one of the maine pretenses in the statutes of Henry the VIII . that the Schisme might inrich the King , and maintaine his warres ; but God did not 2 blesse it : for notwithstanding all the Church lands , and goods , and tenths , and fruits , and premuniries : King Henry the VIII . was faine to abase his coyne more then once , and yet he died not so rich as his Catholike father left him . And since his time what is become of the 3 Court of Augmentation ? what benefit doe you receiue of all the Church lands , more then your Progenitors did when they were in the 4 hands of the Clergie ? what ease haue your Subiects of Subsidies thereby ? or in briefe , how much your 5 Coffers are inriched , you may be pleased to bee informed , by those that haue to doe in those offices , and can readily giue you an account ; for mine owne part , I haue diligently read ouer the 6 Statutes made by Henry the VIII . and doe finde that the euents are so cleane contrary to the Prefaces , and pretences of them , as if God , of purpose would laugh them to scorne . G. H. 35. If the Crowne haue more Pence paid in now then in former times , it must needes follow , that were it not by default of officers the meanes might bee greater to doe great workes both in peace and in warre ; & whereas you vpbraid his Maiestie , that his are but yet hoped for , hee hath had other occasions ( as the world well knoweth ) of expence , then his ancestors had , and those occasions that they had , hee hath not , whether in building at home , or in warring abroad : theirs it may be were more conspicuous , but his more necessary ; and yet I doubt not but vpon iust occasion his Maiestie would bee able to maintaine as great and as powerfull an armie as any of his predecessors , to the terror of Rome and the Romanists , who are so farre from complaining of his Maiesties wants , as they would rather triumph most in this , that hee were not rich . Gretser , ( in your account , I am sure a good Catholike ) complaines not , butscoffes at his Maiesties neede of money , in his answere to Monsieur Plessis his Epistle Dedicatory to his Maiesty , prefixed to his Mysteriū iniquitatis ; in which his Maiestie being incouraged by that noble Lord , to lay by his Pen , and take his sword in hand , though it were to the passing of the Alps , and the sacking of Rome , Gretser in his replie makes it the burden of his song in diuers periods , Sed deest pecunia . But the onely sure way ( you say ) for his Maiestie to inrich himselfe , is , to turne Romane Catholike ; as if it were not fresh in memorie what infinite masses of treasure the pretence of that Religion carried out of the land , to the triple Crowne of Rome , and other forreiners , well neere as much as was brought to the Crowne of England it selfe ; as appeares in Bonners Preface to Gardiners oration of true obedience : In the reigne of King Henry the third , it amounted by iust computation , to the summe of 60000. markes , which amounts to an incredible masse at this day , and was more then the standing reuenues of the Crowne at that time , as the Author of the British antiquities reports it , out of Matthew Paris , in the life of Boniface , Archbishop of Canterburie : in which relation are also set downe the grieuances which the Bishops , the Abbots , the Barons , and the king himselfe exhibited in their seuerall Letters to his Holinesse , touching the grieuousnesse of his exactions , the effect whereof was as followeth . That the Pope being not content with that aide which is called Peter-pence , hee made money here in England , by a thousand cunning sleights and trickes , without the consent of the King , against the ancient Right and Liberties of the Kingdome , and against the Appeales put in by the Kings Ambassadours and Proctors in the Council of Lions . That the Benefices and Prebendaries in England , were by him conferred vpon Italians and Romanes , not able to speake , or so much as to vnderstand our language , and that many times , one Italian succeeded another , as in lawfull inheritance : the Church reuenues being by this meanes wasted and caried out of the kingdome , the word of God not preached , Ecclesiasticall dueties not obserued , hospitality , almes , and Diuine Seruice neglected , and lastly the walles and roofe of Chancels and Parsonage houses suffered to drop downe , to the indangering of many soules , and the vtter desolation of the Church . That of those Churches into which hee thrust not strangers , he exacted Pensions , against his owne promise by letter . That the natiue English were vpon all occasions drawen by Citations to the Court of Rome , against the Customes and Common Law of the Kingdome , and against the Popes owne priuiledges , formerly granted . To like purpose is that which I finde in a Manuscript of Mr. Hales , a man renowned in his time , aswell for his learning as his honestie ; his words are these , speaking of the cunning fetches of the Bishops of Rome , for the enriching of themselues and their Clergie , to the impouerishing of the King and the State. First ( saith hee ) they exempted the Clergy , aswell the Secular as the regular , from the authoritie of the Kings of England , whereby they neither would obey the Prince , but when and wherin it pleased them , nor albeit they had the greater part of the possessions and profits of the Realme , they would be contributory to the charges of the defence thereof , but when it listed them . Secondly , they reserued to themselues the collations generally & specially of all Archbishopricks , Bishopricks , Abbies , Priories , & all other dignities and benefices in England , which many times they gaue to aliants , that neuer dwelt in England , nor euer came into England . So the reuenues thereof were not spent in the Realme , but caried out of the same , & when they gaue them to any of the Realme , they made them pay exceeding summes of money for Palls , Annats , First fruits , Tenths , and such like , whereby the Realme from time to time was very much impouerished . Thirdly , they vsed to dispence , not onely with their owne Lawes and Canons , but also many times with Gods word in matters of Matrimony , and otherwise , whereby they sucked no litle treasure out of the Realme . Fourthly , in causes testamentary , in causes of Matrimony , and diuorces , right of tithes , oblations , and obuentions , they had decreed that men might appeale from any Court within this Realme to the Court of Rome , whereby the people of this nation was very much troubled , by reason it was so farre distant from this Realme , and when they came thither , they could not in long time haue redresse , but with long delayes were constrained to spend whatsoeuer they had . Fiftly , with dispensations for eating flesh , and white meates , for pardons and redemption of soules out of Purgatory , for dispensations with vowes , and such like beggery , they scraped together infinite summes of money : and because no fish should escape for lacke of bait , they had their Dataries and Collectours continually gaping for the prey , resident here in England . Lastly , the Clergie of this Realme being animated by the authority of the Bishop of Rome , the Arch-bishops , Bishops , and such as had Spirituall Iurisdiction within this Realme , not onely vnreasonably troubled , and vexed the people of this realme in their Courts , but also exceedingly pilled , polled and robbed them vnder colour of Fees and duties . The Parsons and Vicars were not content with the moderate Mortuaries and Corse-presents , but also daily increased the same , and would haue what it pleased them , without any consideration of the misery and pouerty of the widow and children liuing , yea , and many times where the dead had but a bare vse , and no property in the goods and chattels , they were found in his possession , and in many places they would neither baptize nor marry , nor bury , but they would haue some extraordinary reward , & the common sort of Priests would not depart with any their Masses or praiers , vnlesse they were sure to haue money . Of these and the like most vnsufferable vexations , Iohn of Sarisbury in his 6. booke , and 24. chapter De nugis Curalium , complaines . Polidor Virgil himselfe an Italian , in his 8th . booke and second chapter De inuentoribus rerum , is not sparing in the relation of them : and the booke aboue mentioned , intituled Antiquitates Britannicae is so full of them , as it seemes to haue bene written to none other purpose : which notwithstanding I finde not gainesaid by any Romanist . And can wee expect then that his Maiesty by the helpe of Romish Catholike Religion , should euer bee enriched ? Surely in reason , that which is the meanes of impouerishing his Realme , and his subiects , can not be a meanes of inriching him : [ In the want of people ( saith * Solomon , he might as well haue sayd in the peoples want ) is the destruction of the Prince , ] For as the multitude of people is the kings honour ; so the wealth of the people is the kings riches , and the welfare of the people the kings safety . But saith Mr. Doctour , one of the maine pretenses of Henry the VIII . was , to enrich himselfe in the spoile of the Church , which notwithstanding in euent proued to be contrary ; to which I reply with the Poet , — Careat successibus opto Quisquis ab euentu facta not anda putat . Actions are not so much to be measured by their issues and euents , as by the causes from which they spring , and the ends to which they are directed . * When the people exceeded too much in offring gifts toward the worke of the Sanctuary , by the discretion of Moses they were restrained , and a proclamation made throughout the Campe they should bring no more : Why should it not be as lawfull for Henry the VIII . to restore it backe againe to the owners , if too much were giuen , as for Moses to restraine them for giuing : hee tooke it out of their hands who vpon al occasions at the Popes command were ready to vse it as a weapon against himselfe , and in defence of their holy Father , and conferd it vpon those who therewith were to serue both himselfe and the State in peace at home , and in wars abroad . As the Church prayes for the ciuill state ; so is it to shield the Church : and better it were the Church should quit a part of her maintenance , then that the whole should lie obnoxious to the ●acrilegious hands of forreine vsurpation : If in performance hereof , that which should haue bene ordained to publike , or sacred , was by some ill disposed persons , or the king himselfe , turned to priuate and prophane vses ; or if that which inseperably belongs to the maintenance of Ecclesiasticall persons , were put into the possession of those who serued not at the altar , this manner of proceeding might so staine and vitiate the whole action , as it might carry a secret curse with it vpon the authours and actours of it . No doubt but a good cause , and in it selfe most iust both may bee and oft is marred in the handling : and being handled neuer so well , yet in the issue it may miscarry , Gods iudgements being alwayes in themselues most iust , but many times their causes hidden from vs. I vndertake not the defence of Henry , or any other Prince or person in robbing the Church , but to his vnfortunate euents , we may oppose the happy successe of Queene Elizabeth his daughter , and successour both in gouernment and in opposition to the Church of Rome : She maintained long and chargeable wars , in diuers kingdomes abroad , against Balak and Balaam , Gog and Magog , to the infinite expense of her treasure , and yet at her death she left more in her coffers then her Romish Catholike sister , and immediate predecessour , notwithstanding her peace abroad , her mariage with the Lord of the Indies , and her readmittance ( though with much adoe ) of the Popes authority . Lastly for full satisfaction in this point , Mr. Doctor hauing so good intelligence of his Maiesties disposition , and being so inwardly acquainted with his secrets , as he makes himselfe , could not well be ignorant that his Maiesty ▪ is so farre from inriching , or hoping to inrich himselfe in the spoile of the Church , vnder colour of religion , that to his immortall fame since his comming to the Crowne , 1 he hath bound his owne hands and his posterity from alienating the reuenues consecrated to the Churches vse : so that your inuectiue in this place is malicious against King Henry , if in no other regard , yet because it is impertinent in regard of his Maiesty , who hath no Monasteries to pull downe , nor ( as your selfe before confesse ) will to pull downe Churches : but though he haue no will to pull downe Churches , but rather to set them vp , it followes not , but that he should be willing to 2 preserue that Church ( wherof vnder God he is set by God as the chiefe Gouernour ) from the spoile and tyrannie of forreine vsurpers : Nay the latter may not vnfitly be inferred vpon the former : And if in regard of that preseruation onely wee now pay his Maiesty what those tyrants formerly receiued , he receiues nothing but what he rightly may , nor we pay but what in duety and conscience we ought . B. C. 36. There is yet another obiection or two in reason of state , concerning your Maiesty , which seeme to be harder to answere then all the rest : Whereof the one is , that your Maiestie hath vndertaken the cause in writing , and set out a booke in print , and it must needes be great dishonour to you to recall it . This indeede is it which I haue heard the 1 Caluinists of England often wish for before it was done , and much boast of after it was by meanes effected , that your Maiestie should no longer be able to shew your selfe indifferent , as you did at the first , but were now ingaged vpon your honour to maintaine their party , and oppugne the Catholikes , and altogether to suppresse them : But there is 2 nothing in that booke why your Maiesty may not when you please admit the Popes Supremacie in spirituals , and you are partly ingaged thereby to admit the triall of the first general Councels , and most ancient fathers , and as for the question of Antichrist , it is but an Hypotheticall Proposi●ion , and so reserued as you may recall your selfe when you will : And howsoeuer that booke cameforth , either of your owne disposition , or by the daily instigation of some others that did abuse your clemency , and seeke to send you of their owne errand ; it cannot serue their turnes , nor hinder your Maiestie from hearkening to an end of conte●tion . For if King Henry the VIII . in the iudgement of Protestants might saue his honour and 3 contradict hi● booke from very good to starke naught , they must not deny , but that your Maiesty may increase your Honour by altering your booke from lesse 4 good to much better . G. H. 36. There are not onely two , but many more Obiections that might be made in reason of State concerning his Maiesty , which not onely seeme , but are indeede harder to answere , then your poore and slight euasions can giue satisfaction to any man of iudgement ; whereof a chiefe one is his Maiesties vndertaking the cause in writing , wherein wee are bound to blesse God that hath set such a King ouer vs , whom he hath indowed with such singular gifts , as to giue occasion to such an Obiection . Hee was no foole that pronounced that Cōmon-wealth happy , where learned men had the gouernment , or the gouernors were learned : and another who holds those wise men in the Gospel who came from the East , are therefore held Kings , because they were learned , which I speake not to derogate frō other Kings , but to thanke God for our owne , whose drops that fall both from his tongue and Pen are as the Prophet Dauid speakes in another case , like raine falling vpon the mowen grasse , or as showers that water the earth . We haue read in our own Chronicles of one Bladud a Brittish King , who studied at Athens , of Alured a Saxon King , who translated the Psalter into his own language , of Henry a Norman King , who for his great schollership was surnamed the Beauclarke , but for a King ( only Dauid and Salomon excepted ) that hath written so much , and so well as his Maiestie , & exposing it to publike censure , hath left it as an euerlasting monumēt of his name to posterity , for mine owne part I must confesse in my small reading , I haue not met with any , either in our owne or forreine History : Some Kings haue done some what in this kinde , but hee excelleth them all : so that for a Christian King to write and to publish his writings to the world , euen in matter of Religion , is not without example . The Booke of Charlemaine in defence of the decree of the Synode of Frankeford , which himselfe had thither called , and against the Canons of the second Nicene Council , touching the controuersie of adoring images , is yet extant to bee seene in the Palatine library : & so is it acknowledged by Augustinus Steuchus in his second booke of Constantines donation , where hee presses some things in that Booke for the Popes aduantage : Howbeit Bellarmine in his second Booke of Images and 15th . Chapter , labourto prooue the contrary , granting that it was sent by that Emperour to Pope Adrian , but not as his owne . His Maiesties Bookes , aswell the former in defence of the Oath of Allegeance , as the later by way of Premonition to the Christian States , are no doubt , as great corrasiues and eyesores to you , as to vs they are cordiall and comfortable : and cannot be but to him as dishonourable , if hee should recall them , as now they are honourable if hee continue constant to himselfe and them . Now that they should proceede rather from the instigation of others , then his owne disposition , is a surmise of your owne , I know not , whether more foolish , as being ignorant of that which hee had both written and spoken and done since hee came to yeeres of discretion conformably thereunto , or dishonest in calling his Maiesties singular wisedome into question , in suffering himselfe to bee so farre abused , as vnwittingly to bee sent on other mens errands , and to serue other mens turnes . Howsoeuer , there is nothing ( you say ) in that booke ( by which you cannot but vnderstand both the Premonition , and the Apologie , both bound together in one volume , and titled together in one front ) why his Maiestie may not when he please admit the Popes Supremacie in Spirituals : wherein first you dash ( though peraduenture vnawares ) against your great Cardinal , who in his Letter to Blackwell , professeth , [ that in whatsoeuer words the Oath of Allegeance ( in defence of which his Maiestie wrote his Apologie ) bee conceiued , it tends to none other end , but that the authorie of the head of the Church of England , may bee transferred from the Successour of S. Peter to the Successour of K. Henry the VIII . ] this indeed he affirmes falsly , but both in his Tortus against his Maiesties Apologie , and in his Apologie against his Maiesties Premonition , hee affirmeth truely that the vsurped Supremacy of the Bishop of Rome is in them both impugned : And I cannot but marueile at such shamelesse impudencie as dares thus to write to his Maiestie touching his owne writings , whose very words toward the later end of his Apologie are these ( discoursing before of the Supremacie of K. Henry the VIII . in Church-matters , for which Bishop Fisher , and Sir Thomas Moore were pretended to haue suffered . ) [ I am sure ( saith hee ) that the Supremacie of Kings may and will euer be better maintained by the word of God ( which must euer be the true rule to discerne all weighty heads of doctrine by ) to bee the true and proper office of Christian Kings in their owne dominions , then hee will euer be able to maintaine his annihilating Kings and their authorities , together with his base and vnreuerent speaches of them , wherewith both his former great volumes and his late bookes against Venice are filled . ] Where he goes on and proues this Supremacie aswell by the Old as the New Testament , and the practise both of the Kings of Israel and the Christian Emperours in the Primitiue Church , both explaning and iustifying the Oath of Supremacie , as it is by him imposed , and taken by vs , and in his Premonition written afterward ( though set before in the Booke ) he is so cleere in this point , that Mr. Dr. cannot but stand conuinced either of grosse negligēce in not reading , or vnpardonable forgetfulnes in not remembring what he had read : His Maiesties words are these : [ But as I well allow of the Hierarchie of the Church for distinction of orders ( for so I vnderstand it ) so I vtterly deny that there is an earthly Monarch thereof , whose word must be a Law , and who cannot erre in his sentence by an infabilitie of spirit . Because earthly Kingdomes must haue earthly Monarchies ; it doth not follow that the Church must haue a visible Monarch too : for the world hath not one earthly Temporall Monarch . Christ is his Churches Monarch , and the holy Ghost his Deputie , * Reges gentium dominantur eorum , vos autem non sic . Christ did not promise before his Ascension to leaue Peter with them to direct and instruct them in all things , * but he promised to send the holy Ghost vnto them to that end . And for these two before cited places , whereby Bellarmine maketh the Pope to triumph ouer Kings ; I meane * Pasce oues , and * Tibi dabo claues , the Cardinall knowes well enough the same wo●●s of Tibi dabo are in another place spoken by Christ in the plurall number : and hee likewise knowes what reasons the ancients doe giue why Christ bade Peter Pasce oues : and also what a cloud of witnesses there is , both of ancients , and euen of late Popish Writers , yea diuers Cardinals , that doe all agree , that both these speeches vsed to Peter were meant to all the Apostles represented in his person , otherwise how could Paul direct the Church of Corinth to excommunicate the Incestuous person Cum Spiritu suo , * whereas he should then haue sayed Cum Spiritu Petri ? and how could all the Apostles haue otherwise vsed all their censures only in Christs Name , and neuer a word of his Vicars ? Peter we read did in all the Apostles meetings sit among them as one of their number , * and when chosen men were sent to Antiochia from that Apostolike Councell at Ierusalem , the text sayeth , it seemed good to the Apostles and Elders , with the whole Church to send chosen men , but no mention made of the head thereof ; and so in their Letters no mention is made of Peter , but onely of the Apostles , Elders , and Brethren . And it is a wonder why Paul rebuketh the Church of Corinth , for making exception of persons , * because some followed Paul , some Apollos , some Cephas ; if Peter was their visible head : for then those that followed not Peter or Cephas renounced the Catholike Faith : But it appeareth well , that Paul knew little of our new doctrine , since he handleth Peter so rudely , * as hee not only compareth ; but preferreth himselfe vnto him : But our Cardinall prooues Peters Superiority by Pauls going to visite him : Indeed Paul sayeth , he went to Ierusalem to visite Peter , and to conferre with him : * but he should haue added , and to kisse his feet : To conclude then , the trueth is , that ●eter was both in age , and in the time of Christs calling him one of the first of the Apostles : in order the principall of the first twelue , and one of the three , whome Christ for orders sake preferred to all the rest , and no further did the Bishop of Rome claime for three hundreth yeere after Christ : Subiect they were to the generall Councels , and euen but of late did the Councell of Constance depose three Popes , and set vp the fourth , and till Phocas dayes , that murthered his Master , were they subiect to Emperours : But how they are now come to bee Christs Vicars , Gods on earth , Triple Crowned Kings of Heauen , Earth , and Hell , Iudges of all the world , and none to iudge them , heads of the Faith , absolute deciders of all controuersies by the infallibilitie of their spirit ▪ hauing all power both Spirituall and Temporall in their hands , the high Bishops , Monarchs of the whole earth , Superiours to all Emperours , and Kings , yea Supreme Vice-gods , who , whether they will or not , can not erre . How they are now come , I say to this top of greatnesse I know not : but sure I am , Wee that are kings , haue greatest need to looke to it . As for me , Paul and Peter I know , but these men I know not , and yet to doubt of this , is to denie the Catholike Faith , nay , the Word it selfe must be turned vpside downe , and the order of 1 Nature inuerted , ( making the left hand to haue the place before the right , ) that this Primacie may be maintained . ] Thus we see how clearely and strongly his Maiestie both in his Apologie proues the Supremacie of Kings in causes Ecclesiasticall , and disproues in his Premonition the pretended Supremacie of Popes , euen in Spirituals , denying them to be Christs Vicars , Peters Successors , visible Monarchs , heads of the Faith , deciders of all controuersies , high Priests , vniuersall Bishops , and destroying the two maine grounds of that Monarchie , the Supremacie of S. Peter , and their infallibilitie in iudging . Truely in the Writing hereof mee thought I was touched with shame and pittie , that a Diuine should with such palpable falshoods , belie his Soueraigne , and gull the world , and a Doctor of Diuinitie so fowlie stumble in so plaine and manifest a case : howbeit it cannot be denyed to be true , which he addes , that his Maiestie by that Booke is partly ingaged to admit the triall of the first generall Councels , and the most ancient Fathers . For the Councels [ I reuerence and admit ( saith hee ) the foure first generall Councels as Catholike & Orthodoxe , and the said foure generall Councels are acknowledged by our Acts of Parliament , and receiued for Orthodoxe by our Church . And for the Fathers ( saith hee ) I reuerence them as much and more then the Iesuits doe , for what euer the Fathers , for the first fiue hundred yeeres , did with an vnanime consent agree vpon , to be beleeued as a necessarie point of saluation , I either will beleeue it also , or at least will be humbly silent , not taking vpon me to condemne the same : but for euery priuate Fathers opinion , it bindes not my conscience more then Bellarmines , euery one of the Fathers vsually contradicting others . I will therefore in that case follow S. Augustines rule in iudging of their opinions , as I find them agree with the Scriptures : what I find agreeable thereunto I will gladly imbrace , what is otherwise I will with their reuerence reiect . ] So that his Maiestie admitteth the foure first Councels , not as Diuine Oracles , or as the foure Gospels , but as Catholike and Orthodoxe , and reuerenceth the most ancient Fathers , not as the holy Scriptures , but as consonant thereunto . And if that triall should be made , your holy Father would thereby gaine as litle for the countenancing of his vsurped Supremacie , as Zozimus , Boniface , and Celestine his Predecessours , in forging a Canon of the first Nicene Councell for their pretended Iurisdiction in appeales , and labouring to force the Councell of Carthage thereunto , whereas that Councell in precise termes confineth other Bishops , and Patriarchs to the exercise of their iurisdictiō within their own Diocesses or Prouinces , as the Custome of the Bishop of Rome was , the words are these , [ Let old Customes be kept : they that are in Egypt , and Lybia , and Pentapolis : that the Bishop of Alexandria haue the preheminence of all these , because such is the Custome of the Bishop of Rome too : likewise also in Antioch and in other Prouinces , let the Churches enioy their dignities and prerogatiues ] which words of the Councel grounding on the Custome of the B. of Rome , that as he had preeminence of all the Bishops about him : so Alexandria and Antioch should haue of all about them ; and likewise other Churches , as the Metropolitan each in their owne Prouinces , doe shew that the Pope neither had preeminence of all through the world before the Nicene Councell , nor ought to haue greater preeminence by their iudgement then he before time had . This Councell was called about 327. yeeres after Christ , and there met in it 318. Bishops , the chiefe lights of Christian Religion at that time , Ambrose saying , 2 that their number was mistically prefigured in those 318. Souldiers , by whome Abraham got the victory ouer the fiue Kings . The second generall Councell was helde at Constantinople , against Macedonius , who denyed the Diuinitie of the holy Ghost consisting of 150. Bishops , about the yeere 383. called by Theodosius the Elder , who both prescribed the place and time , the matter to be discussed , and maner of proceeding in it , sent his Deputie thither to supplie his roome , as moderator or president for the keeping of order & obseruing of decencie , and lastly by his Imperiall power , ratified the Decrees thereof : all which acts flowing from the prerogatiue of his place and office , are now denyed by the Pope and his flatterers any way to belong to Emperours , or Christian Princes : besides this , the Councell it selfe layed a foundation for that which the fourth generall Councell further built vpon , in equalizing the See of Constantinople , or new Rome to that of the olde . The thirde generall Councell was held at Ephesus in the yeere 430. summoned by Theodosius the younger against the Nestorian heresie , which diuided Christ into two persons , it consisted of 200. Bishops : This Councell ( in which S. Cyrill was president ) not onely prescribed and limited the Popes Legate , and others that were sent in ambassage to the Prince , what they should doe , but added this threatning , [ Scire autem volumus vestram Sanctitatem , quòd si quid horum contemptum fuerit , neque Sancta Synodus habebit rata , neque vos Communionis sinet esse participes : Wee giue your Holinesse to vnderstand , that if any of these things ( which we haue appointed you ) be omitted by you , neither will this holy Synode ratifie your actes , nor receaue you to the Communion : ] By which it is euident that the lawful and generall Councell of Ephesus , thought they might , and sayd they would ; not onely controle ; but euen excommunicate the Popes Vicegerent , if hee did not that which was enioyned him by the Synode . The fourth and last generall Councell which his Maiestie reuerenceth as Orthodoxe , was the great Councel of Chalcedon , consisting of 630. Bishops , called by Martian the Emperour in the yeere 454. against Eutiches , who in extreame opposition to Nestorius confounded the natures of Christ , making of two distinct natures but one , whereas Nestorius rent asunder his person , making of one two . This great Councell then gaue the Bishop of Constantinople equall priuiledges with the Bishop of Rome , as may appeare in the fifteenth Acte of that Councell , and when Paschasinus and Lucentius , who represented the person of Leo , then Bishop of Rome , the next day desired of the noble men that sate there by the Emperours appointment , as Iudges and Moderatours , that the matter might be brought about againe , and put to voices , pretending that it was not orderly past , the Councell that in the absence of the Popes Legates had made this Decree , in their presence confirmed the same , they contradicting and labouring , as it had beene for their liues to withstand it . And since his Maiestie and the Realme haue vndertaken the defence of these foure Councils , it were to bee wished they might , if not otherwise , yet by publike authority ▪ bee faithfully translated by some chosen men of our owne , out of their Originals ; and where diuerse readings offer themselues vpon comparing of the best printed Copies and Manuscripts , the most likely might bee giuen ; the worke would not bee great and the benefit in my iudgement issuing from thence not small . Now for such things as may in shew bee drawen out of these Councils to make against vs , and for the Church of Rome , I referre the reader to 3 Bellarmines Apologie against his Maiesties Premonition , where hee hath put together whatsoeuer either diligence could obserue , or malice wrest , so that whosoeuer shall now gleane after him , shall gaine as little credite to himselfe , as aduantage to his cause , yet whatsoeuer he hath said , or for his purpose pressed from thence , is so fully and sufficiently answered by a reuerend & learned 4 Prelate of our owne , as if our Doctor would haue dealt either as a Scholler , or an honest man , hee should first haue vndertaken the confutation of that answere , before hee had againe pressed his Maiestie with the triall of those Councils . From the first Generall Councils , hee proceedes to the most ancient Fathers ; but what neede any farther question of single Fathers , since wee haue heard them sp●aking , met together in Councill ? His Maiestie confines himselfe to the first 500. yeeres , and to their Vnanime consent , and that in matters of saluation , and all this granted , hee doth not alwayes promise a stedfast beleefe , but an humble silence . Now Bellarmine , despairing belike , to put the matter to the triall of their testimonies , complaines that his Maiestie descends not lower , and stoopes aswell to the later writers , as Bonauent●re , and Thomas , and Anselme , whereas our Controuersies are of that nature , as they cannot bee receiued as sufficient witnesses in the deciding of them : they fell vpon those times , which the farther distant they were from the fountaine , the more filth they gathered , and as the winds are hot , or cold , dry or moyst , according to the qualitie of the Regions through which they blowe , and waters relish of the soile through which they run , so did they of the ages in which they liued . And for the most ancient , Bellarmine himselfe commonly dazels the eyes of the world , either with the bastardy of false , or the corruptiō of true Fathers , whom hee esteemes , as they make more or lesse for his purpose , none otherwise then merchants doe their casting counters ; sometimes in his valuation they stand for pounds , sometimes for shillings , sometimes for pence , sometimes for nothing . 5 Ireneus , and Iustin Martyr , who succeeded Polycarpe and Ignatius , the hearers and disciples of S. Iohn the Euangelist ▪ held [ that the deuils were not tormented , nor to bee tormented , before the generall day of Iudgement ] in which opinion they are seconded by 6 Epiphanius and Oecumenius , neither doe I see ( sayth Bellarmin ) how we may defend them from errour ; of 7 Origen he sayes who liued about 200. yeeres after CHRIST , that hee was seene to burne in Hell fire with 8 Arrius and Nestorius ; of 9 Tertullian ( who liued about the same time ) that he was an Arch-heretike of no credit , 10 Sozemen hee accuses of falsehood in his * Apologie , touching Paphnutius his proceeding about the marriage of Churchmen , and the Fathers yeelding vnto him in the Nicen Councill ; touching the iurisdiction of Bishops : 11 Ieromes opinion ( saith he ) is false , and in its proper place to bee refuted ; S. Augustine expounding those wordes as wee doe , Thou art Peter , and vpon this Rocke will I build my Church , he charges with errour out of his ignorance in the Hebrew tongue : Whereby we may perceiue what account themselues make of the ancient Fathers , who call most hotly for a triall by them . And in trueth if Mr. Doctour had well considered how Policarpe , S. Iohns scholler ( as I sayd before ) withstood Anicetus Bishop of Rome about the obseruation of Easter , and Polycrates Victor in the same businesse ; how vehemently Stephen was resisted by 12 Cyprian Bishop of Carthage , dying as a martyr , and Canonized for a Saint , to whom hee imputes errour , and the maintenance of the cause of Heretikes against the Church of God , the defence of things superfluous , impertinent , false , naught , contrary to themselues , presumption , frowardnesse , peruersenesse , blindnesse of heart , inflexible obstinacie : Lastly , how Athanasius that renowned Patriarch of Alexandria , that stout champion of IESVS CHRIST , that pillar of the Church , and hammer of Heretikes , was persecuted for the Catholike faith , Pope Liberius consenting and subscribing to the Synodal sentence , whereby he was excluded from the Communion of the Church , as witnesseth 13 Binius in his first Tome of the Councils : If Mr. Doctour , I say , had well co●●●ered this , together with that famous resistance made by the sixt Councill of Carthage ( in which S. Augustine was a member ) to the vniust claime of three succeeding Popes , Zozimus , Boniface and Celestine , in the high businesse of Appeales ; hee might in good discretion haue forborne to presse his Maiestie to the triall of the most ancient Fathers . Now touching the question of Antichrist , it is not discussed by his Maiestie as an hypotheticall proposition , but as his opinion , his Maiesties words are these , [ As for the definition of Antichrist I will not vrge so obscure a point as a matter of faith to be necessarily beleeued of all Christians , but what I thinke herein I will simply declare . ] Cardinall Peron indeed makes the proposition of deposing Kings , to bee problematicall , and yet withall a part of the Catholike faith ; but his Maiestie , though he make his opinion of Antichrist no part of his faith , yet beeing his opinion , in regard of his apprehension , you cannot make it hypotheticall , which hee also declared to bee his iudgement before his comming to the Crowne of England , by his Commentarie on certaine verses of the 20th . Chapter of the Reuelation of S. Iohn , neither is his Maiestie the onely King that hath been of that opinion . You may remember not long since one of the French , who stamped on his coyne , Perdam Babylonem ; vntill then , his Maiesties substantiall and weighty reasons touching that point , bee disprooued , I see no reason hee hath to recall what hee hath written ; in the meane time his Maiestie may more iustly take vp that , then the Author of it , [ * what I haue written , I haue written ] lest hee should incurre the censure of [ * changing as the Moone . ] Lastly , for the example of Henry the VIII . it is both false and impertinent , false , in that you say he contradicted his booke , whereas his booke ( as I haue already shewed ) is onely touching the seuen Sacraments , which he held to his dying day : impertinent , in that you take it as granted that his Maiesty by recalling himselfe should alter from lesse good to much better , which is the thing alwayes by vs denied , but neuer was or euer can be proued by you . Indeed we find that S. Augustine made his Retractations from naught or lesse good to better , and Bellarmine in his Recognitions from bad to worse , and Dr. Carier to haue fallen from a formall Protestant , to a professed Papist : and as our Sauiour speakes to Saint Peter , thou being conuerted , strengthen thy brethren ; So hee contrariwise being himselfe peruerted , labours to weaken his Maiesties faith , but it is grounded on that Rocke , against which the gates of hell with their power , much lesse the instruments of Rome with their foisting and cogging shall neuer be able to preuaile . B. C. 37. The other and the greatest obiection , that howsoeuer your Maiesty before your comming to the Crowne , and in the beginning of your reigne were indifferent ; yet after the Gun-powder treason you were so angred and auerted , as now you are resolued neuer to be friends , and therfore he is no 1 good subiect that will either himselfe be reconciled to the Church of Rome , or perswade any of your subiects thereunto . I confesse your Maiesty had good cause to bee throughly angry , and so had all good men whether 2 Catholikes or Protestants , but if your Maiesty will hearken to 3 those that worke their owne purposes out of your anger , you shall bee driuen to 4 liue and die out of charity , which although it bee not so horrible to the body , yet is it much more harmefull to the soule , then violent or sudden death . It is hard I confesse for a priuate man to asswage his anger on the sudden , and there is as much difference betwixt the anger of a priuate man , and the indignations of a Prince , as betwixt a blast vpon the riuer which is soone downe , and a storme vpon the sea , which hauing raised the billowes to the height , is nourished by the motion thereof , and cannot settle againe in a long time ; but there is a time for all things , and seuen yeeres is a long time . When a man is in the midst of his anger , it pleaseth him not to bee intreated by his neighbours , much lesse by his seruants , but when a man hath chidden and punished vntill he is weary , hee will bee content to heare his seruant speake 5 reason , and though he be not the wisest , yet he is the louingst seruant that will venter to speake to his master in such a case . 6 God himselfe is exorable , and it pleaseth him to be intreated by his seruants for his enemies . I am perswaded there is no good Catholike in the world that can be your Maiesties enemy , and therfore I doe assure my selfe that God will be pleased with you to heare them speake , and not bee angry with me for mouing you thereunto . And if your Maiesty doe but vouchsafe so much patience , as to giue equall 7 hearing , I doubt not but yo● shall receiue such satisfaction as will giue you great quiet and contentment , and disquiet none of your subiects , but those onely that doe for their aduantage 8 misinforme your Maiesty , and misleade your people . And if your Maiesty haue no such vse of the Schisme , as King Henry the VIII . and Queene Elizabeth had , and that it doth neither increase your authority , nor your wealth , nor your honour , but rather hinder them all , and depriue you of that blessing which otherwise you might expect from CHRIST and his Church , from your Catholike neighbour Princes and subiects , and from the Saints in heauen , in whose Communion is the comfort of euery Christian both in life and death , then whatsoeuer some great Statesman may say to the contrary , I do verely beleeue they doe but speake for themselues : And that there is no true reason that may concerne your Maiesty to hinder you from admitting a 9 toleration of Catholikes and Catholike Religion , that those who cannot command their vnderstanding to thinke otherwise , may find the comfort they doe with so great zeale pursue in the vnitie of the Catholike Church , amongst whome I confesse my selfe to be one , that would thinke my selfe the happiest man in the world , if I might vnderstand that your Maiesty were content that I should bee so . G. H. 37. You come at last to the greatest obiection , as you terme it , which is the Gun-powder treason , but doubtlesse in the iudgement of any indifferent reader , you say least in the clearing of it , seeming rather in conclusion to referre it to a farther hearing , then for the present to answere the obiection , or excuse the plot : That which you haue to say , is , that there is a time for all things , and God himselfe is exorable , as if his Maiesty were mercilesse and inexorable : whereas hee proceeded vpon the discouery of that most barbarous designe , with such rare clemency and singular moderation , that iustice was onely taken vpon the very actors , and offenders themselues , and that in as honourable and publike a forme of triall , as euer was vsed in this kingdome ; and [ although ( as his Maiesty himselfe hath well obserued ) the onely reason they gaue for plotting so hainous an attempt was , the zeale they caried to the Romish Religion ; yet were neuer any other of that profession the worse vsed for that cause , ] as by his Maiesties gracious Proclamation , immediately after the discouery of the said fact , doth plainely appeare , onely at [ the next sitting down againe of the Parliament , were there Lawes made , enacting some such orders as were thought fit for the preuenting the like mischiefe in time to come , amongst which a forme of oath was framed , to bee taken by his subiects , whereby they should make a cleare profession of their resolution , faithfully to persist in their obedience , according to their naturall allegeance , to the end a separation might bee made betweene so many of his Maiesties Subiects , who although they were otherwise Popishly affected , yet retained in their hearts the print of their naturall Allegeance to their Soueraigne , and those who being caried away with the like fanaticall zeale that the Powder-traitours were , could not containe themselues within the bounds of their naturall Allegeance ; but thought diuersitie of Religion a safe pretext for all kinde of Treasons and Rebellions against their Soueraigne : ] Which godly and wise intent God blessed with successe accordingly ; for very many Subiects that were Popishly affected , aswell Priests , as Laickes , did freely take the same oath , whereby they both gaue his Maiestie occasion to thinke the better of their fidelitie , and likewise freed themselues of that heauie slaunder , that [ although they were Fellow-professours of one Religion with the Powder-traitors , yet were they not ioyned with them in treasona●le courses against their Soueraigne , whereby all quietly minded Papists were put out of despaire , and his Maiestie gaue good proofe , that hee intended no persecution against them for conscience sake ; but onely desired to be secured of them for ciuill obedience , which for conscience sake they were bound to performe ] I vse his Maiesties very words , because he is best able to expresse himselfe , and I know not how to expresse my selfe better , nor by many degrees so well . These were the greatest effects of his Maiesties anger vpon occasion of the Powder-treason , which notwithstanding , to shew your Rhetorike , you compare to a storme vpon the Sea raising vp the billowes to the height , making him inexorable , impatient of any equall hearing , chiding and punishing , vntill he were weary : wheras if his Mai●stie had but giuen way to the fury of the multitude , the chiefe offenders ( no doubt ) had beene torne in pieces before they could haue come to the place of execution , or of triall , and if the like monstrous , and neuer heard of offence had beene committed by Protestants , for their Religions sake in other countries , the body of that profession had suffered for it . Indeed his Maiestie had sufficient occasion giuen , that his wrath should haue beene as the roaring of a Lyon , which is the Herauld of death : but bearing the Image of God , and being the Vicegerent of God on earth , nay stiled God , by God himselfe , his mercy so tri●mphed against his iustice , that he seemed not to be mooued as the hainousnes of so horrible a fact required , vntill his Holinesse by his two Breues , and Cardinall Bellarmine by his Letter to the Arch-priest , throughly awakened him , they thereby disswading his Subiects from taking that most reasonable Oath of Allegeance , and checking the Arch-priest for taking it : to these his Maiestie in his booke Intituled Triplici nodo triplex cuneus , or an Apologie for the oth of Allegeance , vouchsafed with his owne Penne to frame a full and quicke answere , aswell for the satisfaction of scrupulous consciences , as for the iustifying of his owne proceedings , to which the Cardinal vnder the name of Tortus makes his reply , and hauing on his visarde , dealt with his Maiestie at his pleasure , in such termes , as neither became a Churchman to giue , nor a Prince to take : whereupon his Maiestie being nowe somewhat warmed , once againe tooke his quill in hand , and wrote that excellent Premonition to the Monarchs and free States of Christendome ( as the Prince of Aurange did his Apologie to the States of the Netherlands , hauing his head proscribed by Phillip the second King of Spaine for the summe of 25000. Crownes ) wherein hee not onely refutes Bellarmines reply ; but by a large Confession of his Faith cleareth himselfe from all imputation of Heresie , and with all most iudiciously setteth downe the reasons of his opinion , why he cannot but conceaue the Bishop of Rome to be Antichrist : To this the Cardinall againe reioyneth , somewhat more manerly in shew , but indeed no whit lesse saucily then in his former discourse , and how many 14 Hell-hounds haue followed vpon the same sent , the world to well knoweth , besides it is not vnknowen how some of the plotters , or at leastwise abettors in that intended Tragedy , haue their Apologies published from Rome , and others their protection in Rome ; nay , the doctrine which gaue life to that , and giues way to the like attempt , is as violently maintained by the Romish Doctors , as euer , beside infinite other writers , witnes Beaumanoirs expostulatory defence of Suarez against Seruius expository cōplaint , as also Cardinal Perrons , and his fellow Prelates late proceedings in France , together with his Holinesse benedictiō for that speciall peece of seruice , both the Cardinal in his oration , & the Pope in his Letter , labouring to disgace our Church & State : with what assurance then can this Maiesty ioyne hands with Rome ? since though the Powder be remoued frō vnder the Parliament house , yet they still prepare new matter for the like Blow , and no doubt but Paulus V. would be as ready to make his Oration in Conclaue , in commendation of it being once acted , as Sixtus Quintus was in commending that mortall blow giuen Henry the thirde of France by a Friar Iacobin ; which that it may the rather appeare , I will hereunto annexe the Translation of his Letter to Cardinall Perron , and the other French Prelates assembled in Parliament , the Originall it selfe is but a barbarous Papall stile , and therefore it cannot be expected , but the Translation should be sutable , the Letter was written vpon occasion of a Bill passed in the Lower-house , crossing the Popes pretended Power , in Deposing and Murthering Princes , and crossed by the Clergie . Pope Paul the fifth . VEnerable Brother , & our beloued Son , and likewise Venerable Brethren , and beloued Sonnes , greeting and Apostolicall benediction . The excesse of boldnesse , wherby some , as we haue heard in the generall assembly , there held in the 2. of Ian. haue endeuoured to violate the sacred authority of the Apostolike See , hath so troubled our minde , that were we not comforted by the firme confidence wee haue in the singular pietie and prudence of our dearest children , King Lewis and Queene Mary his mother , whom we vnderstand to haue been carefull to represse so vnaduised an attempt , and in the admirable zeale wherewith you being kindled , haue no lesse constantly and couragiously , then wisely and religiously withstood so great rashnesse , wee had been vtterly ouerwhelmed with intolerable griefe ; and indeed this had been a fearefull token , seeing wee may not without cause suspect , lest into France haue flowen sparkes of the lamentable fire of England , to the consuming and destruction of all true Pietie and Religion in that most Christian Kingdome , which wee trust , relying on Gods helpe , shall alwayes more and more increase vnder the patronage of so godly a King , trained vp with so great vigilancie to this end , principally by a most religious , and truely most Christian mother , you thereunto diligently yeelding your helpe , as you alwayes commendably haue done : but although such hopes doe not a little comfort vs , yet are wee not for all this free , and voide of all affliction and trouble : yea , wee are vehemently anguished , considering with our selues , in how crosse and stormie a time , wee , by the secret dispensation of God , vndertooke the guiding of S. Peters Barke , standing doubtfull and perplexed , lest happily through our negligence the sinke of vices increase , and consequently the nauigation growe more dangerous and difficult : for this cause wee dayly flie vnto him , and implore his helpe , who as without any merit of ours , so also when wee thought nothing lesse , was pleased we should sit at the sterne , and guide the helme : whom wee pray , that while the waues rush against the Prow , and heapes of foming Sea swell on each side , and tempest follow in the Sterne , hee not suffer any wracke , notwithstanding so violent shaking of the shippe ; meane while we giue the greatest thankes to his infinite goodnesse , that in the greatest danger which hitherto happily wee haue been in , hee hath relieued vs with most seasonable succours ; to wit , by your singular vertue , and prouided for the safetie of the Kingdome of France , by the counsell , industry , and religious fortitude of the Ecclesiasticall order of that Kingdome ; and on the other side wee gratulate you much , and withall greatly praise you , that your France nowe beholdeth flourishing againe in you the zeale , pietie , learning , and magnanimity of her holy Fathers , Denis , Hilary , Martin , Bernard , and the rest , whose memorie is blessed for their care of Gods honour , and the Churches dignity ; yea , and all the holy Church of God may acknowledge of your company , Cardinals of such eminence , as become so worthy members of the holy Apostolike Sea , and Bishops , and Prelats , and Pastours , who are good seruants , and faithfull , and truely worthy of their Master , hauing really shewed , that they loue his glory more then themselues ; true Pastours of the sheepe of Christ , who for the saluation of their flocke haue not doubted to lay downe their owne life , while by shedding of their owne blood , they haue with so great feruencie of minde shewed themselues ready to maintaine the fences of the Lords folde , that is the Churches Rights : Highly therefore doe wee praise you and gratulate you againe ; for what is more laudable ? what more glorious ? then for the Priests of God , setting aside respect of all humane commoditie , constantly to haue defended the dignity of holy Church , and through zeale of maintaining the Catholike trueth , to neglect their owne life : As also it is to bee ascribed to the greatest happinesse that it so fell out , this noble triall of your Priestly vertue should be made the Pietie and Religion of holy King Lewis his Progenitour , no lesse reigning in your King , then the memory of his glorious name reuiues in him : wherefore wee doe the more exhort you , that you alwayes more earnestly persist in your most laudable enterprise ; God verely will perfect the worke hee hath begun in you ; acknowledge his hand wonderfully moouing the hearts of Kings which hee holdeth , and with one accord beare vp against the violence of the raging Sea , stirred with the storme of humane pride , and the whirlewind of secular wisedome , seuered from the feare of God ; doubtles the tempests that are risen , he will allay , who failed not his wauering disciples ; indeed hee suffereth vs to bee tempted , but giues an issue with the temptation ; therefore bee of good courage , knowing that the Iudge standeth aboue and beholdeth the combate of his seruants , to giue vnto euery one a reward worthy of his labour ; and he that fighteth valiantly , shall be worthily rewarded . Now we , whose charitie hath been alwayes great toward you in the Lord , vehemently louing you , and highly esteeming your excellent vertue , doe most willingly promise to afford you whatsoeuer helpe or Comfort in the Lord vpon this occasion we can yeeld , being exceedingly bound to you for your so glorious and admirable exploit , not ceasing in the meane time daily to pray vnto God the Father of mercies , that by the increase of his holy grace , hee would vouchsafe alwayes to keepe and strengthen you in his holy seruice , and because wee cannot sufficiently , according to our desire manifest vnto you by writing this most louing affection of our heart vnto you , wee haue giuen in charge to our Venerable Brother , Robert Bishop of Montpellier our Apostolike Nounce , that what hee hath receiued in Commission , touching this businesse , more at large from vs , hee carefully by word of mouth impart vnto you , who will also further declare vnto you , what wee thinke fitting for the full perfecting of the businesse : To him therefore shall yee giue altogether the same credence , which yee would to our selues , speaking vnto you . God confirme you in euery good worke , and direct alwayes your Counsels and endeuours according to his holy pleasure , and we from the inmost bowels of our charitie bestow vpon you our Apostolike benediction . Yeuen at Rome at S. Mary the greater , vnder the Signet of the Fisherman , the last of Ianuary : 1615. the 15th . yeere of our Popedome . Petrus Strozza . Now as long as such griefe , such ioy , such hope , such feare , such loue , such ielousie , is so passionately expressed in the main businesse , about which his Maiesties personall and publique quarrell with Rome first beganne , what likelihood is there of perswading his Maiestie , that no Roman Catholike in the world can bee his enemie , except first hee bee perswaded that the Pope of Rome is no Roman Catholike , yet , how farre hee was mooued to anger , vpon occasion of the Powder-treason against the body of that profession , his owne wordes deliuered in the next session of Parliament , after the discouery of that bloody designe shall testifie , [ as for mine owne part ( sayth hee ) I would wish with those ancient Philosophers , that there were a Christall window in my brest , wherein all my people might see the secretest thoughts of my heart : for then might you all see no alteration in my mind for this accident , further then in these two points . The first , caution and warinesse in gouernment , to discouer and search out the mysteries of this wickednesse , as farre as may be● The other after due triall , seuerity of punishment vpon those that shall bee found guilty of so detestable and vnheard of a villenie . ] This was the height of his anger , any more then this he declared not , and lesse then this well he could not . But , before this ( you say in the entrance of this Section , stil harping vpon your old string . ) He was indifferent , wheras your great Cardinall ( a man of no meane intelligence ) in his Tortus , makes his Maiesty to haue bene a Puritane whiles hee was in Scotland , and againe confirmes the same in his Apologie , for that in the first booke of his Ba●ilicon Doron , he affirmes that the religiō there professed , was grounded vpon the plaine words of the Scripture , and againe ( in his second booke ) that the re●ormation of religion in Scotland was extraordinarily wrought by God : And before the Powder treason , he makes him so farre from indifferencie , as he faines the seuerity of his lawes against Romane Catholikes , to haue giuen occasion to that foule conspiracy , and to the conspirators ( being then without all hope ) of entring into so desperate a course . And sure it seemes the Powder-traytours themselues held him not indifferent ; for they discouered greater anger towards him in the proiecting of that bloody treason , then he toward them or their associates , after the discouery of it , which notwithstanding it seemes by Watsons confession ( not long before his execution ) the Iesuites were hatching before his ( vndertaken for religion too ) was detected ; not full three moneths after his Maiesties right to the Crowne before it was setled , or so much as set on his head : nay Garnet himselfe , their Arch-Priest being sollicited , not long before the Queenes death , by a gentleman of a noble family ( but Popishly affected ) that when time serued hee would set forward the kings title among Catholikes , returned this answere [ that he had nothing to doe with the kings right , or the promoting it , in as much , as he was so hardened in a religion contrary to his , that now there was no hope of his conuersion left . ] Thus we see that neither the Powder-traitours themselues , nor Watson and Clerke Priests , nor the Iesuits , nor the Arch-Priest , nor the Cardinall held him indifferent before the Powder-treason , yet Mr. Doctor is of a contrary opinion to them all , perswaded ( it may be ) by his Maiesties Letters , pretended to be addressed before his entrance into this kingdome , in the yeere 1598. to Pope Clement the VIII , Cardinall Aldobrandin , and Cardinall Bellarmine , that some one of the Scottish nation might bee created Cardinall , by whose intercourse he might more freely and safely negotiate with the Pope : this reason indeede I haue heard some Romane Catholikes much stand vpon ; and except this be it , I cannot conceiue what should moue Mr. Doctour thus boldly and frequently , to vpbraid his Maiesty with indifferency , which was the fault of the Angel of the Church of the * Laodiceās . And surely he that writing to his Maiesty so grosly , erreth about his Maiesties writings ; I may ( I hope without breach of charity ) suppose that hee neuer so much as read or saw the full 2 answere to this obiection , long since published to the view of the world , standing partly vpon his Maiesties peremptory deniall , of euer yeelding his consent to the sending of such letters , and giuing the Pope to vnderstand by messages deliuered by word of mouth , that if hee ha● receiued any letters at all , as written from him , he should esteeme them none otherwise , but as counterfeit , or gotten by stealth ; partly vpon the confession of the 3 party himselfe before his Maiesty , and the Lords of his Counsell , who , ( out of an ambitious desire of aduancing his neere kinsman to the dignity of a Cardinal , ) being then the Secretary of State , shufled in those letters among others , when his Maiesty was ready to take horse , and so by cunning got them to be subscribed ; and partly vpon the Popes proceedings after the receit of them , which was the shewing of them to such as came thither of the Scottish nation , and demanding whether they thought the subscription to bee his Maiesties owne hand , & suffering some to take copies of them ; besides he neither answered the Letters , nor granted the suite contained in them , and some yeeres after writing to his Maiesty by Sr. Iames Lindsey , he neither mentioned those letters , nor blessed his Maiesty with Apostolike benediction ; and after all this , sent his two Breues to the Romane Catholikes here in England , for the excluding of him from the Crowne . And thus haue we now not onely the traitours , the secular Priests , the Iesuits , the Arch-Priest , the Cardinall , but the Pope himselfe , making against this vaine supposition of his Maiesties indifferencie before the Powder-treason . To conclude this Section then , and therewithall my reply to such pretended motiues , as might incline his Maiestie to reconcilement with the Church of Rome , or toleration of Roman Catholikes , if his Maiestie haue as great reason to continue seperation with the Church of Rome , as Henry had to make it , and Queene Elizabeth to maintaine it , and that it doth increase his lawfull authoritie , both ouer more persons , and in more causes , if it may serue for the better inriching of his coffers , an vnion with that Church , can not but bring both his honour and wisedome into question , being so farre prouoked without iust occasion giuen , or any satisfaction hitherto made ; and hauing so deepely ingaged himselfe in the quarrell , if thereby hee shall depriue himselfe of that blessing , which otherwise he might expect , and hitherto hath felt from Christ his Sauiour , whose cause hee pleadeth from his Christian and truely Catholike neighbour Princes states and Subiects ; and lastly , from the Church of CHRIST , in whose communion is the greatest comfort both in life and death , then whatsoeuer some discontented fugitiue , or hired aduocate of Rome , may say to the contrary , I doe verely beleeue they doe but speake for themselues , and that there is no true reason that may concerne his Maiesties good , but rather danger and harme , why hee should admit a publike toleration of Papists and Popish Religion , who stoppe their eares at home against the charmer , charme hee neuer so wisely , and abroad with great eagernesse pursue the ruine of their natiue countrey , among whom I professe I must hold Mr. Doctor to haue been one , till I be better informed to the contrary . B. C. 38. But although your Maiestie sit at the Sterne and commaund all , yet are you caried in the same ●hippe , and it is not possible to weild so great a vessell against winde and tyde , and therefore though it doe not concerne your Maiestie in your owne estate , yet if your Lords and your Commons and your Clergie doe reape any great benefit by the Schisme ; it will be very hard for your Maiestie to ●ffect vnitie , but if vpon due examination there bee no such matter , then is it but the crie of the passengers , who for want of 1 experience are afraid , where there is no danger , and that can be no hinderance to any course your Maiestie shall thinke to bee best for the attaining of the 2 hauen . G. H. 38. From his Maiestie that sits at the Sterne , and commands all , you come to the Subiect , but if it were in the power of Romanists , I doubt much , whether hee should long sit there , and how hee commaunds all , well appeares by their refusall to take those lawfull Oathes , which hee imposeth . Now for the Subiect , you beginne first with the Lords , and so descend to the Commons , Concluding lastly with the Clergy , and sing them seuerally a Syrens song , that so being lulled asleepe the common ship they are caried in , may dash vpon the Rocke of Rome . B. C. 39. For mine owne part , for the discharge of my duetie and conscience , I haue considered of all there States , and can resolue my selfe that I haue not preiudiced the State of any good Subiect of yours , but mine owne , in comming to the Catholike Church . And first , for your Lords and Nobles , it is true , that many of their an●estors were allowed a very good share in the diuision of the Church , when the Shisme began , & therfore it concerned them ( in reason of State ) to maintaine the doctrine of diuision , but I thinke there are very few in England , either Lords or other , now possest of Abbey lands , which haue not payed well for them , and might aswell possesse them in the vnitie of the Church as in the Schisme , and there was a declaration made by the Pope to that purpose in Queene Maries dayes , so that now there is no neede at all to preach against the merits of good workes , nor the vertue of the Sacraments , nor the inuocation of Saints , nor the rest of Popery that built Churches , vnlesse it bee to helpe the Hugonotes of France to pull them downe . G. H. 39. Hauing entred into a deepe studie , and serious consideration of all States , at length you resolue ( as from the oracle ) that you haue preiudiced none , in playing the turnecoate , but your selfe , and sure I am of the same opinion , there being none , as I hope , so vnwise as to be turned by you . Now in taking this suruey , you begin with the Lords , who were allowed a very good share ( you would say a great ) in the diuision of the Church , yet if they will bee so good as to side with the Pope , they shall both enioy their Religion , and keepe their possessions , as now ( in this Religion ) they doe , so wee see you would iuggle at fast and loose , play at small game rather then sit out , and became all vnto all , that you might winne some , though in another sense , then S. Paul both meant and practised it . And whereas you would salue the matter by th●ir paying for those possessions , that shift will not serue the turne for Queene Maries dayes , when the greatest part of them were both vnsold and vnbought , otherwise then in the first sharing . By your opinion , that Abbey lands may bee aswell possessed in the vnitie of the Church , as in the Schisme , ( as you are pleased to call it ) it seemeth you haue seene the motiues perswading to a dispensation in that behalfe , collected and reduced into writing in the second yeere of Queene Maries reigne , the originall of which ( amongst other authentike remembrances of that time ) is preserued in the Office of his Maiesties Papers ; which , because I verely thinke it was the ground of that Declaration made by the Pope in Queene Maries time , which you speake of , and a prin●ipal inducement of the Statute made the same yeere , in confirmation thereof , and for that also I suppose it is not any where publikely to be found , I will here insert . ANNO DOM. 1554. QVod omnes qui iusto titulo iuxta leges huius regni pro tempore existentes , habent aliquas possessiones , terras , siue tenementa Monasteriorum , Prioratuum , Episcopatuum , Collegiorum , Cantariarum , Obituum , &c. siue eadem pecunijs suis perquisiuerunt , siue per donationem , vel per mutationem , siue alio modo legitimo quocunque , in sua possessione huiusmodi remanere possint & valeant , & easdem suas possessiones ratas & confirmatas sibi habere ex confirmatione , & dispensatione Sedis Apostolicae . Causae & rationes quare huiusmodi dispensationes cum honore & conscientia rectè concedi possint . 1 Status Coronae huius Regni bene sustineri non potest , vt cum honore regat & gubernet , si huiusmodi possessiones ab illa separentur , quod hodie maxima pars possessionum Coronae sit ex huiusmodi terris & possessionibus . 2 Complurimi homines pecuniis suis acquisiuerunt ingentes huiusmodi terrarum portiones , à serenissimis Regibus Henrico VIII . & Edwardo VI. qui per suas Litteras Patentes , easdem terras warrantizauerunt quibus terris & poss●ssionibus , sipossessores huiusmodi nunc priuarentur , Rex teneretur rependere pecunias omnes in hac part● expositas , quae in tantarum summarum vim & mol●m sese extenderent , vt d Corona difficillimè restitui possent . 3 Magnates & nobiles huius regni , quorum plerique vendiderunt , & alianauerunt antiquas suas haereditarias possessiones , vt has nouas obtinerent , & in suo statu viuere non possunt , si huiusmodi possessiones ab illis auferantur . 4 Acquisitores vel possessores huiusmodi terrarum & possessionum , propterea quod easdem habuerunt ex iusto titulo , iuxta ordinem Regum huius regni , habebant , & etiamnum habent bonam fidem in illis obtinendis . 5 Possessio huiusmodi terrarum adeò est communis cuique statui , & ordini hominum , Ciuitatibusque , Collegiis , & Incorporationibus , vt si ab illis tollantur & auferantur , subitam quandam metamorphosin singulorum statuum & magnam omnis ordinis confusionem in vniuerso regno hinc indesequi necesse sit . 6 Cum bona , & possessiones Ecclesiae ex authoritate Canonum , pro redemptione captiuorum alienari possint , Idque per illam Ecclesiam solam ad quam illae possessiones pertinebant , aequum est dispensari pro continuatione possessionis iam acquisitae , propter tantum bonum publicae concordiae & vnitatis Ecclesiae , ac praeseruatione istius Status , tam in corpore quam in anima . THat all such as by iust title according to the Lawes or Statutes of this Realme for the time being , haue any possessions , lands , or tenements lately belonging to Monasteries ; Priories , Bishoprickes , Colledges , Chanteries , Obites , &c. Whether they haue purchased thē for their money , or are come to possesse them by gift , grant , exchange , or by any other legal meanes whatsoeuer , may retaine and keepe the same in their possessions , and haue the same ratified and established vnto them by the confirmation and dispensation of the Sea Apostolike . Causes and reasons why such dispensations may be iustly granted with honour and conscience . 1 The state of the Crowne of this kingdome cannot be well susteined to gouerne and rule with honour , if such possessions be taken from it : for at this day the greatest part of the possessions of the Crowne consisteth of such lands and possessions . 2 Very many men haue with their moneyes bought and purchased great portions of those lands from the most Excellent Kings , Henry the VIII . and Edward the VI. who by their Letters Patents haue warranted the same , of which landes and possessions , if the owners should now be dispossessed , the King should be bound to repay vnto them all their money , which would arise to such a huge masse , that it would be a hard matter for the Crowne to restore it . 3 The Nobles and Gentry of this realme , most of whom haue sold and aliened their ancient inheritances , to buy these new , cannot liue according to their degrees , if these possessions should be taken from them . 4 The purchasers or owners of such lands and possessions , in as much as they came to them by iust title , according to the ordinance of the Kings of this kingdome , haue held and doe still hold a good and iustifyable course in obteining them . 5 The enioying of such landes and possessions is so common vnto euery State and condition of men , Cities , Colledges , and Incorporations , that if the same bee taken from them , there will necessarily follow thereupon throughout the whole Kingdome a suddaine change and confusion of all Orders and Degrees . 6 Seeing that the goods and possessions of the Church , euen by the authority of the Cannons , may bee aliened for the redemption of captiues , and that the same may bee done by that Church onely , to whom such possessions doe belong : It is fit and reasonable that such dispensations should bee granted for continuing of possession already gotten , for so great a good of publike concord and vnity of the Church , and preseruation of this State , as well in body as in soule . Those possessions indeed in many places ( I speake specially of Tenths ) which by reason of Popish dispensations were first caried from the Church , are as the fl●sh which the Eagle stole from the Altar , carying a coale of fire with it , to the burning down and quite consuming of the nests of many of them that held them ; and in this respect Mr. Doctor may well say , that the most part of them who now enioy them , haue payed well for them ; in asmuch as the first owners were enforced , or their posteritie within a generation or two , to sell that which others purchased . Now this curse of God I can impute to none other thing then to the alienation of Tenths from their proper vse , to which they were , and still should be ordained , or at leastwise the bare and scant allowance which is made to the Minister of the greatest part of the fattest Impropriations ; so that commonly no Parishes are worse prouided for , then those that pay most , the redresse wherof , if it should please God to put into his Maiesties heart , and the assembly of the Estates in parliament , it would bee a worke no doubt honourable in it selfe , acceptable to CHRIST , and beneficiall to his Church , for which he would the rather blesse their other proceedings : I speake not for the restoring of Impropriations , ( though that were rather to be wished then hoped , their value being little or nothing inferiour to the Benefices ) but the making of a cōpetent allowance out of them , for the maintenance of a preaching Minister , and I am sory to heare that some of them should be so backward in the former , who most vrge the later , the rather for that I would not haue it thought our Religion cannot stand , but by the spoyle of the Church liuings , though the Pope ( as it seemes by Mr. Doctor ) cares not who loseth so that himselfe may winne . The vertue of the Sacraments expressed in holy Scripture wee preach not against , but as for merit of workes , and inuocation of Saints they were preached against , and that in England long before the lands were taken from the Abbeys ; and though they are still preached against , yet with vs are the Saints reuerenced with the honour due vnto them , by our obseruation of the dayes consecrated to the memorials of their glorious and precious deaths : And some Churches are built among vs as occasion serues , and necessitie requires ; but more Hospitals , Schooles , almeshouses , Colledges , Libraries , and the like charitable workes , since the beginning of Queene Elizabeths reigne to this present time , then in the space of any three score yeeres successiuely taken since the Conquest , which I speake not to boast of the fruits of our Religion , but to giue God the honour ; and as for the Hugonotes of France ( as you are pleased to terme them ) if they bee guilty of pulling downe Churches , wee neither incourage them to it , nor defend them in it , as neither doe wee the Papists in their barbarous massacres , but onely say of them as the parents of the blind man , they are of sufficient age , let them answere for themselues . Lastly , because you addresse your discourse in particular to the Nobles in this Section , I craue leaue to put them in mind of a peece of a letter written by their predecessors to the Bishop of Rome , during the reig●e of Henrie the III. I will recite it in the words of Matthew Parris translated . [ The great ones ( sayth hee ) by writing to the Pope , complained of the scandals bred out of the rapine and auarice of Rome , and spread not onely in England , but through the Christian world , that themselues would not endure that their countrey from thencefoorth should bee so rudely handled , no though the King himselfe should winke at it , and vnlesse ( say they ) these matters bee speedily redressed by you , let your Holinesse know for certaine , that it may not vniustly bee feared that such a danger is likely thereby to ensue , both to the Church of Rome , and to our Lord the King , that no remedie will easily bee found for it . ] My hope then is , that our Nobles being now farther enlightned by the beames of the Gospell , and the cleare discouery of the trueth in the writings of learned men , then their predecessours , who liued in those times of darkenesse , will , like the Noble Theophilus , ( to whom S. Luke dedicates his Gospell , and The Actes of the Apostles ) and those noble Bereans , ( * who the more noble they were , receiued the word with the greater readinesse ) hold fast the profession which they haue vowed themselues vnto , by resisting the vsurpation and tyranny of that man of sinne , and maintaining the libertie and freedome of their countrey . In the first Parliament held by Queene Mary after her Comming to the Crowne , the Nobilitie of England , though they gaue way to the administration of the Sacraments , and other doctrinall points , as they were vsed and held in her Father Kings Henries time , yet could they hardly be induced , either by her importunitie ( whom it most concerned , in regard of her birthright , made good by the Popes dispensation ) or by the perswasions of Cardinall Poole her Cosin , and by her made Archbishop of Canterbury , who had beene for many yeeres maintained , ( for the most part ) at the Popes charge , to yeeld that the Queene should surrender her title of Supreme head of the Church of England , or that the Pope should bee suffered to exercise his wonted iurisdiction within her dominions , how much more then at this time should they plucke vp their spirits to the abandoning of that vniust challenge , hauing now a Soueraigne who in his 1 writings last published to the world bearing the date of this yeere [ Consecrates his Scepter , his Sword , his pen , his endeuours , vnto God , in a thankefull acknowledgment of the grace bestowed on him , in freeing him from the error of this age , and his kingdome from the Popes yoke which kept it in thraldome , in which God is now sincerely serued , and called vpon in a language vnder stood of all , in which the people may read the Scriptures without any speciall priuiledge , and with the same freedome , as the people of Ephesus , of Rome , of Corinth , reade the Epistles written by S. Paul ; in which they pay no more tribute by the Polle , thereby to obtaine the remission of there sinnes , as they did scarce one hundreth yeeres yet past , neither are they inforced to seeke their pardons beyond the Seas , and the mountaines , God himselfe presenting them to my Subiects ( sayeth hee ) in there owne Countrey , by the doctrine of the Gospel ; and if in this regard it bee , that the Cardinall termes the Churches of my Kingdome miserable , for mine owne part 1 esteeme our misery aboue his happinesse , ] since then wee haue ( by Gods prouidence ) such a Soueraigne , let that aspersion neuer be fastened vpon our Nobility , which his Maiesty iustly casteth vpon the French , that [ in as much as they gaue way to the acknowledging of their King to bee deposable by the Pope , it were fit that withall they should diuest themselues of their titles , and resigne them to the third estate , who were the only men that could neither bee so drawen by promises , nor affrighted by threats , but that they euer helde them fast to the maintenance of their Kings honour , and the surety of his person . B. C. 40. But perhaps the Commons of England , doe gaine so much by the Schisme , as they cannot abide to heare of vnity ; Indeed when the Puritan Preacher hath called his flocke about him , and described the Church of Rome to bee so ignorant , so Idolatrous , and so wicked , as hee hath made himselfe beleeue shee is , then is hee wont to Congratulate his poore deceiued audience , that they by the meanes of such good men as himselfe is , are deliuered from the darkenesse and Idolatry , and wickednesse of Popery , and there is no man dare say a word or once mutter to the contrary : But the people haue heard these 1 lyes so long , as most of them beginne to bee wearie , and the wisest of them cannot but wonder how these Puritan Preachers should become more 2 learned and more honest then all the rest that liued in ancient times , or that liue still in Catholike Countreys , or then those in England , 3 whom these men are wont to Condemne for Papists . Neuerthelesse I confesse there bee many 4 honest men and women amongst them , that being carried away with preiudice , or 5 pretext of Scriptures , doe follow these Preachers , more of zeale and deuotion to the Church , as my selfe did , vntill I knew it was but Counterfeite , and these good people if they might be so 6 happy as to heare Catholikes answere for themselues , and tell them the trueth , would bee the most deuout Catholikes of all other : But the 7 most of the people were neuer lead by Sermons , if they were the Catholike Church is both able and willing to supply them farre better then the Schisme : 8 but it was an opinion of wealth and liberty made them breake at first , and if they doe duely consider of it , they are neuer the better for either of both , but much the worse . G. H. 40. From the Nobles you descend to the Commons , entring your discourse with the like imaginary Sermon of a Puritan Preacher , as before you brought vpon the Stage in the 16th . Section of this Chapter : you paint him forth describing the Ignorance , Idolatry , and Wickedn●sse of the Church of Rome ; and surely if this make a Puritan , Dante 's , and Boccace , and Petrarch , and Mantuan must bee Puritan Poets too , and Guicciardin a Puritan historian , and Sauanorola a Puritan Preacher ( though all Italians and most of them well acquainted with the Court of Rome ) which is now come ( in a manner ) to be all one with the Church of Rome . The Ignorance of the people is such , that they adore it as the mother of deuotion , contenting themselues to beleeue as the Church beleeueth : Of their ordinary Priests , that my selfe meeting some of them in the streets , and inquiring the way in Latin , they haue replied they vnderstood not my Dutch ; Of their Friars , that they haue a Company termed the Fraternitie of Ignorance : of their Bishops and Cardinals , that in the Tridentine Councill scarce twenty of two hundreth durst aduenture to speake publiquely , but serued only as cyphers to fill vp the roomes , and make vp the number of voyces : Nay of their Popes themselues , that some haue passed their grants with Fiatur , in stead of Fiat , others haue excommunicated them who helde the Antipodes , as Zacharie at the instance of Boniface , Archbishop of Mentz , did Vergilius the famous Mathematician : And lastly , some haue condemned them for heretikes , who studied the more refined kind of learning , or any way smelt of the vniuersitie , as Platina reports it of Paulus Secundus , in whose time he liued , and with the description of his life ended his owne . Touching their Idolatrie , when I shall see Doctor Raynolds his booke De Idololatria Romana soundly and fully answered , I will in my Iudgement free them from that imputation , before then I must take leaue to suspend it . Lastly , concerning their wickednesse I maruell the Doctor would giue occasion to rubbe afresh vpon that sore , which if I should throughly open would proue so noisome , and vnsauory : Now if this make a Püritan Preacher to informe his auditory of these corruptions in that Church , and to thanke God for our deliuerance from them , if not in whole , yet by Gods grace in some good measure , I confesse my selfe to be a Puritan Preacher , and thinke no honest minded Minister in England wil refuse that title tendred vnder those conditions : and if the people doe not acknowledge this inestimable blessing with hearty thankefulnesse to God for it , it is to bee feared he will remoue their Candlesticke , and in his iudgement suffer them to relapse againe into their former disease . B. C. 41. For wealth the Puritan vnthrift that lookes for the ouerthrow of Bishops and Churches Cathedrall , hopes to haue his share in them if they would fallonce , and therefore hee cannot chuse but desire to increase the Schisme , that he may gaine by it : but the 1 honest Protestant that can endure the State of England as it is , could bee content it were as it was , for hee should receiue more benefit by it euery way . The poore Gentleman and Yeoman that are burthened with many children , may remember , that in Catholike times the Church would haue receiued , and prouided for many of their sonnes and daughters , so as themselues might haue liued and died in the seruice of God without posteritie , and haue helped to maintaine the rest of their families ; which was so great a benefit to the Common-wealth , both for the exoneration and prouision thereof , as no 2 humane policie can procure the like . The Farmer and Husbandman ( who laboureth to discharge his payments , & hath little or nothing left at theyeres end to lay vp for his children , that increase & grow vpon him ) may remember , that in Catholike times there were better penny-worths to bee had , when the Clergie had a great part of the Land in their hands , who had no neede to raise the Rents themselues , and did what they could to make other Lords let at a reasonable rate , which was also an inestimable benefite to the Commons so that whereas ignorant men carried with enuie against the Clergie , are wont to obiect the multitude of them , and the greatnesse of their prouisions , they speake therein as much against themselues as is possible ; for the greater the number is of such men , as be 3 mundo mortui , the more is the exoneration of the Commons , and the more the land is of such as can haue no proprietie in them , the better is the prouision of the Commons ; for themselues can haue no more then their food , and their regular apparell , all the rest either remaines in the hands of the Tenants , or returnes in hospitalitie and reliefe to their neighbours , or is kept in a liuing Exchequer for the seruice of the Prince and Countrey in time of necessitie ; so that the Commons doe gaine no wealth at all , but rather doe lose much by the Schisme . G. H. 41. You proceede , and assure the Commons , that our separation from Rome , makes much against their wealth and libertie , for proofe whereof you beginne with the Puritan vnthrift , who lookes for the ouerthrow of Bishops and Churches Cathedrall , hoping to haue his share in them . Now I denie not , but some such vnthrifts there may bee , shrouding themselues vnder the vizard of those whome you call Puritans , but their power is not so great ( God bee thanked ) as wee neede feare them , nor I hope shall bee whiles his Maiestie and his posterity sway the Scepter , who is so farre from pulling them downe , or giuing any way vnto it , that hee hath not onely to his immortall fame , bound his hands from withdrawing any thing from them , but restored them in Scotland , and both often and openly professed , [ No Bishop , no King , ] and as for them which looke for that ouerthrow , let their eyes drop out of their sockets , with looking , and the yong rauens deuoure them . I haue heard of a platforme of our Church gouernment deuised by Parsons , if the Pope should once againe recouer his footing amongst vs , in which one especiall piece of his proiect is , the pulling downe of the Bishopricks & Churches Cathedrall , that his Holinesse and the Padres may bee all in all , so that the Iesuites may most properly bee termed those Puritan vnthrifts : And I make no doubt , but if his Holinesse could dispence with those who withhold the Tenths of the Church , he might as well dispence with the pulling downe of Bishoprickes and Cathedrall Churches . Now for those honest Protestants , who for matter of religion could be content it were as it was , conditionally themselues might receiue more benefit , their heads may bee in England , but sure their hearts are in Rome , deceiuing themselues aswell in vndervalewing the benefit they haue , as in expecting that they haue not , nor are euer like to haue ; the faire pretexts and promises made them from Rome , being like the Apothecaries boxes , ha●●ng Catholicon set on their front in capitall letters , as if they conteined a soueraigne medicine for all diseases , but within are full of deadly poison ; or like the apples of Sodome , which are to looke to , beautifull , bu● being touched onely with the finger , presently are turned into dust . The first apple you present the Commons , if they yeeld to the reentertaining of Popish religion , is increase of wealth : But before we goe any farther in the triall of this point , I shall desire all ingenuous Papists , rightly to informe both themselues , and others , what the two Monkes Matthew Paris , and Matthew of Westminster haue left vpon record , touching the Bishop of Romes most intolerable exactions in this kingdome , whiles his authority here preuailed ; and then to iudge indifferently whether by submitting our neckes to that yoke , which our fathers were not able to beare , it be likely the wealth of our land should be increased . That which one of the Popes pronounced touching our Countrey , was doubtlesse the opinion of them all , I speake of latter times , [ Verè hortus noster deliciarum est Anglia , verè puteus inexhaustus est , & vbi multa abundant , de multis multa possunt extorqueri England is our Paradise of pleasure , a well neuer to bee drawne drie , and where much abounds , much may be taken . ] It was the speach of Innocent the IV. reported by Ma●thew Paris , anno 1245. about which time S. Edmond Archbishop of Canterbury vndertooke a voyage to Rome , to complaine of the great vexations and extortions , offered the Clergie and people , by Ca●dinall Otho his Legate , who hiding himselfe in the tower of Ousnie Abbey , for feare of a tumult of the Schollers of Oxford , they termed him Vsurer , Simonist , rent-racker , money-thirster , peruerter of the King , subuerter of the kingdome , enriching strangers with the spoiles of the English ; but Edmund returning home without successe in his complaint , and weary of his life in England , by reason that hee could not redresse the Popes oppressions , made choise of a voluntary banishment at Pountney in France , where hee died with the honour and opinion of a Saint . Not long after , his Holinesse desirous to see England , caused his Cardinals to write their letters to the King , that it would be a thing tending much to his honour and safety , and to his kingdomes immortall glory , to enioy the Lord Popes presence , who did long to view the rarities of Westminster , and the riches of London , but the Kings Counsell told him plainely [ that the Romane rapines and simonies had enough stained the English puritie , though the Pope himselfe came not personally to spoile and prey vpon the wealth of this Church and kingdome . ] the like deniall of entrance hee had found both in France and Arragon , it being said that [ the Pope was like a mouse in a sachell , or a snake in ones bosome , who but ill repay their hosts for their lodging ; and the infamies of his Court deserued none other , whose filth saith our Monke [ sent foorth a steame and stench , as high as the very cloudes . ] These and worse were the effects of the Bishop of Romes vsurpation here in England , by imposing continuall taxes and tallages , being sometimes the tenth , sometimes the fifteenth , sometimes the third , sometimes the moity of all the goods , both of the Clergie and Laity , vnder colour of maintaining the Popes holy warres against the Emperour , and the Greeke Church , who were then said to bee in rebellion against their Lady and Mistresse the Church of Rome : Besides for the speedy leuying and safe returne of these moneyes the Pope had his Lumbards , and other Italian Bankers and vsurers resident in London , and other parts of the Realme , who offered to lend and disburse the moneyes taxed , and returne the same by exchange to Rome , taking such penall bands ( the forme wherof is set downe in Matthew Paris ) and such excessiue vsury , as the poore religious houses were faine to sell or pawne their Chalices , and Copes , and the rest of the Clergy and Laity had their backes bowed , and their estates broken vnder the burden : besides the Pope tooke for perquisites and casualties , the goods of all Clerkes that died intestate , the goods of all vsurers , and all goods giuen to charitable vses . Moreouer he had a swarme of Friers ( the first corrupters of religion in England ) who perswaded the Nobility and Gentry to put on the signe of the Crosse , and to vow themselues to the holy warres , which they had no sooner done , but they were againe perswaded to receiue dispensations of their vowes , and to giue money for the same to the Church of Rome . I omit diuers other policies then vsed by the Popes Collectours , to exhaust the wealth of the Realme , which they affirmed they might take with as good a conscience , as the Hebrewes tooke the iewels of the Egyptians , and should we now looke for better measure at his handes ? no , no , he will rather bee ready to demand the principall with the interest and arrerages , and to bring vs so low as wee shall neuer be able to cast him againe . Those verses will euer bee true , though made for those times , and sutable to their barbarisme . Roma capit marcas , bursas exhaurit & arcas , Vt tibi tuparcas , fuge Papas & Patriarchas . It is obseruable which one hath wittily noted , that the first letters of the words in that sentence , Radix Omnium Malorum Auaritia , make vp ROMA : And I could wish that for the better satisfaction of the Commons , to whom this section is directed , so much of Matthew Paris as concernes this businesse , might be translated into English ; he wrote of the times wherin he liued , and was for his learned paines much honoured by the king , being admitted often to his table and chamber . Now , as Mr. Doctours cunning may be obserued , in setting downe the benefits that arise by Monasteries , and concealing the Popes extortions , so his forgetfulnesse , in that before hee cuts off the meanes of the Monasteries , by assuring vs of the Popes inclination to dispence with those , in whose hands their reuenues rest ; so that this argument of increase of wealth , or maintenance to the Commons can be of no force , till the owners of those reuenues be either forced by lawe , or perswaded by reason to restore them ; or others to conferre new , which in reason will be found more difficult then the former : beside this argument , if it make for the poore Gentleman and Yeoman , it makes against the rich Gentleman and Nobleman , whose landes specially went to the building and maintaining of those houses : yet the poore Gentleman and Yeoman too , may remember that whiles the monasteries stood , they were not so much eased by them of the burden of their children , as burthened with the keeping of Concubines for the Monkes and Abbots vse , or else their wiues serued the turne ; so that whereas they were ●ased of one child by the Monastery , they were oftener burdened with two or three from the Monasterie , and for their daughters , as by vailing them , and thrusting them into a Nunnery , they disburdened their hands of them , so by the same meanes were they often burdened to the shame and griefe of their Parents , and dishonour of their profession ; and yet such bribes and pensions were there payed for their admission , as many times they might haue maintained them at home with lesse charge and more honesty , or if their daughters escaped free , their sonnes ( which was worse ) supplied their sisters roomes , against which grieuous sinne , an acte was made in the reigne of Henry the first , but Anselme then Archbishop of Canterbury stopped the publication of it , so that both for lacke of mariage , it more increased , and for lacke of publication was it lesse punished . Now for the Common wealth , as their exoneration might bring some benefit vnto it , so their exemption from the secular courts of iustice , from the iurisdiction of Bishops , and from all maner of publique seruice in defence of the State , aswell in regard of their goods as their persons , could not be but exceeding preiudiciall : for by that meanes it must needes in time haue come to passe , that the richest and fattest , nay greatest part of the land , resting in their hand , the rest of the body politique must haue starued , but onely by their charity ( which many times was but cold toward the laitie ) or the whole haue lyen open and obnoxious to the inuasion of the forraine enemie , but onely by their helpe , which was not alway very ready . Let the Farmer and Husband man remember , that , as better penny-worthes were to bee had in those dayes , so his vexations by Excommunications , Interdictions , and Appeales to Rome were more insufferable , his restraints from labour , whereby he maintained himselfe and his poore familie by meanes of many blind holy dayes , now stricken out of the Calender , more frequent ; and lastly his payments greater for Peterpence , for Iubilees , for oblations , for dispensations , for obits , for touching of reliques , for Agnus-deis , for hallowing of beads and graines , for holy water , for masses , for trentals , for dirges , for pardons , for indulgences , for crusadoes , and a thousand such petty charges , seruing onely as fewell , aswell to maintaine the luxury of Monkes and Friars , as to keepe in the fire of Purgatory , which if it were not by the people conceiued to bee very hote , that in the Popes and Monkes kitchin would quickly bee very colde : But to come neere to the point , as better penny-worthes , so in those times lesse money was also to bee had , all things being cheaper where is lesse money , and dearer where is more , so that if the same Monasteries had stood and the same Abbots had liued in our dayes , I doubt not but they would haue raised there rents , as our Collegiate Societies haue beene inforced to doe , or else they must haue pared away somewhat of the superfluitie of their dishes , which would haue troubled their consciences more ; as well appeared by them who made a lamentable complaint to the King for want of meate , when three dishes of thirteene were withdrawen , and of him who hauing his bellie full stuffed with eating after a great feast , cried out [ Quanta patimur pro amore CHRISTI ] And sure it is to me a wonder that those who both can and often will tell the most merrie iests of Monkes , and Nunnes , and Friars , yet they of all others most earnestly desire the restitution of them . ● Lastly the Commons cannot but remember , that though they were somewhat holpen by the rich Abbeys , yet were they as much burthened with the poore Frieries , who had nothing to helpe them but the deuotion of the people , it being commonly sayed of their assisting at Funerals , Vbi cadauer , ib coruus . But they were all ( you say ) Mundo mor●ui , vsing ● more but for their food and regular apparrel , and turning the residu● to pious , or charitable , or publike vses ; but if it were so , how came it to passe that many times they inriched and aduanced there families as much as any Lay man , nay which is worse , vsua●ly they spent the residue vpon their gaming and luxurie , and their liuing Exchequer was rather for the seruice of the Pope and Court of Rome , then of their Prince and Countrey , so that the multitude of such Clergy men and the greatnesse of their prouision may well bee obiected by wise men without enuie , as it was by the Venetians in the last quarrell betweene them and the Pope , if their goods and persons be still ( as they haue beene hitherto ) exempt from Secular iurisdiction and publique seruice of the state , for the preuention of which mischiefe , was the statute of Mortmaine for the lessening of these mundo mortui , made by Edward the first , and confirmed by all his successours , so that vpon due and trew examination , the Commons are found to loose nothing , but rather gaine much by the reformation of the Church , and separation from Rome , and if they did not , yet were it a poore bargaine for a man to winne the whole world and loose his owne soule . B. C. 42. And as for liberty they are indeed freed from the possibilitie of going to shrift , that is of confessing their sinnes to God in the eare of a Catholike Priest and receiuing comfort and counsell against their sinnes from God by the mouth of the same priest , which duty is required of Catholike people , but onely once in the yeere , but performed by them with great comfort and edification very often , so that a man may see and wonder to see , many 1 hundred at one altar to Communicate euery Sunday with great deuotion , and lightly no day passe but diuers do cōfesse , are absolued , and receiue the blessed Sacramēt . The poore commons in England are freed from this Comfort , neither is it possible ; vnlesse their Ministers had the seale of secrecie , for them to vse it ; and what is the liberty that they haue in stead therof ? Surely the seruants haue great liberty against their masters by this meanes , and the children against their parents and the people against their prelats , and the subiects against their King , and all against the Church of Christ , that is , against their owne good and the common saluation ; for 2 without the vse of this Sacrament , neither can inferiours bee kept in awe , but by the gallowes , which will not saue them from hell , nor superiours bee euer told of their errours , but by rebellion which will not bring them to heauen : These and such like bee the liberties that both Prince and people doe enioy by the want of confession and of Catholike religion . G. H. 42. We willingly acknowledge ( with S. Paul ) that * to the Ministers of the Gospel is committed the Ministerie of reconciliation , and the k●ys of the Kingdome of heauen , to open and shut as they see cause : and therfore in their ordination hath our Church ordained the Bishop to vse these wordes , [ Receiue the holy Ghost , whose sinnes thou doest forgiue they are forgiuen , and whose sinnes thou doest retaine they are retained , ] & consequently if the power of absolution be giuen in these words , then is it giuen & receiued in the Church of England : and as for the people they stand bound as often as they meete in their solemne assemblies , to a publique and generall confession , howbeit they are indeed freed from the necessitie of that which wee call auricular , though not from the possibilitie , as you falsly pretend , for as we inforce none if they come not , ( as knowing that force may worke vpon the body but neuer vpon the will ) so we exclude none if th●y come with a true penitent heart , or out of the Scruple of conscience , either to seeke Counsell , being ignorant of the qualitie and quantitie of their sinne ; or comfort against despayre for sinne knowen and acknowledged : In this case the only imparting of a mans mind to a trusty Friend , like the opening of a feastered sore , cannot but bring content to a soule so anguished and perplexed : but much more if the vlcer be disclosed to a skilfull and faithfull Pastour of the soule , who is no lesse able then willing , aswell to vnderstand the nature of the disease , as by warrant of diuine ordinance to apply the remedie : and sure I see not but , the Minister standing in the place of God , as his ambassadour , and pronouncing absolution vpon humble and harty repentance as from God , it should prooue a marueilous great ease and settlement to a poore distracted and distressed conscience ; in which regard our Church hath well ordayned in one of the exhortations before the Communion , that [ if any of the Congregation bee troubled with the burden of sinne , so that he cannot quiet his conscience , but requireth further comfort and counsell , that he repayre either to the Pastour of his owne Parish , or some other discreet and learned Minister of the word , and open his griefe , that hee may receiue such Ghostly counsell , aduice and comfort , as his conscience may be releiued , and that by the Ministerie of Gods word he may receiue comfort , and the benefit of absolution , to the quieting of his conscience and auoiding of all scruple and doubtfulnesse , ] and in the visitation of the sicke , [ if he feele his conscience troubled with any waighty matter , hee is willed to make a speciall confession , and the Minister thereupon to absolue him , In the name of the Father , the Sonne , and the holy Ghost , ] which is an absolution onely Declaratorie , Conditionall , and Ministeriall : but the Church of Rome not content herewith , challengeth to her selfe herein a power 1 iudicial , which is in truth indiuidually annexed to the person and office of him , who is Iudge both of quicke and dead . This I take to bee the doctrine of the Church of England and the Primitiue writers touching this point , and I cannot but wonder that Mr. Doctor , so long a Church man of such eminent place amongst vs , should be so ignorant therof , as to affirme that the people with vs are freed from the possibilitie of confessing themselues , whereas 2 Mr. Casaubon a stranger in comparison , could informe him , that the rigorous necessitie of Confession inioyned and practised in the Church of Rome , the Church of England thought fit , vpon iust reason to moderate and qualifie ; but for the thing it selfe shee neuer did wholy annull it , nor now doth simply condemne it . And for the practise of it in forreine countreys ( which Mr. Doctour so much boasteth of ) wee are not all such strangers in those parts , but some others haue aswell beene acquainted with their great deuotion in their ordinary confessing and communicating , as Mr. Doctour , it being rightly ob●erued by a worthy gentleman , who confesseth that hee brought with him into those parts this perswasion , that surely in this there must needes bee a very great restraint to wickednesse , a great meanes to bring men to integrity and perfection , when a man shall often suruey his actions , with diligence censure them , with griefe and shame confesse them , with punishment e●piate and extinguish them , ( with firme intent neuer to returne to the like againe ) whatsoeuer had defiled or stained the soule ; notwithstanding ( saith he ) hauing searched into the meaning thereof in those parts , I finde that as all things whereof humane weakenesse hath the custody and gouern●ment , fall away , decaying by insensible degrees from their first perfection and purity , and gather much soile and drosse in vsing , so this as much as anything ; for this point of their religion which in outward shew carieth a face of seue●ity and discipline , is become of all others the most remisse and pleasant , and of the great●st content to the dissolutest mindes , the matter being growen with the common sort to this open reckoning ; what neede wee refraine so fearefully from sinne , God hauing prouided so ready a meanes to be rid of it , when we list ? yea and the worser sort will say , when we haue sinned we must confesse , and when we haue confessed , we must sinne again , that we may also confesse again , and withal make worke for new Indulgences , and Iubilies , making account of Confession as drunkards doe of vomi●ing , who drinke till they vomite , and vomite that they may drinke againe : yea , I haue knowen of those that caried shew of very deuout persons , who by their owne report , to excuse their acquaintance in matters criminall , haue wilfully periured themselues in iudgement , onely presuming of this present and easie remedie in Confession ; and others of more ordinary note amongst them , when the time of confessing was at hand , would then venture vpon those actions which before they trembled at , as presuming to surfet and surcharge their stomacks by reason of the neighbourhood of the phisitian , which phisitian also himselfe is perhaps more apparently infected with the noysome disease his patient discloseth , then the patient , who is not any way bettered by the counsell which the Phisitian giueth : but this must be granted to bee the fault of the people , yet a generall fault it is , and current without controllement , howbeit the Priests are no more excusable on their parts , then the people , telling the penitent that God is mercifull , and whatsoeuer sinnes he committeth , so long as hee doth penance , and is no Lutherane , there is good remedy for him , and for their penance , it consisteth ordinarily but in Aue Maries and Pater nosters , with Almes deedes , by those that are able , and fastings by them that are willing ; yea , I haue knowen when the penance for horrible and open blasphemy , besides much other lewdnesse , hath bene none other then saying of their Beades thrice ouer , a matter of some houres muttering , and which in Italy they dispatch also as they goe in the streets , or ride on the way , or doe their busines at home , making none other of it , then as it is indeed , two lips and one fingers worke ; but were the penance by the Priests inioyned , neuer so hard and sharpe , the Popes plenary pardons sweepe all away at a blow . Now whether seruants be not with them vnfaithfull to their masters , children disobedient to their parents , people vndutifull to their Prelates , Subiects disloyall to their Soueraignes , aswell as with vs , I leaue it to them to iudge , who haue had experience of both . Did not Clement and Rauilliac , and the Powder-traytours vse Confession ? and those villaines who assaulted the Prince of Aurange , the one sorely wounding , & the other murdering him ? and did not their confessions serue to harden them in their damnable resolutions ? Lastly , for the seale of Confession , without which ( you say ) it is impossible to vse the thing it selfe , wee hold it being rightly limited , a lawfull , yet an humane constitution , as neither in trueth is particular confession it selfe to men any other ; and he that will not forbeare in conscience and common honesty to disclose a secret reuealed in such manner , will hardly forbeare for feare of punishment ; and sure I am of opinion , better no seale to at all , then such a concealement imposed , as is by the factours of the Romish Church maintained , and was not onely preached by Garnet , but in him commended by Eudaemon and Bellarmine , and in others by his example , bee the issue thereof neuer so deuilish , or toward the king and kingdome neuer so dangerous : and although it be true ( as his 3 Maiesty truely obserueth ) that [ when the Schoolemen came to bee Doctours in the Church , and to marre the old grounds in Diuinity , by sowing in amongst them their Philosophicall distinctions , though they I say maintained , that whatsoeuer thing is tolde a Confessour vnder the vaile of Confession , how dangerous soeuer the matter bee , yet is hee bound to conceale the parties name ; yet doe none of them ( specially of the old 4 Schoolemen ) deny that if a matter be reuealed vnto them , the concealing whereof may breede a great and publike danger , but that in that case the confessour may disclose the matter , though not the person , and by some indirect meanes make it come to light , that the danger thereof may be preuen●ed : But no treason or deuilish plot , though it should tend to the ruine or exterminion of a kingdom , ( I vse his Maiesties owne word ) must be reuealed , if it be told vnder Confession , no not the matter so farre indirectly disclosed , as may giue occasion for preuenting the danger therof , though it agree with the conceit of some 3. or 4. new Iesuited Doctors , yet is it such a new and dangerous head of doctrine , as no king or State can liue in security where that position is maintained . ] And here it shall not be amisse to remember that vnto ward answere which Binet the Iesuit shaped to 5 Casaubon in the kings library in Paris , two or three moneths before the death of Henry the great , as they talked of Garnets execution , which the Iesuit termed martyrdom [ It were better ( quoth he ) that all kings should perish , then that the seale of confession should once be broken vp . ] adding withal this reason , that [ the gouernment of kings was but an humane constitution , wheras confession was a diuine ordinance : ] which whē I heard , sai●h Casaubon , Obstupui steteruntque comae , & vox faucibus haesit . But afterwards reading the bookes written by men of the same mettall and societie , and perceiui●g hee had sayd nothing which they taught not in effect , though not in the same wordes , I left wondring ( sayeth hee ) and censured mine owne folly . Notwithstanding all this the same Mr. Casaubon confesseth , and not onely for himselfe but for vs , speaking in the plurall number in the Page immediatly going before , that it was [ an ancient decree of the Church , full of pietie and wisedome , that it should not bee lawfull to the Confessor , to publish that which he heard in confession , but none ( saith hee ) of those holy Fathers , euer decreed that constitution of Ecclesiasticall discipline , with such strictnesse , as thereby to make the Law of God of none effect : They knew well enough that if the case so stood , as the Law of the Church enioyned silence , and the law of God vtterance , wee should rather obey God , then man : They knew well enough that Dauid is commended of the Sonne of God , to whom properly belongs the interpretation of the lawe , himselfe being the author of it , for the eating of the Shew-bread , which otherwise was not lawfull , saith Christ , for him to eate , rather then hee would suffer himselfe to starue with hunger . ] To like effect is that which my Lord of Ely hath in his last booke against Bellarmine , [ 6 Let that reuerence which is due to that seale , be preserued inuiolate , but towards penitents , not wilfull proceeders in thier mischieuous plots , neither is that ( saith hee ) the seale of God and CHRIST , but of Satan and Antichrist , with which so horrible villanies are masked . But will Mr. Doctor say these are but the opinions of priuate men ? I demaund the authority of your Church , for the seale of secresie : but if he had ●in as skilful in the decrees & Canons of our Church , as he would beare vs in hand he was , he would surely haue forborne that demaund , the 113. Can. of those which were agreed vpon in Conuocation , anno 160● . & ratified by his Maiesties royal assent , concluding thus : [ Prouided alwayes , that if any man confesse his secret & hidden sins to the Minister for the vnburthening of his conscience , and to receiue spirituall consolation and ease of mind from him wee doe not any way 7 binde the said Minister by this our Constitution , but doe straightly charge and admonish him that he do not at any time reueale , and make knowen to any person whatsoeuer , any crime or offence so committed to his trust & secrecie , except they be such crimes as by the Lawes of this Realme , his owne life may be called into question , for concealing them , vnder paine of irregularitie . ] So that neither is Mr. Doctors Assertion true , that the people with vs are freed from the possi●ility of Confessing , though they are from the necessitie , nor his reason , because wee haue taken away the seale of secrecie , the abuse being onely by vs remou●d , but the vse aswell by publike authoritie as priuate opinions retained , and maintained : But to conclude this point , the libertie which the people haue gained by separation from Rome , stands not so much in forbearance of Confession rightly vsed , as in that libertie wherewith CHRIST hath made them free , ( * for if the sonne haue made them free , then are they free indeed ) if they intangle not themselues againe with the yoke of bondage : & my counsell is that which the Apostle there aduiseth , Stand fast , and to like effect , though in another place and case , Art thou free ? seeke not to bee bound : and , as many as walke according to this rule , peace shall bee vponthem , and mercie , and vpon the Israel of God. B. C. 43. As for the libertie of making Lawes in Church-matters the common Lawyer may perhaps make an aduantage of it , and threfore greatly stand vpon it , but to the Common people it is no pleasure at all , but rather a great burden , for the great 1 multitude of Statutes ( which haue been made since the Schisme , which are more then fiue times so many that euer were made before , since the 2 name of Parliament was in England ) hath caused also an infinite number of Lawyers , all which must liue by the Commons , and 3 raise new families , which cannot bee done without the decay of the old , and if the Canon of the Church , and Courts of Confession , were in requ●st , the Lawyers market would soone bee marred ; and therefore most of your Lawyers in this point are Puritans , and doe still furnish the Parliament with grieuances against the Clergie , as knowing very well that their owne glory came at the first from the Court 4 Infidel , and therefore cannot stand with the authoritie of the Church , which came at the first from the Court Christian : I speake not against the anci●nt lawes of England , which since King Ethelberts time were all 5 Catholike , nor against the honest Lawyers of England : I know many , and honour all good men among them , and doe looke for 6 better times by the learning , wisedome , and moderation of the chiefest : But I am verely perswaded that the pretended liberties of the Commons to make Lawes in matter of Religion doth burden the Common-wealth , and doth trouble and preiudice your Maiestie , and pleasure none at all but the Puritan , and petti-fogging Lawyer , that would faine fetch the antiquity of his Common Law , from the Saxons that were before King Ethelbert : So that whether wee respect the spirituall instruction and comfort , or the temporall wealth and libertie of the Commons of England , if the Puritan Preacher , and the Puritan Lawyer , who both seeke the ouerthrowe of the Church , and deceiue and consume the people , would let them alone , there would quickely appeare no reason of their state at all why they should hate the Catholike Church that is so comfortable and beneficiall vnto them ▪ or maintaine the Schisme , that with sugred speaches , and counterfeit faces , doth so much abuse them . G. H. 4● . The next priuiledge which you pretend to the Commons , is the liberty of making Lawes in Church-matters , as if they could make lawes without the consent of the Lords both Spirituall and Temporall , or they all without the royall assent of his Maiestie ; and for the multitude of Statutes , which you speake of , the multitude of erroneous opinions , & deuilish practises from Rome , haue caused a great part of them , and the malice both of the deuil ( as knowing his time to be but short ) and of men in this last and worst age of the world generally increasing , must needes giue occasion to more lawes : Hee that shall looke into the bodie of the ciuill law , may find that those lawes multiplied faster from Constantines time , to the ende of Iustinians , which was about 200. yeere , then in foure ( nay in fiue ) hundred yeeres before , though the one were vnder a Christian gouernement , and the other vnder an heathenish , wh● tooke their beginnings , as wee knowe , onely from the lawes of the twelue tables , which were brought out of Greece . Did not God himselfe , besides those twelue precepts ( grounded vpon the law of nature ) adde many lawes therunto for the gouernement of his Church ? and that which hee did by the Ministry of Moses , vnto that speciall people , the same power hath hee left to the gouernours of particular Churches , conditionally all their lawes bee conformable , or at leastwise not repugnant vnto his law , the rule and square of all humane lawes : how hath the Canon law it selfe ( to which Mr. Doctors drift is wholly to resubmit vs in Church gouernement ) growen vp to a great bulke and massie bodie ? and how hath their multitude intangled the Christian world ? yet must no man dare open his mouth to complaine of that . We reade of Luther , that when he heard his books by publike order were burnt in Rome , he as solemnely burnt the Canon law at Wittenberge : We haue not proceeded , neither thinke wee it fit to proceed so farre , but haue rather chosen out of that dunghill to seeke for a pearle , which hauing found , we are content to keepe , and as occasion serues to make vse of : We haue not wholly abrogated the Canon law , but wee retaine it in part , though not as receiuing strength from the Popes authoritie , ( who for any thing I know , hath no more right of making lawes for vs , then wee haue for him ) but from the gouernours of our owne Church : Neither did the 1 Kings of France in the erection of their Vniuersities receiue it any otherwise , then to vse at their own discretiō , not to oblige them as a law , or if it did , the power of it was deriued from their owne approbation , not from Romes imposition ; and therefore haue they expresly , and by name forbidden the 2 6th . Booke of the Decretals to bee read in their Vniuersities , as lawe , as being expresly against the lawes and liberties of the Gallican Church . Now if they refuse one part , they might ( in my iudgement ) by the same reason ( if they found it inconuenient or disagreeable ) reiect the whole , and I thinke they would not stand much , if occasion serued vpon the casting off of the Canon lawe , who could by no meanes yet bee induced to the receiuing of the Canons of the Council of Trent . A notable instance hereof wee haue , euen in the depth of Popery , in our owne Countrey : At the Parliament of Merton , it was proposed , that children borne before marriage , might bee adiudged legitimate , according to the rule and practise of the Canon law : They all made answere with one voice , Nolumus Leges Angliae mutari , we wil not yeeld to the change of the lawes of England , by which it appeares that they receiued not in those very times all the Popes Canons as lawes , and those which they receiued , they had not the force of lawes , because the Pope imposed thē , but because themselues entertained them in that nature , and to that purpose ratified them . Mr. Doctor need not marueile then if our Parliament now make lawes to the same purpose ; and by the same authority , as they ratified those : The Summons of Parliament euer since the time of King Henry the V. ( and how long before I know not ) haue in one constant forme and tenour made mention , that the Parliament is summoned to consult [ de negotijs statum , & defensionem Regni Angliae , & Ecclesiae Anglicanae contigentibus , of businesses concerning the State and defence of the Realme , and Church of England . ] Among other Kings S. Edward begins his lawes with this protestation that it was his Princely care , [ Vt populum Dei , & super omnia , Sanctam Ecclesiam , regat & gubernet , To rule and gouerne Gods people , and aboue all the Church of God ] And before him 3 Ina , k●ng of the West Saxons , professeth , that hee called a Councill of his Bishops and Senators , that they might consult of matters , [ De salute animarum , & Statu regni : touching the saluation of their soules , and the State of the kingdome : ] And therefore doeth our chiefe Antiquarie rightly distinguish our Courts into Ecclesiasticall , Ciuill , and mixt , which hee makes the Parliament , as beeing compounded of both , and consequently capable to determine of matters of both natures , though I must needes say , the case is somewhat altered from ●ormer times , when not onely the Arch-bish●ps , the Bishops , the Abbots , and Priors ( whose number was double to th●t which now it is , and litle inferiour to the ●e●porall Lords ) sate in thhe igher House of Pa●liament , and had con●luding vo●ces , but the bodie of the Clergie , and Cathedrall ●hurches , had their Proctours amongst the Commons , as may be c●llected by diuers of our 4 Statutes in print : but no● that the number of the Lords Spirituall in the higher House , is ●essened , and the others are cleane excluded the lower House , mee thinkes it should stand with reason and equitie , that th● li●ertie of making of lawes or Canons in Church-matters , should bee referred and reserued ( by his Maiesties gracious fauour , and with his Royall assent ) to Church-men , assembled in their Conuocation , who are presumed to be most able and willing to establish good and wholesome Constitutions , and to reforme what is amisse . Thus in the yeere 1603 , at his Maiesties first entrance into this kingdome , by vertue of hi● Prerogatiue Royall , and Supreame authority in causes Ecclesiasticall , did hee graunt lic●nce and free power vnto them , to treate and agree vpon such Ordinances , as they should thinke necessary and conuenient for the honour and seruice of Almighty God , and the good and quiet of the Church , and afterward being by them agreed vpon , and throughly considered by his Ma●estie , out of his princely inclination , to maintaine the present estate and gouernment of the Church of England , hee not onely co●firmed them by his Royall Assent , but by the same authoritie commaunded the entertainement and execution of them through the Realme . Another matter you fling at , is the multitude of Lawyers at this day , as i● they were exceedingly increased , but if you had read , and well obse●ued Foretescues obseruation in this behalfe , 5 who wrote about 200. yeeres since , being then Chiefe Iustice of England , and had compared this time to that , you would haue found , that the number of that Pro●ession in those dayes , was litle lesse then at this day : certainely their colledges were then more then now : His words are [ Sunt namque in eo decem hospitia minora , et quand●que verò plura , quae nominantur hospitia Cancellariae , ad quorum quodlibet pertinent centum studentes ad minus , et ad aliqua eorum maior in multo numerus , licet non omnes in eis semper conueniant : Maiorū quatuor sunt , & ad minimū eorum pertinent in forma praenot at a ducenti studentes , aut propè . They haue ten lesser houses , which they call Innes of Chancerie , to euery of which belong one hundred students at least , and to some many more , though they be not all continually resident in them : of the bigger houses , they haue ●oure , and to each of them in like manner belong two hundred students , or thereabout ] Whereras at this present in some of the Innes of Court , there are not 260. and in the greatest little aboue 300. in commons at one time ; and for the ●nnes of Chancerie they are but eight in number , and in most of them not aboue 50. in commons together : But if they are increased it may well be imputed , not so much to our multitude of statuts , as to our long peace , the nurse of homebred quarrels , or to the dissolution of our Monestaries , and that as I conceiue for foure reasons , First for that whereas in those dayes when the Monasteries stood ▪ many yonger brothers did betake themselues to Mon●sticall liu●s , they doe now apply themselues to the study of the Law , Secondly for that the possessions of the Monasteries being then in Mortmaine could not be aliened , whereas now being in the hands of Lay-men , they are daily b●ught and solde , which settet● the Lawyer doubly aworke : first in 〈◊〉 co●ueyances for them , and then in alter●tion about them : Thirdly the Abbots and Priors foreseeing their ruine , Set many leases vnder hand , which could not but breed a great intanglement in their possessions : Fourthly , and lastly , the dispersing of them into the hands of so many particular men , resting before in the possessions of Corporations , cannot but proue the cause of much strife , and consequently of many suites and controuersies ; no marueile then if by our increase of people ( other trades and professions increasing ) Lawyers should doe the like . But if the Canons of the Church and the Courts of Confession , were ( you say ) in request , the Lawyers market would soone bee marred , what say you then to those Countreys , where both these are in request , and yet doe their Lawyers both encrease and flourish more then ours ? And when both these were in request among vs , their number ( as I shewed before ) was little lesse , if not as great , or more then now it is , if ● vnderstand the words of that reuerend Iudge aright . And if most of our Lawyers bee in this point Puritans , that is in refusing the rescripts of the Popes , as the Canons of the Church , and your seale of Confession as a diuine ordinance , for my part I blame them not ; but for the Canons of our owne Church , collected by William Linwood in the reigne of King Henry the 5th . and afterwards by 32. selected persons , Bishops , inferiour Diuines , and Cannonists , deputed to that worke by King Henry the eight , & after his death by his Sonne King Edward the sixth , as also our present Canons now in force , I haue knowen some of our Lawyers much esteeme : But if they furnish the Parliament with vniust and vnnecessarie grieuances , I defend them not , but leaue them to make their owne apologie , only thus much I say , that the whole body of a profession is not to bee charged with the fault of some fewe , specially being imputed by those who desire most to fish in our troubled waters , to warme their handes at the fire of our contentions , and to rippe vp our woundes ( if we haue any ) with smiling countenances . Hoc Ithacus velit , & magno mercentur Atridae . Now if the one incroach vpon the other , farther then their proper and limited bounds permit , I excuse them not , but leaue them to the censure of his wisedome , and restraint by his power , vpon whom they 6 depend both , and from whom they both receiue their limits and being . Lastly , whereas you make him a Petty-fogging Lawyer , that would fetch the antiquity of the Lawe from the Saxons , that were before King Ethelbert , herein you make that famous Iudge before named , whom in his time they esteemed a Father of the Law , and a learned antiquarie , a Petty-fogging Lawyer , in as much as in his Book aboue mentioned , he thus speaketh : [ 7 The realme of England was first inhabited by the Britanes ; next after them the Romanes had the rule of the land ; and then againe the Britanes possessed it ; after whom the Saxons inuaded it , and changing the name thereof , did for Britaine call it England ; after them for a certaine time the Danes had the dominion of the realme , and then the Saxons againe ; but last of all the Normans subdued it , whose descent continueth in the gouernment of the Kingdome at this present ; and in all the times of these seueral Nations and of their Kings , this realme was still ruled with the selfe same customes that now it is , which if they had not bene right good , some of those Kings , mooued either with pride , or with reason , or affection , would haue changed them , or altogether abolished them , and specially the Romans who did iudge all the rest of the world by their owne Lawes ; likewise would other of the foresayed Kings haue done , who by the sword only possessing the realme of England , might with the same power haue extinguished the Lawes thereof ; and touching the antiquitie of thesame , neither are the Romane ciuil Lawes , by so long continuance of ancient times confirmed , nor yet the Lawes of the Venetians , which aboue all other are reported to be of most antiquitie , for as much as there Iland in the beginning of the Britanes was not then inhabited , as Rome it selfe was then also vnbuilded ; neither are the Lawes of any which worshipped God so ancient ; wherefore the contrary is not to bee sayd nor thought , but that the English Customes are very good , yea of all other the very best ] neither can I conceiue any other reason Mr. Doctor hath , thus bitterly to enuie against our Lawes , as if they came from the Court infidel , and were a burthen to the Common wealth , but because some of them are bent against the Popes vsurpation , and the admission on of his emissaries from Rome , and as the Canon Law carries vp the Arke of the Church ( that is the Pope ) fifteene cubits aboue the highest mountaine● of Soueraigntie , so is the Common Law so fauourable and aduantageous in extending the Prerogatiue of the King , as his Maiestie professeth , [ For a King of England to despise the Common lawe , is to neglect his owne Crowne : ] and a little after protesteth , that [ if it were in his hand to chuse a new law for this Kingdome , hee would not onely preferre it before any other nationall lawe , but euen before the very iudiciall law of Moyses . ] So that whether wee expect Spirituall instruction and comfort , or the semporall wealth and libertie of the Commons of England , ( if the Iesuite and Seminarie Priest who both seeke the ouerthrow of our Church , and deceiue and consume the people , would let them alone ) there would quickly appeare no reason of State at all , why they should desire reconciliation to Rome , ( which with sugred speaches , and counterfeit faces , doth so much abuse them ) or loathe the reformation which is euery way so comfortable and beneficiall vnto them . B. C. 44. I am therefore in very assured hope , that by my comming to the Catholike Church , beside the satisfying , and sauing of mine owne soule , I shall doe no ill seruice to your Maiestie , neither in respect of your selfe nor your children , nor in respect of your Lords and Commons , and that there is no reason concerning the state of any of these , that is sufficient to disswade vnitie . There is onely the Clergie left , which if Caluinisme may goe on , and preuaile as it doth , shall not in the next age bee left to bee satisfied ; and there is little reason that any man that loues the Clergie , shall desire to satisfie such 1 Clergie-men , as do vnder-hand fauour Caluinists , and maintaine such 2 points of doctrine , 3 as if your Maiesties fauour were not , would out of hand ouerthrow the Clergie , and in stead of them , set vp a few stipendary Preachers . G. H. 44. And wee are on the other side as confident , that in going to the Church of Rome , and forsaking your owne , in which you were bred and baptized , besides the indangering of your own soule , you haue done no good seruice to his Maiestie , neither in respect of himselfe , nor his children , neither of his Lords , nor Commons in perswading vnitie with the ▪ Church of Rome , vnlesse first shee could bee perswaded to the imbracing of the same veritie in Religion with vs. There is onely the Clergie left , which if Popery should goe on , and preuaile , as you desire it should , shall not in the next age bee left to bee satisfied , or to giue satisfaction ; but there is little reason , that any man that loues the Clergie , should desire to satisfie such Clergie-men as your selfe , while you were among vs , who vnder hand fauour Papists , and maintaine such points of doctrine , as if his Maiesties authoritie were not , would out of hand ouerthrow the doctrine established , and in stead thereof , reestablish the Papacie . B. C. 45. There neuer was , is , nor shall bee , any wellsetled State in the world , either Christian or heathen , but the Clergie and Priesthood was , is , and must bee a principall part of the gouernment , depending vpon none but him onely , whom they suppose to bee their God ; but where Caluinisme preuaileth , three or foure stipendary Ministers that must preach , as it shall please Mr. 1 Maior and his brethren , may serue for a whole city ; and indeede if their opinions bee true , it is but folly for any State to maintaine more : For if God haue predestinated a certaine number to bee saued without any condition at all , of their beeing in the visible Church by Faith , or their perseuering therein by good workes : If God hath reprobated the greatest part of the world without any respect at all of their infidelity , heresie , or wicked life : if the faith of CHRIST be nothing else but the assured perswasion of a mans owne predestination to glory by him : if the Sacraments of the Church bee nothing but signes and badges of that grace which a man hath before , by the carnall couenant of his parents faith : if Priesthood can doe nothing but preach the word , as they call it , which lay Lay-men must iudge of , and may preach to , if they will , where occasion serues : If the study and knowledge of antiquity , vniuersality , and consent be not necessary , but euery man may expound Scripture as his owne spirit shall moue him : If , I say , these and such like opinions be as true , as they are among the Caluinists in the world common , and in England too much fauoured and maintained , there will certainely appeare no reason at all vnto your Parliament , whensoeuer 2 your Maiesty or your successours shall please to aske them , why they should bee at so great a charge as they are , to maintaine so needlesse a party , as these opinions doe make the Clergie to be : They can haue a great many more 3 sermons a great deale better cheape ; and in the opinion of Caluinisme the Clergie doe 4 no other seruice : they that doe in England fauour and maintaine those opinions , and suppresse and disgrace those that doe confute them ; they although themselues can be content to bee 5 lordes , and to goe in Rochets , are indeed the greatest enemies of the Clergie : and it were no great matter for the Clergie ; they might easily turne 6 lay , and liue as well as they do for the most part : but it is a thing full of compassion and commiseration to see , that by these false and wicked opinions , the deuill , the father of these and all other lies , doth daily take possession of the soules of your Subiects , both of Clergie and laitie . 7 These kind of Clergie men I confesse I doe not desire to satisfie any other way , then as I haue alwayes done , that is , by the most friendly and plaine confutation of their errours to shew them the trueth ; as for other Clergie men that are conformable to the religion established by Law , as well for their doctrine , as for their discipline , if they be good Schollers and 8 temperate men ( as I 9 know many of them are ) they cannot but in their iudgements approue the truth of Catholike religion , and if it were not for feare of losse or disgrace to their wiues and children , they would be as glad as my selfe , that a more 10 temperate course might be held , and more liberty afforded to Catholikes and Catholike Religion in England : These Clergie men , I am and euer shall be desirous to satisfie , not onely in respect of themselues , but also in respect of their 11 wiues and children , whom I am so farre from condemning or misliking , as that I doe account my selfe 12 one of them ; and I desire nothing more in this world , then in the toleration of Catholike religion to liue and 13 die among them ; and therefore I haue had so great care in this point , as before I did 14 submit my selfe to the Catholike Church , I receiued 15 assurance from some of the greatest , that if his Maiesty would admit the ancient subordination of the Church of Canterbury vnto that mother , 16 by whose authority all other Churches in England at the first were , and still are subordinate vnto Canterbury , and the first free vse of that Sacrament , for which 17 especially all the Churches in Christendome were first founded , the Pope for his part would 18 confirme the interest of all those , that haue present possession in any Ecclesiasticall liuing in England , and would also permit the free vse of the Common Prayer booke in English , for Morning and Euening Prayer , with very little or no alteration , and for the contentment and security of your Maiesty , he would giue you not onely any satisfaction , but all the honor , that with the vnity of the Church , and the safetie of Catholike Religion , may be required : which seemed to me so reasonable , as beeing before satisfied for the trueth of Catholike Religion , I could aske 19 no more ; so that I am verely perswaded that by yeelding to that trueth which I could not deny , I haue neither neglected my duety and seruice to your Maiesty and your children , nor my respect and honour to your Lords and Commons , nor my loue and kindenesse to my 20 honest friends and brethren of the Clergie ; but rather that my example and my prayers shall doe good vnto all . G. H. 45. That the Clergie should be a Principall member of the body popolitike we graunt , but that they should depend on none but him only , whom they suppose to bee their god , wee denie ; Indeed where the authority of the Bishop of Rome swayes , looke how many Clergy men there are , so many subiects are exempt from the Iurisdiction of the secular power , and wholy depend vpon his Holinesse , who is to them in regard of the vniuersalitie of his commaund , and the infallibilitie of his iudgement , in stead of their God , but for vs [ Non habemus talem consuetudinem , neque Ecclesia Dei : we depend first on God , and then on the Soueraigne Magistrate , his annointed and vicegerent on earth : ] In regard of externall coactiue iurisdiction , with Saint Augustine wee distinguish betweene the eternall God , and the temporall Lord , yet wee obey the temporall Lord for his sake that is the eternall God : But where Caluinisme preuaileth , three or foure stipendary Ministers ( you say ) that must preach , as it shall please Mr. Maior and his brethren may serue for a whole Citie , where , by Caluinisme you vnderstand not the discipline or forme of Church gouernment , conceiued by Caluin , but Doctrinall pointes maintained by him , or at leastwise , by you imposed on him ; I say imposed on him , in as much as the greatest part of those positions , is certainly no part of his Doctrine ; and for the rest ( malice and preiudice set aside ) they might suffer , as fauourable a construction in Caluin , as in Saint Augustin , or in Bellarmine , and other Iesuits and schoolemen , neither is all that Caluin hath written , without exception maintained , by those in England , who otherwise imbrace and reuerence his paines , as of a chiefe Captaine in the Lords battailes : your positions I will examine as they lie in order , whereof the first is . [ That God hath predestinated a certaine number to bee saued , without any condition at all of their being in the visible Church by faith , or their perseuering therein by good workes . ] To which I answere , that if wee consider Predestination before the fall , it can haue no reference , to Faith or good workes , flowing from thence , in as much as if Adam had stood in his originall integritie , wee should not haue needed the comming of CHRIST for our saluation , and consequently , neither faith in him , nor those workes which are the necessarie fruits and effects of that faith ; but if after the fall , then are they both required , not as impulsiue and meritorious causes , but as markes and effects infallible of our Predestination , and withall , as the ordinary conditions , and meanes of our saluation : This I take to bee Caluins opinion , in the third booke and 22. chap. of his Institutions , and not Caluins onely , but Martyrs in his Commentary on the 8th . to the Romanes , and Zanchies in his 5. booke of the nature of God , and second chapter , and Bezaes , in the acts of the conference at Montpelgard , and generally of our owne Writers that haue touched this point , and if wee erre herein , wee erre with St. Augustine , who in his 87. tract vpon Iohn , thus speaks ▪ [ Hic certe vacillat eorū ratiocinatio , qui praescientiam Dei defendunt contra gratiā Dei ▪ & ideo dicunt nos electos ante mundi constitutionem , quia praesciuit nos Deus futuros bonos , non seipsum nos facturū bonos : Non hoc dicit qui dicit , non vos me elegistis , quoniam si propterea nos elegisset , quia bonos futuros ●sse nos praesciuerat , simul etiam praescisset quòd eum nos fuissemus prius electuri . Heere falleth to the ground , their vaine manner of reasoning , who defend the foresight of God , against the grace of God , affirming that wee were therefore chosen before the foundation of the world , because God foresaw wee would bee good , not that himselfe would make vs good : But hee sayes not so , who sayes [ you haue not chosen mee ] for had hee chosen vs , because hee foresaw wee would bee good , hee should also haue foreseene , that we would first haue chosen him ] To the same purpose doth hee speake , in the 98. Chapter of his Manuel to Laurence , and in his 105. Epistle ; neither doeth the Master of sentences dis●ent from him herein , in his first Booke and 41. distinction : Opinati sunt quidam ( sayeth he ) Deum ideo elegisse Iacob , quia talem futurum praesciuit qui in eum crederet , & ei seruiret : Some ( saith he ) haue beene of opinion , that God chose Iacob , because hee knew hee would beleeue on him and serue him , which Saint Augustin in his Retractions confesseth , that himselfe sometimes held , where hee plainely prooueth , that [ had hee bin chosen for any merit to come , that election had not proceeded from grace ] The same is also the opinion of 1 Scotus , of 2 Aquinas , and 3 Bellarmin himselfe , so that to say , God hath predestinated a certaine number , without any condition of faith or workes , as the impulsiue or meritorious cause of our predestination , is not Caluins opinion alone , neither was he the first broacher of it ; And to say that hee predestinated a certaine number , without any condition of Faith and workes , as the markes and effects of our Predestination , and the means of our saluation , is not Caluins opinion at all , but thrust vpon him by Mr. Doctor . * He hath chosen vs ( sayeth the Apostle ) before the foundation of the world , that wee should bee holy , making holinesse the finall , but not the efficient cause , with which distinction doeth Sixtus Senensis shut vp the matter in the sixth 4 Booke of his Library , where hauing at large alleaged the sayings of Origen , Chrysostome , Ambrose , Hierome , &c. who seeme to hold , that the Prescience of workes is the cause of diuine Predestination , [ quae quidem sententia ( sayeth he ) in Pelagio damnata est , which opinion was cōdemned in Pelagius ] he addeth that Augustin , hauing sometime held the same , vpon better aduice , retracted it almost in innumerable places , and at length concluds , [ Ne● dubium est , &c. Neither is there any doubt to bee made , but that some of those foresayd Fathers , in pronouncing our workes foreseene to bee the cause of Gods Predestination , vnderstood it of the finall cause , and not of the meritorious . ] The second point which you call Caluini●me , is ▪ that [ God hath Reprobated the greatest part of the world without any respect at all of their infidelitie , heresie , or wicked life ; ] to which I answere , that this point of Doctrine being rightly vnderstood , is not Caluins alone ▪ but Martyrs , Zanchies , Bezaes , in the places before alleaged , and generally of our owne diuines ; nay of Sa●nt Augustin , of Lombard , of Scotus , of Thomas , and of Bellarmine himselfe , who in the place aboue quoted , distinguisheth Reprobation into a negatiue and a positiue acte ; the negatiue is Gods will of not sauing men , the positiue his will of damning men . [ of the former of these ( sayeth hee ) no cause can bee assigned , in regard of vs , as neither of our Predestination , but of the lattter , the cause is the foresight of sinne ] Now the former of these two acts is that , by which men are properly sayd to bee reprobated , as by the latter to bee damned , so that to say , God hath reprobated the greatest part of the world , without respect of any thing in themselues , is no more Caluinisme , then Be●●arminisme : Catherinus indeed enueighs bitterly against those , who affirme , that God reprobats some , not because hee foresees their wicked life ; but because his pleasure is to exclude them from Eternall life ; and this opinion hee ascribes to Luther , calling it impious and intolerable , but 5 Pererius , somewhat sharper sighted , takes vp the blundring olde man for it , putting him in minde , that it was ipsissima B. Augustini sententia , the very selfe same doctrine , which Saint Augustin teacheth . The third point which you call Caluinisme is , that [ faith is nothing else , but the assured perswasion of a mans owne Predestination to glory by Christ ] which differs not much in words , and in sense very little , or not at all , ( as I conce●ue ) from his 6 Maiesties definition , where hee calles it a sure p●rswasion , and apprehension of the promises of God , applying them to your soule , and therefore may it iustly bee termed ( saith hee ) the Golden chaine that linketh the faithfull soule to CHRIST : But I wonder what Mr. Doctor meant , in saying , that Caluin maketh it nothing else , whereas the Church of Rome maketh it not by many degrees so much ; it beeing in their doctrine a naked and bare apprehension of , and assent vnto supernaturall trueths , in which the deuill himselfe may goe as farre as any , nay , doeth goe farther then many of them ; for in that sort hee both * beleeues and trembles , and by this faith , impossible it is that wee should either * quench the fiery darts of the wicked , as S. Paul speakes , or * ouercome the world as S. Iohn : Faith ( saith the authour to the Hebrewes ) * is the ground of things which are hoped for , and the euidence of things which are not seene : now what is that grounded euidence , but an assured perswasion ? and what are those things hoped for , and not seene , but chiefly the glory to which through CHRIST wee are predestinate ? so that you may as well put a nothing else vpon S. Pauls definition , as vpon Caluins , and yet is 7 Caluins somewhat more then you make it , in as much as thereby the fauour of God is not onely apprehended , but sealed vnto the heart ; whereas your faith is of that nature , as it neither hath any sound foundation to build vpon , neither is a man certaine when he hath it ; neither if hee haue it , how long hee shall keepe it ; neither if hee keepe it , whether at last it will serue for his iustification in the sight of God ; So that a nothing else may rather be pind vpon the sleeue of that faith which the Church of Rome teaches , then that which Caluin defines . The fourth point which you call Caluinisme is , that [ the Sacraments of the Church , are nothing but signes and badges of that grace , which a man hath before by the carnal couenant of his parents faith ] whereas 8 Caluin in many places , and expresse tearmes , directly denies , the Sacraments to be nothing else but bare signes , they beeing in his doctrine , not onely signes to represent that which they are ordained to signifie , but seales to confirme that which they represent , and withall , pipes to conuey , or instruments to present that to the soule of the worthy receiuer , which they represent to the sence : much lesse then doe either hee or wee make the Sacraments signes onely of that grace which the receiuer hath by couenant of his parents faith , as Mr. Doctor would haue it , for then would it follow ▪ that they should not at all bee Sacraments vnto them ▪ whose parents either are , or died Infidels , though themselues bee conuerted to Christian Religion ; and whereas hee calls that a carnall Couenant , which God made with Abraham and his seed , it argues a carnall minded man , sauou●ing those things which are of the Flesh , and not of the Spirit . The fift point which Mr. Doctor calls Caluinisme is , that [ Priesthood can doe nothing but preach the word , ( as they call it ) which Lay-men must iudge of , and may preach too , if they will , where occasion serues ] as if hee were ignorant , that both by Caluin , and by vs , p●blike prayer , in the name , and for the good of the people , is specially committed to the Priesthood , and to it onely is the power of binding and loosing , and of administring the Sacraments annexed , whereas in their doctrine , it is permitted not onely to Lay-men , but to women , in some cases : But with vs ( you say ) Lay-men must iudge of that which is preached , and may themselues preach too ; whereas the trueth is , that wee allow them a iudgement , of examination onely , or triall , which * S. Paul allowed his auditors , and * S. Iohn his , not of decision or determination , which you seeme to implie ; and for their preaching , both our , and Caluins rule is , that no man with vs taketh , or should take this honour to himselfe , but he which is called , as was * Aaron , inwardly by the Spirit of God , fitting him with gifts , and a disposition thereunto ; and outwardly by the Constitutions and ordinances of the Church . The sixth and last point which Mr. Doctor calls Caluinisme is , that [ the studie , and knowledge of antiquitie , vniuersalitie , and consent , is not necessary , but euery man may expound Scripture as his owne spirit shall mooue him ] where first I cannot but wonder , that Mr. Dr ▪ , who vrgeth neither antiquity , vniuersality , nor consent through his whole discourse , should here at last cast , stand so much vpon them , yet I am perswaded , it was rather to beare vs in hand , that himselfe was deepely studied in them , then that hee thought they could much aduantage his cause ; neither is the studie and knowledge of them so neglected , by those whom Master Doctor , ( if hee were liuing ) would call Caluinists , that they feare , euen by that triall , to encounter the stoutest Champions of the Church of Rome : For leauing Caluins frequent quotation of the ancient Councils and Fathers , let the workes of Martyr , of Bucer , of Zanchius , of Iunius , of Sadeel , of Chamier , of the Noble Du Plessis , and D● Moulin testifie , what account they make of the vniuersall consent , and of Antiquitie : And for our owne here at home , he that shall looke into the writings of Bishop Iewel , of Raynolds , of Whitakers , of Fulke , of Humphreys , of Perkins , ( I spare to name the liuing , nothing inferiour herein to the dead ) may easily finde , if hee shut not his eyes against the light , that they spared neither cost nor paines in this kinde . To what ●●●pose hath Tossanus written his Synopsis Patrum , and Scultetus his Medulla Patrum ? To what end did that noble and worthy Gentleman , Sir Thomas Bodley , with so much charge and tra●ell , found and furnish our Vniuersitie Library at Oxford ; and priuate Colledges , by his example , inlarge their owne ? or why should Sir Henry Sauill , with so much expence and care , set f●orth Chrysostomes workes , in so exact and exquisite a maner , i● wee made that slight reckoning of the studie and knowledge of Antiquitie , as Mr. Doctor would make the world beleeue ? indeed wee cannot but acknowledge that to bee true , ( which trueth it selfe hath deliuered ) onething is necessary , and that many care , and are cumbred about other things more then about this , yet withall wee as freely confesse that many things are requisite , some in one degree , and some in another , to the better compassing of that one , which is onely and absolutely necessary in it selfe . But e●ery man , you say , with vs , may expound Scripture , as his owne spirit shall mooue him , whereas wee euery where teach with S. Peter , that as [ * noe prophecie-in the Scripture is of priuate motion . ] so neither is it of priuate interpretation ; the originall word signifies both : Wee cannot take from any Christian man , in expoūding of Scripture , a iudgement of discretion , in weighing the drift of the Text , and conferring it with other passages of like nature , though to the guides of the Church and Pastours of mens soules , we reserue the iudgement of direction ; but the iudgement of iurisdiction to the representatiue Church it selfe , assembled in Synode : for as the spirits of the people are in this case subiect to the Prophets , who sit in Moses chaire , so * the spirits of the Prophets , are subiect to the Prophets , if not to conuince the conscience , at leastwise to impose silence ; for God is not the authour of confusion , but of peace ; and they which thinke otherwise , for mine owne part , I thinke of them , that [ the way of peace they haue not knowen . ] I will conclude this point with his Maiesties most graue and godly aduice , [ 9 When ye reade the Scripture , reade it with a sanctified and chaste heart , admire reuerently such obscure plases as yee vnderstand not , blaming onely your owne capacitie ; reade with delight the plaine places , and studie carefully to vnderstand those that are somewhat difficile ; presse to bee a good Textuary ; for the Scripture is ●euer the best interpreter of it selfe ; but presse not curiously to seeke out farther then is contained therein , for that were ouer vnmannerly a presumption , to striue to bee further vpon Gods secrets , then hee hath will bee ; for what hee thought needefull for vs to know , that hath hee reuealed there ; and delight most in reading such parts of the Scripture , as may best serue for your instruction in your calling , * reiecting foolish curiosities vpon Genealogies , and contentions which are but vaine and profit not , as Paul saith . ] If these then bee the opinions of the Church of England ( which you call Caluinisme ) maintained aswell by the pens , as the tongues of those Church-men , who sit at the Sterne , and in the most eminent places of the Church , there will easily appeare , a reason to the Parliament , if it be demanded , why so necessary a partie as the Clergie should , at leastwise peaceably enioy that allowance which they haue allotted , by Gods ordinance , the piety of deuout mindes , and the ancient constitutions of the Realme ; and sure wee are , that a great deale lesse reason there is of maintaining so chargeable a Clergie in the Romane Hierarchie , where the Popes plenary Indulgence may in a trice effectuate that , about which they make so much a doe . But at length the Asses eares appeare through the Lions skinne : before he haue told vs in generall that those opinions ( forged for the most part out of his owne braine , ) were too much fa●ored , & maintained by Clergie men themselues ; here he comes at length to open his splene , & tels vs in plaine termes , that the Clergie men he meanes , are such who can be content to be Lords and to go in Rochets , being indeed the greatest enemies of the Clergie : now had the same men ( who long since did smell his hypocrisie , and inclination toward Rome ) fauoured Dr. Cariers Popish doctrine , and designes , or endeuoured to haue put him in a Rochet , and to haue made him a Lord , ( whereof he thought himselfe worthy , though no man else did , ) they had doubtlesse bene in his account the Clergies best friends : but for that they discouered and discountenanced his slie purposes and practises , they are now become the greatest enemies the Clergie hath ; they are therefore become enemies , because they tell the trueth ; yet whatsoeuer they are to the Clergie , whome they loue and tender as their brethren , sure I am they haue proued themselues more loyall to his Maiestie , and more faithfull to the State , more diligent in their calling , and more vnblameable in their wayes , then the accuser , it being a thing full of commiseration and compassion to see , that by these false and wicked suggestions of mutinous and discontented persons , the deuil , the father of these and all other lies , doth daily take possession of the soules of some of his Maiesties subiects , both of the Nobles and Commons . But another sort of Clergie men ( you say ) there are , good schollers and temperate men , who cannot but in their iudgment approue the trueth of the Catholike religion : These , that you may the better satisfie , you desire two things , and by way of counterchange or retribution promise three ; hauing assurance as you pretend from some of the greatest . The first thing you desire , is no lesse then the Bishop of Rom●s Supremacie in England , which you vaile vnder the title of the subordination of the Church of Canterbury , vnto that Church , by whose authority all other Churches in England at first were , and still are subordinate vnto Canterbury . Whe●ther Rome may properly be called the mother Church of England , I haue already in another place considered , but vndoubtedly as the case now stands , she being become vnto vs worse then a stepmother , we cannot in common reason entertaine vn●on with her , much lesse acknowledge subi●ction vnto her ; for shall we thinke that the head of the Papacie being in , the body of Poperie will bee long behind ? no , no if that one po●nt were once yeelded vnto , all the rest controuersed betweene vs and them , would quickly follow after , as a necessarie traine . The Frier in Chaucer would haue nothing be killed for his sake , only he desired the liuer of the capon , and the braine of the pig : So the Pope would bee contented there should bee no innouation in England , vpon condition his Supremacie and the Masse● ( the second thing you desire ) were readmitted , vpon which two in a manner , the whole frame of Poperie is built , and therefore in the reformed Churches of France ( not without good reason in my iudgment ) such as forsake the fellowship of the Church of Rome , and betake themselues to their profession , are bound before they bee admitted into their society publikely in the Congregation , as to renounce the errours of that Church in generall , so in speciall , and by name to abiure these two , The vsurped authority of the Bishop of Rome , and the ●dolatry of the Masse , as may appeare in the late declaration of the admittance of the Earle of Candale into their Church , in Ianuary last , he being sonne and heire to the Duke d'Espernon , a chiefe Patron of the Iesuits and their faction , and the Lord himselfe ( as he is stiled in the declaration printed at Rochel 1616 ) Prince of Busch , Duke and Peere of France , gouernour and Lieutenant generall for the king in the Prouinces of Xaintong● A●goulmois , high and low Limosin , principall gentleman of the kings chamber : in this declaration he also protesteth before God , the searcher of hearts , and iudge of soules , that his change proceeded not from the motions of fl●sh and blood , o● from worldly respects , but from the meere senc● of cons●ience . But to retur●e to our purpose , the latter of those two things which M. Doctour craues to be yeelded vnto , he shrowds vnder the cloake of the first vse of the Sacrament , whereas his Maiestie rightly termeth the present doctrine and practise of the Church of Rome therein , [ new coyned articles , neuer heard of in the first 10 500. yeeres . ] Such as are the cutting off of one halfe of the Sacrament from the people , priuate Masses , where the Priest playeth the part , both of the Priest and of the people , their Transubstantiation , Eleuation for adoration , reseruation in boxes , and circu●gestation in Processions ; besides an infinite number of ridiculous and apish toyes in the celebration of it : Notwithstanding you make no bones to demand the free vse hereof , that is as I conceiue in effect , the publike toleration and liberty of Romish religion , a matter most vnreasonable to be expected from his 11 Maiesty , of any king liuing , who therefore specially seemes to mislike the bitternesse of some busie Ministers , who ( God be blessed ) grow both fewer in number , and more calme in their courses , because they trouble the peace of the Church , thereby giuing aduantage to the entry of Papists by the diuision thereof : how then can you conce●ue any hope of a Toleration of your pretended Catholike religion it selfe ? But if you consider that which his Maiesty writeth against the 12 mariage of his sonne to o●e of a different religion , your hope wil be much lesse . Solomon from the toleration of a strange worship within his dominions , fell at last , as we know , to the imbracing of it himselfe ; And it is obserued by Diuines , both Iewish and Christian ; that the diuersitie of religion , tolerated by King Solomon in diuine worship , was by God requited vpon his heire , and next successour , Iure talionis , by a retaliated diuision of an vnrecouerable rupture in the ciuill gouernment : Your owne 13 Stapleton spares not to reuile Bodi● in particular , as an enemy to Christianity for 14 maintaining that liberty ; The 15 Rhemists conclude to like purpose in their anno●ations vpon the new Testament ; and 16 Bellarmine spends two whole chapters in confuting their arguments , who pleade for this indifferencie , infor●ing it from the example of the Iewish Church , grounds of Scripture , practise of Emperours , iudgement of Fathers , yea reason and experience , to bee pernitious in any Realme , bo●h to the Ecclesiasticall and ciuill state , and dangerous euen to themselues which vse that liberty ; shall we imagine then that his Matie . a king , if any other in the world , so desirous to serue God truely , without shrinking or wauering , setled in conscience , resolued in iudgement , confirming by practise , by word , by writing , by oath , by lawes , by aduice , what hee openly professeth , would euer differ so much from himselfe , as to admit , euen of a partiall Toleration of a religion different from , if not contrary vnto his owne ? a matter so contrary to Gods will , so dishonourable to himselfe , so dangerous to the State ? * Be not partaker ( saith S. Paul to Timothy ) of other mens sinnes ; now I cannot conceiue , how in his case the 17 Magistrates permitting , when it is in his power to forbid , can well be distinguished from pertaking . From your demands , you come to your promises , whereof the first is , that the Pope for his part would confir●e the interest of all those that haue present possession , in any ecclesisticall liuing in England : he must then confirme the interest of all those , whom you call Puritans , and Caluinists , as well as others , which I thinke hee will bee as vnwilling to doe , as they to take it from him ; nay I am perswaded , there is no Clergy man in England , worthy the name and credit of a good Subiect , or the profit of the liuing he holdes , who would thinke the possession of it any way the securer , for the Popes confirmation : But to grant , that the right of those , who haue the present interest in them , might by that means bee strengthened , what were like to become of the fattest Benefices , and best dignities of our Church ( the same power continuing ) in the next age , wee may in part coniecture , by the experience of former times , they being by the Popes authoritie conferred vpon his fauourits , Italians and strangers , who neuer came so much as to see them , and yet notwithstanding , was the rest of the Clergy so harrowed , partly by the cunning practise , and partly by the violent extortion of his Legats , and Collectours , ( as I haue already shewed ) that it is surely a lamentable thing to read it , much more to feele it . The Second thing you promise is , the permitting the free v●e of the Common prayer booke in English , for Morning and Euening prayers , with v●ry little or no alteration ; belike then his Holinesse hath of late better studied that Scripture of Saint Paul , the 1. to the Corinthians , and the 14. then which I see not what can be more cleerely spoken , not onely for reading and expounding the Scriptures , but specially for praying in a knowen language ; and if his Holinesse iudge it no offence to God , to permit the vse of our Liturgy in English , what reason can our Recusants pretend of their refusall to ioyne with our Congregation in the vse of it , except his purpose bee to permit it only for an interim , as Charles the 5th . did to the Germans , vntill hee can gaine further strength to worke his owne ends , or as hee doth the stews , to auoide a greater conceiued mischiefe ; but ( God be thanked ) wee haue , and hope still to haue , the fre●●se of that booke without his permission , and for his permission , should thinke nothing the better , but rather the worse of it . The third and last thing you offer is , that , for the contentm●nt and securitie of his Maiesty , his Holinesse would giue him not only any satisfaction but all the honour , that with the vnity of the Church , and safety of Catholike religion , may bee required , but how farr● the vnitie of the Church , and the safety of Catholike religion extends it selfe , is so doubtfull a case , as none can determine it but the Pope himselfe , so that except his Maiestie can define , or diuine rather , what that meanes , hee shall bee as farre to seeke of his securitie as euer : Hee hath alreadie declared by his Breues , that the taking of the Oath of Allegeance , cannot stand with the safety of Catholike Religion , so that if hee will secure his Maiestie , hee must not only condemne those Authors , and damne that Doctrine , which teaches his power in deposing Kings , and disposing of Kingdomes , but hee must either recall that declaration , made as hee pretendeth , vpon long and weightie deliberation , ( which it may bee to ●erue his turne , hee would as willingly doe , as absolue the Venetians , though they no way submitted themselues in the point controuersed ) or if hee persist in the maintenance thereof , as in greatest likelihood hee w●●l , I see not which way hee can secure his Maiestie , except hee may bee said to secure , who cuts off all meanes of his securitie , an oath being among all Christians , and Heathens , if they bee but morally honest ( as the Apostle speakes ) an end of all strife . It is the last resolution in the search of truth , and in the body politique , the strongest sinew , next the bound of nature and conscience , wherby the members are tyed to the head , and the head againe to the members , and the members knit among themselues : for the Pope then to promise his Maiesty security , and yet by this meanes to withdraw the hearts of his Subiects from their naturall allegeance , is , as if a man should promise secure passage ouer a Riuer , and yet pull downe the bridge , or take away the boats which serue for that passage . His Maiestie on the other side , hath declared the Pope to be Antichrist , in his opinion , and can hee expect honour or securitie from Antichrist , who hath hitherto depended on none but CHRIST ? he may also be pleased to remember what securitie the two last Henries of France receiued from him : Lastly if the Powder-treason were vndertaken without the Popes priuitie , how can hee secure his Maiestie from the like ? except hee can diue into the secrets of mens harts , or haue the art to foresee things to come , or to charme the deuils in hell : God defend vs from such securitie , which hath the face of a man , but the teeth of a Lyon , which first lulles vs asleepe , and then driues a naile into our heads . My conclusion of this point shall bee , that common speech of the Italians themselues , [ Acibo bis cocto , a medico indocto , a vento percolato , & inimico reconciliato , liberanos Domine ] from such honour , as is expected from a Romish reconciled enemie , Good Lord deliuer vs ; so that wee are verily perswaded , by yeelding your necke to the yoke of Rome , and perswading his Maiestie and his Subiects to doe the like , you haue disclosed your hypocrisie , violated your oath , disgraced your nation , stained your profession , forsaken your duetie to your Soueraigne , your respect to his Nobles , and loue to his Commons and Clergy ; and not onely so , but aswell by your example as exhortations , endeuoured what in you lay , by wounding euery particular member , vtterly to ruine the whole body both of Church and Common-wealth , from such Phisitians , Good Lord deliuer vs. B. C. 46. But that I must trust to , when all the rest will faile mee , is the seruice of God , and the sauing of my soule in the vnitie of that Church , which was founded by Christ himselfe , and shall continue vntill his Comming againe , wherein all the Saints of God haue serued him on earth , and doe enioy him in heauen : without which Catholike Church , there is no Communion of Saints , no 1 forgiuenesse of sinnes , no hope of resurrection vnto life euerlasting : I beseech your Maiestie let not Caluins Ecclesia Praedestinatorum deceiue you ; it may serue a Turke as well as a Christian ; it hath no faith but opinion , no hope but pres●mption , no charitie but lust , no faith but a fancie , no God but an Idoll ; for Deus est omnibus religionibus commune nomen Aug. Ep. All religions in the world , begin the Creed with I beleeue in God ; But homini extra ecclesiam , Religio sua , est cultus phantasmatum suorum , and error suus , est Deus suus , as Saint Augustine affirmeth . G. H. 46. It seemes then , you trusted little to the effectuating of these idle phantasticall proiects , whereabout you haue made so much adoe , and so many vaine flourishes , and indeed your confidence could not bee so little , as you had little reason to bee confident they should take effect . That Church which was founded by Christ himselfe , and shall continue vntill his comming again , wherinal the Saints of God haue serued him on earth , and do enioy him in heauen , without which there is no communion of Saints , no forgiuenes of sinnes , no hope of resurrection vnto life euerlasting , is indeed the true Catholike , but not the Rom. Church , it being founded by Christ before his Comming in the flesh , and shall continue vntill his comming againe , but not as tied to any certaine place : in it all the Saints of God serued him on earth , as the Patriarches , and Prophets , who liued , some of them before the foundation of Rome : without it there is no Communion of Saints , no forgiuenesse of sinnes , no resurection vnto life euerlasting , which no doubt by Gods mercies , and Christes merits would still remaine , though Rome were turned into ashes and the Pope into nothing : howbeit as a late writer hath well obserued [ ignorance is now become generally so powerfull a tyrant , as it hath set true Philosoiphie , Physicke , and Diuinitie , in a pillorie , and witten ouer the first , Contra negantem principia , ouer the second , virtusspecifica , and ouer the third , Ecclesia Romana , making it the onely market , or rather Monople , both for deuotion and saluation . ] That there is a visible Church , in which the Elect and Reprobate are blended together , in the outward profession of supernaturall verities , and the precious meanes of saluation , nay in the illumination of the minde , and sundrie inward graces , Caluine denieth not ; but that none are true and liuely members of the mysticall body of CHRIST , which hee hath ransomed with his blood , and doeth quicken and formalize with his Spirit , and will finally crowne with eternall blisse , saue the Congregation or Church of the first borne , whose names are written in heauen , hee truely affirmeth : And if Caluin deceiue vs herein , so doeth S. Augustine too , who in his third booke of Christian doctrine , and 32. Chapter , disputing against Ticonius , who had called the mysticall bodie of CHRIST , ( which is most properly , and principally the Church ) a body bipartie , as including both good and bad , vseth these wordes , [ Non ita debuit appellari , non enim reuera Domini corpus est , quod cum illo non erit in aeternum : It ought not so to haue beene called , in as much as it is not truely the bodie of CHRIST , which shall not euerlastingly bee with him ] nay , not onely Caluin and Augustine deceiue vs , but S. Paul in the fourth to the Ephesians , the fifteenth and sixteenth verses : and againe in the fift Chapter of the same Epistle , the 25. and 26. verses : but for the better clearing of this point , wee must conceiue , that the Elect , or Predestinate of God , are of two sorts , some elect onely , and not yet called , some both elect and called : of the latter there is no question , but they are the principall parts of the Church of God ; and touching the former , they are not actually in the Church , but onely potentially in Gods prescience and predestination , who hath purposed that they shall bee , and knoweth that they will bee : when wee say then , that none but the Elect of God are of the Church of God , wee meane not , that others are not at all , nor in any sort of the Church , but that they are not fully and finally of the speciall number of them , who pertake of the most perfect worke , force , and vertue of that sauing grace , whereof that Church is the onely dispenser . Neither can this Church serue a Turkes turne aswell as a Christians , for whom he did predestinate , them also hee called ; and whom hee called , them also hee iustified ; and whom hee iustified , them also hee glorified ; since then hee neither calls , nor iustifies Turkes , wee are sure they cannot be of the company of the predestinate : But his Maiestie himselfe ( I now remember ) well concluded this point , at the conference at Hampton Court , and therefore wee neede not feare his being deceiued in iudgement ; his determination is , that [ wee should iudge of our Predestination , not so much descendendo , by prying into Gods secret counsell , as ascendendo by searching our owne hearts ; the sincerity of our owne hearts , being as it were , the counterpane of Gods eternall decree , locked vp in the Cabinet of his counsell ; ] and therefore the Apostle in the 2. to Tim. and the 2. ioynes them both together : The foundation of God ( saith hee ) remaineth sure , and hath this seale , The Lord knoweth who are his : there is the Instrument sealed on Gods part ; the Counterpane on ours instantly followes : and [ let euery one that calleth on the Name of CHRIST , depart from iniquitie . ] So that the way to assure our selues that wee are in the number of those that are sealed to life , is to call on the name of CHRIST , in our profession , and depart from iniquitie , in our conuersation ; the one is required in our life , and the other in our beliefe . Neither is the faith of such beleeuers , an opinion , or fancie , but the ground of things which are hoped for , and the euidence of things which are not seene , and a shield to quench all such fiery and venemous dartes ; nor is their hope , a presumption ; but a sure anchor against despaire , nor their charitie , lust ; but the loue of their neighbours , as of themselues ; nor their God , an idole ; but that Lord , who hath reuealed himselfe vnto vs in his word ; whereas on the other side , we may iustly say , that the Popes Ecclesia malignantium , may more easily serue a Turke , her Religion being rebellion , & her practice , murthering of soules and bodies , ( as it acknowledged in the 1 publike prayers of our Church , ) her faith beeing but wauering , and full of irresolution , her hope a balancing and estimation of her owne merit , her charity an ostentation of workes , no God so powerfull with her , and beneficiall vnto her as the Pope and the Masse . We know that all religions begin their Creed with I beleeue in God , but none haue lesse reason then they , who beleeue in him in generall , without particular application ; and for S. Augustines testimonies , that to an heretike , the entertainement and imbracing of his fantasies is his religion , I demand which is more likely to build his religion on fantasie● , either he who depends meerely on the written word of God , or hee that equals his owne inuentions thereunto ? B. C. 47. I haue more things to write , but the haste of answering your Maiesties commandement signified to me by S ir Thomas Lake his letters , haue made mee commit many faults in writing this very suddenly , for which I craue pardon , and cut of the rest : but for my returning into England , I can answere none otherwise but thus ; I haue sent you my soule in this treatise , and if it may finde entertainement and passage , my body shall quickely follow after , and if not , I pray God I send my 1 soule to heauen , and my body to the graue as soone as may be : In the meane time I will reioyce in nothing , but onely in the Crosse of CHRIST , which is the glory of your Crowne , and therefore I will triumph therein , not as being gone from you to your aduersary , but as being gone before you to your Mother , where I desire , and hope for euer to continue . Your MAIESTIES True seruant , and 2 Beadesman , Beniamin Carier . G. H. 47. S. Iohn concludes his Epistle to Gaius , I haue many things to write , and Mr. Doctor his to his Maiestie , I haue more things to write , but S. Iohn trusts to come shortly after , and speake with him mouth to mouth , but Mr. Doctour will not promise that , except he be first assured his Letter may finde entertainment , which as I heare was very slender , and no marueile then he hasted not after . S. Iohn craued not pardon for his faults , which we make the marke of an * Apocryphal writer , but M. Doctor doth , and that very deseruedly , in as much as he chose rather with 1 Albinus to craue pardon for his faults committed , then not to commit them , and whereas he imputes his faults to his sudden writing , in imitation belike of Campian , therein he addes another fault to his former , in as much as a great part of this was written long before his Maiesties command came to his hands , partly in a Latine Epistle to Mr. Casaubon , and partly in an English letter to an honourable person in Court , and yet for any great matter is in it , in my iudgment it needed no long deliberation ; as it was suddenly written ; ( if it were so ) so may it somewhat mooue a man of a suddaine apprehension , but surely the grauer and wiser sort I thinke , it will little affect . Lastly , for your returne into England , you can make none other answere ( you say ) then this , that you haue sent your soule in this treatise , and if it may finde passage , your body shall follow after : while you were here , your body was with vs , but your soule with them , for , anima est non vbi animat , sed vbi amat , and your selfe in your Common place booke maintaine , that a man may liue among heretikes or Schismatikes , not yeelding outward obedience to the Church , and yet liue in the State of grace , if his soule be vnited to the Church in the vnderstanding by faith , and by charity in the will , conditionally he withhold himselfe from such outward obedience , not for priuate respects , but for the 2 publike aduantage of the Church : As your soule then was with them , when your body was with vs , so your body being with them , your soule was then busie working here with vs , but for their purposes ; and sure except you altered your opinions set downe in this treatise , ( and I haue cause to feare you entertained worse , dying 3 among the Iesuits ) better you should stay there , both in body and soule , or send your soule out of your body , and your body to the graue , as in Gods prouidence you haue done , then to returne to infect that Countrey and Church , in which you were borne and bred , and baptized , which as you professed in your last Sermon before his Maiesty , and in writings which I haue to shew vnder your owne hand , might iustly contend with any Church in the world , for purity of doctrine . But it seemes you had forgotten ( being but a nouice in that doctrine ) you were to passe by Purgatory before you came to heauen , except you supposed the Spaw waters had sufficiently purged you , or else you presumed farre vpon the merit of your profound demonstrations , as if thereby you needed not De profundis to be sung , nor Masse to be said for your deliuerance from thence , but that you must presently iumpe into heauen : I durst warrant , the Iesuits , among whom you died , did not esteem , you such a Saint . Indeed Castellanus who made the funerall oration vpon Francis the 1. the French King , was excepted against , and accused by the Sorbonists for saying , That he doubted not , but the Kings soule was in heauen ; but his purgation was made by Mendoza , that he thought he called by Purgatorie in passing , but being as he was of a stirring disposition , hee made no stay there ; but I thinke M. Doctor , who offers to vndertake the iustifying of all Romish doctrine , was not of this opinion : We teach with S. Iohn , that [ * Blessed are the dead which die in the Lord , for they rest from their labours . ] But M. Doctor should haue remembred that the Church of Rome teacheth with Virgil , ( whose authority Bellarmine solemnly quoteth to that purpose ) That the soules of the most iust ( except they die by Martyrdome , or presently after Baptisme , or doe some notable Meritorious worke ( as for the purpose ; the killing of a King whom that Church shall iudge a Tyrant ) are all to bee scoured in the flames of Purgatory fire , before they enter into heauen . ] But in the meane time , you say , you will reioyce in nothing but onely in the Crosse of Christ , which is the glory of his Maiesties Crowne ; where , * if by the Crosse of Christ you vnderstand , as S. Paul did , Christ Crucified , you do well , hee being indeed , not only the Glory of his Maiesties Crowne , but the Crowne of his and our glory ; but if the materiall Crosse , or a painted or carued Crucifix , this could bring but a shadow of ioy to you , and of glory to his Maiesties Crowne . Lastly , you conclude , that you are not gone from his Maiestie to his aduersaries , but before him to his Mother : For the first of which I demaund , who his Maiestie shall account for his aduersaries , but those who condemne such Romane Catholikes , 4 censuring their Books , and commaunding them to purge themselues , who onely maintaine his Ciuill power in Temporall affaires , and restraine his subiects from taking the Oath of meere naturall Allegeance , which in effect is all one as if they absolued them from that Oath being taken , and consequently incouraged them to rebellion ? For the second part of your conclusion , we doubt not but his Maiesties Mother might find mercie , knowing no better religion , then that in which shee was borne and bred , when such Apostates , as our of discontent , or for temporall respects , forsake a knowen trueth , which they haue preached , in which they were baptized , to which they haue subscribed , shall finde heauen gates shut against them . But wee * iudge nothing before the time , vntill the Lord come , who will lighten things that are in darkenesse , and make the counsels of the heart manifest : and then shall euery man haue praise of God : Who so confirme vs , in that we are right , and reforme vs , in that we are amisse , that passing through things temporall , wee may not finally lose eternall : Now prayse and honour , and glory , and power , bee vnto him that sitteth vpon the throne , and vnto the Lamhe for euermore . B. C. Multum incola fuit anima mea cum his qui oderunt pacem ; eram pacificus cum loquebar illis , impugnabunt me gratis . Psal. 119. vers . 5 , 6. G. H. The wordes of his mouth were smoother then butter , but warre was in his heart : his words were softer then oyle , yet were they drawen swords . Psal. 55. 21. AN ANSWERE TO THE MATERIALL POINTS of a second Letter of Dr. Cariers , written also from Leige , to his friends heere in ENGLAND . WHen I had almost finished my former answere to the Doctors Letter to his Maiestie , another Letter of his , dated also from Leig● , and directed to his friends in England , came to mine hands ; wherunto are added , certaine collections found in his Closet , made by him ( as it is thought saith the Publisher ) of the miserable endes of such as haue impugned the Catholike Church : to which is also annexed a briefe exhortation to perseuere constantly in the sayd Catholike Church , what opposition soeuer may occurre : and lastly , a few examples of the admirable felicitie of such as haue defended the same Church . First then for the Letter , I must confesse , I expected from Mr. Dr. some piece of greater value , considering himselfe had promised vs in the last Section of his first chapter , particularly to iustifie and make plaine frō point to point the Religion at this day practised and prescribed by the Church of Rome ; & Pelitier for him , that hauing consigned his writings into the hands of one of his friends , wee should shortly haue that happinesse , as to see them published , to the ioy and comfort of Catholikes , and the edification of those whom hee had forsaken : But at last we haue receiued for payment , in ful satisfaction of the whole debt ( as I conceiue ) this Letter , with the appertenances ; which I would haue set downe intire as I found it , ( the very sight of it being confutation sufficient ; ) but that I should haue done the Printer iniury in staying his presse , and withall haue raised my booke to a bulk , too far exceeding my purpose ; and it may be haue deceiued the reader too , in offring that to his view , which he would haue iudged scarce worth the reprinting . In his entrance , after his verball flourishes , and the repetition of that which hath already been answered , more then once , if any way materiall ; hee settles at length vpon nine Propositions , the very marrow and pi●h of all his Letter , all tending to draw what hee might from the authority of Scriptures , and to cast it vpon the Church , that is in his language , the Romish Clergie , as afterwards hee expresses himselfe ; I will examine the propsitions as they lie in order . B. C. 1. That our Sauiour did leaue nothing in writing , but taught his Religion to his Apostles by word of mouth . G. H. 1. Doubtlesse our Sauiour was not of that Polish Cardinals minde , who thought it had beene better for the Church , had there beene no Scripture extant at all : for though himselfe left nothing in writing touching his Religion , yet by the Scriptures alone hee proues himselfe to be the Messias in his conferences , his Sermons , his disputations : with it hee informes the ignorant , confirmes the weake , instructs his Disciples , confutes the Pharisees , puts the Sadduces to silence , and the diuell to fl●ght . Not a booke of Moses , and scarce a Prophet but hee either quotes some passages from him , or at least alludes to some in him , specially that of the Psalmes and the Prophet Esay . Nay , in the 24. of St. Luke , it is said , hee proued his passion and resurrection from Moses , and all the Prophets . Though it were hee that spake to the Patriarches , in dreames , and visions , and Reuelations , yet hee mentions none of them for proofe , and except they were 〈◊〉 , much lesse traditions ; but his ordinarie questions and exh●rtations , and reprehensions are : How readest thou ? and haue yee not read ? and search the Scriptures , and yee erre not knowing the Scriptures , and for traditions he names them not but to reiect them . Secondly , it is acknowledged by the greatest Clerks , and chiefest pillars of the Church of Rome , that the Euangelists in writing their Gospels , and the Apostles their Epistles , were none other but the pens of a ready Writer , the Secretaries of their Lord and Master : now that which the Secretarie writes according to the direction and inditing of his Lord , more commonly is , & more iustly ought to be called the writing of the Lord then the Secretarie ; it is St. Augustines reason in the last Chapter of his first booke of the consent of the Euangelists . Cum Euangelistae ( saith hee ) & Apostoli scripserunt quae Deus ostendit & dixit , nequaquam dicendum est quod ipse non scripserit ; quicquid enim ille de suis factis & dictis nos legere voluit , hoc scribendum illis tanquam suis manibus imperauit . In as much as the Euangelists and Apostles wrote that which God manifested and spake , it cannot be said that himselfe wrote not ; for whatsoeuer his pleasure was wee should reade , touching his workes and words , that he gaue them in charge to write , as it had beene with his owne fingers . Thirdly , it is reported by Eusebius , lib. 1. cap. 13. that our Sauiour left in writing a letter to Abgarus King of Edessa , the copie whereof he there setteth downe at large , affirming the originall to haue bene kept among the publique Records of that Citie : but for mine owne part I must needs say , that if it bee not fained , I can not conceiue why it should not be receiued as canonicall . Fourthly and lastly , it may very well bee , that our Sauiour wrote nothing himselfe , in as much as those things which were to bee written , were testimonies concerning himselfe : for though it be true , in regard of his diuine authoritie , which hee deliuers in the eight of St. Iohns Gospel [ Though I beare record of my selfe , yet my Record is true ] Yet in regard of the apprehension of flesh and blood , it is as true which he hath in the fifth of the same Gospel , If I should beare witnesse of my selfe , my witnesse were not true . B. C. 2. That our Sauiour commanded not his Apostles to write his Religion but to teach it , Ite praedicate . G. H. 2. As if a man might not teach as well by his pen as his tongue , by writing as speaking ; nay , doctrine deliuered by writing , as it is conueyed more purely and certainely without mixture , arising from humane frailtie and corruption ; so it spreads farther and lasts longer , and if it degenerate , is more easily reformed . It is worthy to bee marked , which St. Luke hath in the Preface of his Gospel to that noble Theophilus : Hee confesseth , that he had beene instructed in the doctrine of Religion , yet hee thought to write vnto him from point to point , that hee might haue the certainety of those things , so that though hee had indifferent good knowledge before , yet writing the storie , was the meanes to beget certainety : so saith Dauid , This shall bee written for the generation to come . Neither to my remembrance doe I reade of any that forbad their followers to write , but onely the Pythagoreans and the Druides : Once wee are sure that it pleased Almighty God to countenance the writing of holy Scripture by his owne practice , in as much as hee wrote * the Decalogue , once and againe , in tables of stone : And as he led the way himselfe , so in expresse termes he commanded his seruants the Prophets to doe the like , * Moses , and Esay , and Ieremy , and Ezekiel , and Habacuk . Before the Law was written , what vniuersall apostasies there were from the true worship of God , the floud is a sufficient testimonie ; and after it was lost , though the Priesthood continued , what generall swaruings there were both of Prince and people , as well in maners as religion , appeares , 2. Chro. 34. What forbids vs then to thinke that our Sauiour in commanding his Apostles to teach all nations , should not by vertue of that command , as well giue them in charge to publish their doctrine by writing , as to deliuer it by word of mouth . Besides , whiles wee reade in the first of the Reuel . at the 11. verse , that he who was dead , and is aliue , commands Iohn to write those things which he saw in a booke ; and againe at the 19. verse , Write the things which thou hast seene , and the things which are , and the things which shall come hereafter . And againe in the second and third Chapters , in particular to the Angel of the Church of Ephesus write , to the Angel of the Church of Smyrna write , to the Angel of the Church of Pergamus write , to the Angel of the Church of Thyatira write , to the Angel of the Church of Sardis write , to the Angel of the Church of Philadelphia write , to the Angel of the Church of Laodicea write ; while ( I say ) we finde the charge of writing so often giuen to Iohn , and that by him who was dead and is aliue , I can neuer subscribe to the trueth of that Proposition , that our Sauiour commanded none of his Apostles to write , except I should denie S. Iohn to haue beene an Apostle , or our Sauiour to be vnderstood by him , who was dead and is aliue . B. C. 3. That of the twelue Apostles , seuen did leaue nothing at all in writing , but taught their Successours the Religion of Christ by word of mouth . G. H. 3. This Proposition supposeth the number of the Apostles to haue bene but twelue ; whereas Matthias made the thirteenth , and Paul the fourteenth , who proclaimes it in the front of the greatest part of his fourteene seuerall Epistles Paul an Apostle : But it may be Mr. Doctor will not vouchsafe him that name , because he wrote more then any of the Apostles . Secondly , in the fifteenth of the Actes , wee reade , that the Apostles met together in Councill , wrote Letters , the very tenour whereof there appeares ; neither can it be otherwise conceiued , but that the whole number of them , or at leastwise the greatest part was there assembled : So that to say , that seuen of them left nothing in writing , is both derogatorie from the authoritie of Scripture , and in it selfe vniustifiable . Thirdly it may very wel be , that seuen of them left nothing els but that Letter in writing ; not because they held it sufficient to teach only by word of mouth ( as Mr. Doctor would imply ) but because sixe of them had written , which how needfull it was they should performe , appeareth aswell by Saint * Paul , as Saint * Iude. Fourthly and lastly , though nothing of their writing bee come to our hands , yet it is not certaine whether they left nothing in writing ; since it is probable that Saint Paul wrote another Epistle to the * Corinth . which is now no where extant . B. C. 4. That Saint Marke , Saint Luke , and Saint Paul , were not of Christs company whiles he was vpon the earth , and therefore must needs learne their Religion of the Church before they wrote it . G. H. 4. Here I must confesse I could not but wonder what Mr. Dr. meant , if hee had read and beleeued Saint Pauls Epistle to the Galathians , in affirming that hee learned his Religion of the Church , whereas himselfe in the first and second Chapter of that Epistle , inforceth the contrary , with so many and so inuincible arguments , that they can not but instantly stop the mouth of any , who would offer to open it in defence of Mr. Doctours assertions . Now I certifie you brethren , ( saith hee ) that the Gospel which was preached of mee , was not after man , for neither receiued I it of man , neither was I taught it ; but by the Reuelation of Iesus Christ. Secondly for Saint Marke and Saint Luke , though they learned their Religion of the Church by hearing the Apostles , as the Apostles themselues did from Christ , by hearing and seeing him : yet doth it not follow but the former , as well as the latter , wrote by the instinct and direction of the holy Ghost : nay doubtlesse it were no lesse then impietie once to imagine the contrary : To which purpose the words of Bellarmine are worthy obseruation . * Vt vere dicitur Epistola principis quae à principe dictatur , etiamsi is qui eam scripsit antea sciebat quae scripturus erat : ita dicitur & immediatum Dei verbum quod scriptum est ab Euangelistis Deo inspirante & dirigente , licet scripserint ea quae viderant vel audierant : As that is truely sayed to be the Letter of a Prince which hee dictates , though hee who wrote knew before what he would write : So is it the immediate word of God which is written by the Euangelists ( God inspiring and directing them ) though they sawe and heard those things before which they wrote . Lastly for S. Luke , he learned not the actes of the Apostles which he wrote from the Church , himselfe being an actour in a chiefe part of them , and whereas Mr. Doctor affirmes , that he was not of Christs company whiles he was vpon the earth ; S●ella a Writer of the Church of Rome in his Enarrations vpon the 24. of S. Lukes Gospel , and the 13. verse , assures vs that graue Doctors ( by whome I take it hee meanes the Fathers ) were of opinion that S. Luke was one of those two Disciples , whom our Sauiour instructed as they were iournying to Emmaus . B. C. 5. That diuers others did write the Religion of Christ , as they did apprehend it , but their Gospels and Epistles were reiected by the Church , Luke 1. 1. G. H. 5. In the Primitiue Church a great part of the beleeuers , but specially their guides , were miraculously indued , as with other gifts ; so with a discerning spirit , and that not onely in differencing the sinnes and persons of men ; but iudging of their writings : so that though they wrote a trueth , touching the Christian religion , yet were they able to discerne whether that trueth were written , by speciall illumination and instinct of the same spirit , wherewith themselues were inspired : whereupon wee haue good reason to accept what they accepted as Canonicall , and as Apocryphall to reiect what they reiected : but for the present Church , though it should tenne thousand times reiect the whole , or any parcell of that written trueth which they accepted ; yea , though one from the dead , or an Angel from heauen should preach any other Gospel : yet ought wee rather to accurse then beleeue him ; notwithstanding the Church of Rome , as if she were inuested with equall or higher power , though indeede shee reiect no booke as Apocryphall , which that Church accepted as Canonical , yet doth she accept and impose diuers bookes as Canonicall , which that reiected as Apocryphall . B. C. 6. That at the day of iudgement there will be no writing to try true Religion from heresie ; but only the eternall trueth of Christ , in the soules of his Saints . G. H. 6. But that Eternall trueth of Christ in the soules of his Sain●s is the same and none other , then which is contained in the holy Scriptures : now the Gentiles indeed * in as much as they haue sinned without the Law , they shall also perish without the Law , that is without the Law written , saue onely in the tables of their hearts ; but the Iewes , in as much as they haue sinned in the Law , shall be iudged by the Law ( saith Saint Paul , ) and our Sauiour , * There is one that accuseth you , euen Moses in whom ye trust : whereby none other thing can bee vnderstood then the Law written by Moses . B. C. 7. That the Scriptures were written by men of the Church , admitted Canonicall by Councils of the Church , preserued from tyrants by the care of the Church , and euer vntill late expounded by the consent of the Church . G. H. 7. That the Scriptures were written by men of the Church , we confesse ; yet so , as withall it cannot bee denied , but those holy men wrote as they were moued by the holy Ghost : We also confesse ; that they were admitted Canonicall , by the Councils of the Church , that is declared , not made to bee so : and likewise that hitherto they haue been preserued by the care of the Church , which therefore is called , * The pillar and ground of trueth ; neither ought they to be expounded , but by the consent of the Church , if wee speake of exposition to bee publikely allowed and receiued , touching fundamentall points ; otherwise both Caietane , and Andradius , and Iansenius , and Maldonat , and diuers others of the Church of Rome , in sundrie places professe , that they rest not satisfied in any interpretation giuen by the Fathers , but preferre either their owne , or some other found out in this age : So that if Mr. Doctor by the Church , vnderstand the Fathers , wee haue no reason to barre our selues of that liberty , which the chiefe Doctors of the Church of Rome , both challenge as due , and practice as needfull ; yet so , as wee vse that libertie with moderation and sobrietie , the people submitting their iudgements to their Pastours , and the Pastours in seuerall to their bodie vnited , or represented : where no very cleare and manifest reason appeareth to the contrary . B. C. 8. How fewe men are able to reade , and expound Scriptures any way , and whether it be not easier to beleeue the Church , then to beleeue a few priuate men , that say they can expound Scriptures better then the Church . G. H. 8. If wee should follow the rules and practise of the Church of Rome , fewer would bee able either to expound or reade the Scriptures then now are . Espencaeus , a Dr. of the Sorbon , witnesseth , that hee was told by an Italian Bishop , that his Countreymen were terrified from reading the Scriptures , lest they should become herettikes ; but the Doctor demaunding what Arte they then professed ? why quoth the Bishop , both the Lawes , but specially the Canon : And Robert Stephens demanding some of the Doctors of the Sorbon , in what place some passage of the New Testament was written ? they answered , that they had read it in Hierome , or the decrees : but for the New Testament , they were ignorant what it was ; nay one of them was wont to sweare by the light , that hee wondered yong men talked so much of the New Testament , himselfe being fifty yeeres old before he vnderstood so much as what it meant : and if such blinde guides leade the blinde , what marueile if both fall into the ditch . Now for beleeuing priuate men , I would faine know how the common people in their Church , come to know the exposition of the Church , or the Church it selfe , but by the information of priuate men : And if any of ours preferre their owne iudgement before the current opinion ( which I suppose Mr. Doctor meanes by the exposition of the Church ) I haue shewed before vpon what ground they doe it , and that therein they doe no more then those very Romish Diuines , who complaine most of them . B. C. 9. That all sorts of heretikes haue alwaies boasted of the Scriptures , and despised the Church . G. H. 9. Though the deuill falsly alleaged Scripture , yet our SAVIOVR thought it no sufficient reason to forbeare the alleaging of it ; and though the Pharises pretended the authoritie of the Church , yet hee imbraced not their corrupt glosses , leauing vs an example in both to follow his steps . Vpon these Propositions , Mr. Doctour inferreth , that the onely way to finde the true religion of CHRIST , is to enquire which is the true Church of CHRIST ; now to knowe the Church ( saith he ) our Sauiour did found , we must obserue that this word doth signifie diuerse things , sometimes the House of Gods seruice , sometimes the Congregation of all those that are Baptized , and sometimes the Clergie or Spiritualtie ; and in this sence alone our Sauiour founded a Church when hee did call and send his Apostles , and gaue them the same power , which himselfe as man had receiued of his Father . Then to know which is the true Church ( saith he ) we must inquire which is the Clergie that was founded by CHRIST , and continueth in the Vnitie of the Church by perpetuall Succession from the Apostles , and so from CHRIST himselfe : And for certaine resolution thereof , he referreth vs to three arguments , as he calleth them infallible , whereof the first is , Th● report of Chronicles and Histories ; The second is , The Vniuersalitie , Antiquitie , and consent of doctrine , taught in the true Church , and The varietie , noueltie , and repugnancie taught in Schisme : And herein you may inquire ( saith hee ) of the most learned and most honest to informe you : The thirde is , The testimonie of Scriptures of the olde and new Testament . For answere to this inference , I would willingly learne where Mr. Doctour learned those acceptions of the Church ; once I am sure he taketh it otherwise then it is taken in holy Scripture ; and againe in holy Scriptures it is taken otherwise then he taketh it : Neither are his two former meanes for the finding out of the Church more iustifiable , then his acceptions of the Church ; whereof the first is the report of Chronicles ; but to grant that all Chronicles spake as the Pope would haue them , yet were all this but humane testimony , a sufficient inducement to moue , but no sufficient ground for the conscience to build vpon . For the proofe of his second reason he refers his reader to the information of the most learned and most honest . But how if as learned and more honest informe him , and that more truely to the contrary ? Here needes a farther inquirie ; which Mr. Doctor foreseeing , at length sends vs to the Scripture as being forced with vs , to confesse that the last resolution , and onely infallible stay of the Christian soule in search both of the trueth it selfe , and consequently of the true Church , professing and publishing that truth , must n●cessarily rest vpon that and nothing else . ¶ A briefe Answere to the other collections annexed to the Doctors last Letter . NOw for those other Collections which are added to his Letter , as the Publisher makes a doubt , whether they were made by him or no , so I make no doubt , if hee had liued , hee would neuer haue suffered them to come to the light in such sort , as now they are published : Notwithstanding , because they appeare in his name , I held it not amisse to make some answere vnto them : First then , for the miserable ends of such as haue opposed the Catholike Church ; hee brings the example of Iudas , and Caiphas , and Annas , and the three Herods , and Pontius Pilate , and Nero , and Domitian , and Pharaoh , and Haman , and Iezebel , and Antiochus , and Ieroboam , and a number of like stuffe : After he comes to Arch-heretikes , translating word for word what Bellarmine thereof hath obserued in his 17. Chapter , of the notes of the Church : where hee makes the 14. note to bee , Infaelix exitus seu finis eorum qui Ecclesiam oppugnant , The vnhappy end of such as haue oppugned the Church , the greatest part of which ( excepting those last which Maister Doctor is pleased to call the monsters of our age , ) we condemne as farre foorth as the Doctor did , or Bellarmin doth . But for the fabulous narration of their ends , wee may truely say , that Bellarmine as vniustly voucheth the authoritie of Cochlaeus , and Bolsecke , as the Doctor suppresseth Bellarmines . For what law humane or diuine , ciuill or naturall , admitteth a mans mortall and sworne enemie to bee witnesse against him ? Yet such was Cochlaeus vnto Luther , and Zuinglius , and Bolseck vnto Caluin : who both as they deadly hated them for their religion , ( as the Samaritanes did the Iewes ) so had Bolseck a particular grudge against Caluin , for that hee opposed himselfe so vehemently against his wicked errours , and seditious practices in Geneua , as hee procured his banishment from thence : which mooued him to seeke this base kinde of reuenge vpon him , the rather being a requested and solicited thereunto , ( as hee saith himselfe ) by very many his Lords and friends ; as hoping by the defamation of Caluin , to recouer his lost credit with them : And as being their malicious enemies , they would not report the trueth , so not being present at their endes , they could not haue certaine knowledge thereof ; at leastwise their testimonie cannot with any reasonable or indifferent mindes counterpoise the euidence of those worthy men , who were eye-witnesses , and present with them : For Pluris est oculatus testis vnus , quàm auriti decem : One eye-witnesse is of more force then tenne eare-witnesses : and , it is great folly ( b saith Bellarmine ) to beleeue the reports of them that were not present , rather then of them that were present : But let vs particularly , and seuerally , but briefly examine their slanders . Luther ( saith the Doctor , out of the Cardinall , and the Cardinall himselfe out of Cochlaeus ) died suddenly : for hauing supped very delicately and pleasantly , being in perfect health , and hauing delighted all his companie with merrie conceits , the same night hee died . But c Tho. Bozius , a Friar of the new Oratory order , reporteth otherwise , and that vpon the testimonie of one that then was Luthers seruant , but since ( as hee saith ) became theirs in religion ; namely , that hee hanged himselfe , and that foorthwith an oath was taken of all that were present , not to publish it for the honour ( as they sayd ) of the Gospell : Thus they agree not in their tales , no more then the false witnesses did against Christ : Neither is it strange , that Cochlaeus and Bozius deuise such slanders against him since his death , seeing euen in his life time they spared not to publish in Print , d that he was dead , and when hee was laid into his graue , there was a terrible noyse heard , as if the foundations of the earth had been shaken , to the affrightment of all , & the night after there was yet a more fearefull noise heard about his graue , which made the people run thither all amazed , but opening it , they could find nor bodie , nor bones , nor clothes , onely they smelt a horrible stinke of brimstone . This Luther himselfe read , and in detestation of such blasphemie , publikely protested against it ; as not long since Beza did , being handled in like maner : But returne wee vnto Cochlaeus : First , where he sayth , that the supper before hee died hee was in perfect health , they who knew him better , tell vs , that before he came to Islib , ( whither hee was sent for by the Earles of Mansfield , to compose a controuersie betweene them ) hee was very sickly , and that hee had a long time been troubled with oppression of humors in the orifice of his stomacke . Secondly , where hee sayth , that hee supped delicately and pleasantly , and delighted all his company with merrie conceits ; surely they that were present testifie , that his merry conceits were but holy and religious discourses ; for being demaunded at supper time , Whether in that eternall life wee should know one another , hee answered affirmatiuely , and confirmed the same by testimonie of Scripture : according as e Thuanus also , a Papist by profession , but of more authoritie then an hundred Cochlaeusses , doth relate . Lastly , where hee sayth , that hee died suddenly the same night : neither died he the same night , but the next day betwixt 8. and 9. of the clocke , nor yet suddenly , for perceiuing his sicknesse to grow vpon him , and feeling within him the summons of death , hee gaue many sweete and comfortable exhortations to them that were about him , and commended himselfe vnto God in a most heauenly and effectuall prayer , and so quietly , and by little and little died . And these things are testified by Iustus Ionas , who attended him euen vnto the last gaspe , and by Melancthon , and others of his best acquaintance : Whereunto I adde out of f Thuanus , that as in his life time hee was dearely beloued , so in his death could they not be drawen from his loue : For they of Mansfield were earnest , that his bodie might be buried amongst them , in as much as there he was borne : but Io. Frederick preuailed so farre by his authoritie , that his bodie was caried backe to Wittenberg , and there honourably interred : So that though Papists burst for spight and enuie , it could not be without the finger of God , that so meane a man as Luther , so boldly opposing himselfe against the Pope , ( whom Kings and Emperours at that time durst not without great danger resist ) yet liued so long , died so peaceablie , and was buried so honourably . The next is Zuinglius , who as the Doctor , out of the same Cochlaeus saith , was slaine in warre , which he made against the Catholikes . Indeede that Zuinglius was slaine in the fielde , neither is , nor can bee denied : but I would faine learne why so to die should be counted an vnhappie ende , or why that , which as seemes to mee , is an argument of his courage and magnanimitie , should bee esteemed an argument of heresie . g If you say hee was slaine fighting against Catholikes : so haue many of your Romish Catholikes fighting against Protestants : And if Costers defence of Sanders , who was slaine in Ireland be sufficient , He , with other Priests aided the armie in those things which concerne the conscience , Quid hic mali ? What euil is herein ? The same Apologie may I farre more iustly make for Zuinglius : He according to the laudable custome of that countrey , went as a Preacher with the armie , Quid hic mali ? What euill is herein ? Onely here lies the difference , that Sanders like a traitour and rebell fighting against his Prince and Countrey , perished miserably : but Zuinglius like a good Patriot , fighting in defence of his Countrey , died valiantly : Of whose innocencie therein , God himselfe , as to mee it seemes , hath giuen this testimonie , that when his enemies hauing found his bodie , threw it into the fire to burne it , yet his heart could neuer be consumed , as h Thuanus witnesseth . The thirde is Oecolampadius , of whom vpon the same authoritie the Dr. saith , that going to bed in good health one night , he was found dead by his wife in the morning . Vnto this fiction of Cochlaeus , it shal suffice to oppose the true report of i Simō Grynaeus , who ( with tenne other at least , all of them very credible men ) was an eye-witnesse , and present at his death : He therefore reporteth that he kept his bed sixteene dayes before his death : that in the meane season hee often exhorted them that were about him to prayer , and to die constantly for the Name of CHRIST , professing that hee went cheerefully to the Tribunall of CHRIST . The last night of his life , demaunding of a friend that came to visite him , what newes ? and he answering , None , Then ( quoth he ) can I tell you newes ; Shortly shall I be with the Lord IESVS : Soone after one asking whether the light did not trouble him ? Here , quoth he laying his hand on his breast , is store of light : After this , as well as his tongue could vtter it , he repeated that excellent praier of Dauid for Remission of sinnes , and that entirely from the beginning vnto the end , fetching withall many deepe grones from the bottome of his heart : Then pawsing a while he said , CHRIST IESV saue mee , which was his very last speech : And so hee died with much peace and tranquilitie of mind : Thus farre Grynaeus . The fourth is Carolostadius , whom , saith the Dr. the Ministers of Bazil write to haue beene killed of a Diuell , in their Epistle of the death of Carolostadius . It cannot be denyed but that Carolostadius was a man ful of many imperfections , and suspected to incline too much vnto Anabaptisme : yet is this report a meere fiction , and the Epistle out of which it is vouched , a very counterfeit , as diuers haue written , which Fr. Iunius saith , he vnderstood by sufficient men , who were present at his death . The last is Iohn Caluin who ( saith the Dr. ) was eaten and consumed with wormes , and dyed as did Antiochus , Hunery , Maximinus , &c. as witnesseth Hieron . Bolseck in his life ; who also addeth that he died blaspheming , cursing , & inuocating diuels . A feareful and vnhappy end indeed , if it were true , and worthy of an Ar●h-heretike ; but if false ( as I am perswaded , euen to the Doctors and Bellarmines conscience it was , when they so wrote ) a most hellish slander . Thuanus a man of their owne side reiects it as a meere ●able ; for hee k reports , that hauing for the space of full seauen yeeres fought with diuers diseases and griefes , yet was he therefore neuer a whit lesse diligent in his function , nor absteined from continuall writing , and at length died of the disease called the difficulty of breathing . Nay Genebrard though farre from the ingenuitie of Thuanus , and one that raileth most impotently vpon Caluin , yet durst not charge him herewith , and was ashamed to defile his Chronicle with such an impudent lie . Fr. Iunius saith , that hee was at Geneua then wen Caluin dyed , yet neither saw nor heard , nor knew , nor perceiued any such thing , nor so much as euer dreamed of any such matter : In a word , he was visited in his sickenesse by sundrie excellent personages , by the Syndicks of the Citie , by the Ministers , by others , all which are witnesses of the sickenesse whereof hee dyed . And l Theod. Beza , who faithfully wrote his life and death , whereof ( as he saith ) hee had beene a spectator sixteene yeeres together , testifieth that in him was proposed vnto all , a most excellent patterne of Christian both life and death , which ( saith he ) is as easie to calumniate , as it is hard to imitate . These things considered , I referre mee now vnto the Readers indifferencie , whether is more worthy of credite , the whole Citie of Geneua , and so many notable men present at his sicknesse and death , and testifying of his peaceable , holy , and Christian departure : or one Hieron . Bolseck , a Knight of the poste , twice banished , thrice a runagate , who of a Carmelite , became a Physitian , or rather a Quacksaluer , a sworne enemie to Caluin , one that had beene from Geneua more then ten yeeres together , and had sold his pen vnto his Lords and friends to defame Caluin . And thus much in defence of those men whom the Dr. termeth the Monsters of our age . Now although the vnhappy end of some particular men be no demonstratiue proofe , and scarce a coniecturall signe of the falshood of that religion which they professe , and that Church in which they make their last end : yet that it may appeare in requital of the Dr. or rather the Cardinal , how vnhappily some zealous persecutors of such , as haue forsaken fellowship with the Church of Rome , haue ended their liues , I could referre the Reader to a large Discourse touching that point toward the end of the second part of the Acts and Monuments , and also in Hassenmullerus , in the conclusion of his booke . Neither can the like iust exception bee taken against their euidences , as against that of Bolseck and Cochlaeus : But I will content my selfe with the testimonie of Thuanus , a professed member of that Church which Mr. Doctor cals Catholike ; yet such a one as besides his great paines and diligence in the search of trueth , had singular meanes for the finding of it out himselfe , being now President in the Court Parliament of Paris , where his father had bin Premier President before him : This man then m testifies , first of the Cardinall of S. Andrewes in Scotland , who condemned George Wiseheart vnto the fire , that standing at a window sumptuously set forth with cushions and hangings of silke to behold his execution , & George being exhorted when the fire began to burne to be of good courage : This flame indeed , answered hee , is painefull to my bodie , but it doth no whit dismay my minde ; but hee that now from aloft lookes downe so proudly vpon me , as arrogantly as now he sits ; so ignominiously , within these fewe dayes shall hee lie along , which soone after came to passe : for being miserably slaine , his dead body was in the open sight of all laide along in the same window , from whence he had so ioyfully beheld the burning of Wiseheart : And so the euent ( saith Thuanus ) verified his Prophecie . n Iohn Roman a Monke and cruell persecutor , inuented a new kind of torment for the persecuted ; he would draw vpon their legs , boots full of hote boiling grease , and then setting spurres vpon their heeles iestingly , would demand of them whether they were not sufficiently appointed for their iourney : But vnderstanding that a summons was granted out against him by the Parliament of Aix to answere for his cruelties , and that by the commandement of Francis the I ▪ hee fled vnto Auinion , where thinking himselfe safe from men , yet hee escaped not , ( saith Thuanus ) the vengeance of God ; For he was spoiled by his owne seruants of all that he had , and brought to extreme pouertie : his body also was so full of loathsome vlcers , that oftentimes he wisht for death , which yet he could not obtaine but after a long time , and horrible torments . o Oppeda another bloody persecutor , being called to answer for his more then barbarous cruelties , in the Parliament of Paris , by the appointment of the said King Francis , scaped indeed that danger by the commendation of the Guise , and together with his Collegues was restored vnto his former dignity ; neuerthelesse , soone after he was striken with horrible paines in his entrailes , wherewith he was a long time tormented , and at length in the mids of most cruell torments breathed forth his cruell soule , God ( saith Thuanus ) inflicting on him that iust punishment which the iudges exacted not , which though it were long in comming , yet fell the more heauily when it came . p Albaspineus when Protestants were brought forth to execution , aduised to stop their mouthes that they might not speake vnto the people : Not long after falling deepely in loue with a certaine woman , he fel withal out of his wits , and being strikē also with the lowzie disease , he died in most grieuous torments , his friends putting a bridle into his mouth to force him to receiue some sustenance , which yet he frantikely refused , hauing decreed to famish himselfe because of the vnsufferablenesse of his paines . q Ponsenatius another butcher , being fallen into great debt , hauing riotously wasted , both his owne patrimony , and his wiues dowry , vpon conscience of his wicked life , fell likewise mad ; whereupon despairing of his saluation , & being chained vp by his friends , with lamentable shrikings , and rending of himselfe , hee finished his life in extreme pouerty . Finally , Cardinall r Crescentius the Popes Agent in the Council of Trent , hauing spent much of the night in writing letters to the Pope , and at length rising from his chaire , he seemed to see a dog , which with huge iawes , firie eyes , and eares hanging downe to the ground , furiously came towards him , and by and by couched vnder the table ; then calling his seruants , and light being brought , when hee saw the dog no where appeare , he was astonished at it , and thereupon fell into many sad cogitations , and so into sicknesse , which he no sooner felt , but presently hee despaired of life , although his Physicians and friends gaue him good hope of recouery : At last being caried from thence to Verona , and euen at deaths dore , he would often call vpon them that attended him , to take heed of the dog , and to keepe him from comming vpon his bed : Thus farre out of Thuanus . To these may be added the miserable end of s Philip the II. King of Spaine , who though he had bene a chiefe pillar of the Romish Church , and a great enemy of the Protestants and their religion , yet died hee of the same disease which the Doctour out of Bellarmin ; and Bellarmine out of Cochaeus imputes to Caluin : As also the vnhappy endes of all those who were the chiefe plotters in the Massacre of France , Charles the IX . then King , the Queene Mother , Henry the third , then Duke of Aniou the Kings brother , and the Duke of Guise ; of which , Charles died wallowing in his owne blood , issuing out of all the conduits of his body : the Duke of Guise was suddenly slaine at Blois by Henries command , for griefe whereof the Queene Mother died within a few dayes , and in reuenge of the Guises death , not long after Henry himselfe was murdered by a Frier . Lastly to crie quittance also with the Dr. in regard of the ends of Luther , Zuinglius , Oecolampadius and Caluin , whom he counteth Arch-heretikes , and termeth Monsters : it may please him to remember , that sundry of the Bishops of Rome who haue bene very Antichrists , and by his owne Platina and t Genebrard , are called Monsters of men , haue had most fearefull and wretched ends : For some haue beene poisoned , some murdered by Anti-Popes , some haue died in prison . Iohn the XII . euen in the very act of adultery , was suddenly striken by the deuill ( saith u Turrecremata , ) and died without repentance , others that haue compacted with the deuill , haue bene caried away by him , and , not to reckon vp all that thus haue perished , seeing it would bee too tedious , fiftie Popes arow , being rather Apostatical then Apostolicall , and monsters of men , It is no marueile ( saith Genebrard , ) if they were so many in few yeeres , and died quickly . His last argument is the temporall prosperity of them which haue defended the Church : His examples are likewise a meere translation of Bellarmines 18th . Chapter of the notes of the Church : So that for answere thereunto , I might iustly referre the Reader to them who haue answered him , as also to my Replie to the fourth Section of M. Doctors second chapter of his Letter to his Maiesty : But I chuse rather to close vp the whole with his Maiesties words , in the latter end of his answer to Cardinall Perrons oration : History ; saith his Maiesty , and experience teach vs , that disunion with the Pope hath no whit impeached the prosperitie of kingdomes . Philip the faire reigned in peace and prosperity , notwithstanding his attempts vpon the Papall Sea. King Lewis the twelfth defeated in battell the troupes of Pope Iuly the second , and his alies , declared him falne from the Papacie , and caused Crowns to be stamped , wherin Rome is called Babylon ; yet neuerthelesse was loued and honoured of his subiects , who gaue him the title of Father of the people . Neuer did Great Britaine euer receiue so great blessings of God , nor enioyed so much peace and plentie , as since the time that Popes haue no more but the looking on and sent no more their Legats to gather the tribute of S. Peter , and that the Kings of England doe no longer homage vnto the Pope for their Crowne , and are no more lashed by Monkes . What was Holland , Zeland , and Frizeland , before that God lighted among them the torch of the Gospell , in comparison of the riches , and prosperitie wherein God hath aduanced them ? The Common wealth of Venice , doeth it enioy lesse peace and prosperity then before , since they haue taken from the Pope one of his swords , and haue shaken off his temporall power ? On the contrary side , the Kings of France , after they had giuen vnto the Popes all what they held in Italy , and the Countie of Auinion , haue againe receiued of them but course entertainmēt . Popes haue forged a donation of Constantine , to the end to deface the memory of the donation of Pepin , and Charlemaine : They haue troubled the State , banding themselues for the sons of Lewis the Courteous , against their owne father , whose life was an example of innocence : They haue skimmed the Realme of Money by infinite pillages , wherewith the Kings of France haue endeuoured to meete , by their pragmaticall sanction : They haue oftentimes interdicted the Realme , degraded their Kings , sollicited their neighbours to inuade the kingdome , stirred vp the people against the King , whence many troubles and parricides haue ensued . Rauilliac rendred this reason of his attempt , because , said hee , the King would make warre against God , inasmuch as hee would make warre against the Pope , and that the Pope was God : Which maketh mee to maruell how the Cardinall could alleage for example the late trou●l●s , during which France fell foule with the Pope , seeing that the Pope himselfe raised vp those troubles . If the Kings or people of France , hauing offended the Pope , God had otherwayes sent among them som● pestilence or famine , this might with some probabilitie haue been taken for a reuenge of the iniurie done vnto his Vicar ; but seeing the Pope himselfe hath caused these euils , it is not God who punisheth the iniuries done vnto the Pope , but the Pope who reuengeth himselfe , and which is worse , without receiuing any wrong : Whence it app●areth , that to exhort the Kingdome to maintaine vnion with the Pope , by the remembrance of the calamities past , is not to exhort them to loue the Pope , but to call to minde the euils which he hath caused , and to tremble at his thundrings , and conspiracies , which hurt those onely that feare them , and which haue drawen vpon my kingdome many blessings . Now if France haue had any prosperitie during the time that it well accorded with the Pope , this hath been because the Pope seeketh the amitie of those Princes that are in prosperitie , and which haue meanes to annoy him : Kings are not therefore in prosperitie because the Pope is vnited with them , but the Pope is vnited with them because they are in prosperitie : Euen as swallowes arriue in the spring , but make not the spring , so the Pope ioyneth himselfe to the prosperitie of kingdomes , but maketh not their prosperitie . But if there happen any disaster in a Kingdome , or any ciuill warre , which putteth an Estate in danger , the Pope vnder a shadow of hauing care of the saluation of soules , thrusteth himselfe into the quarrell , and runneth vnto the wracke to reape his profit thereby : And if a State change its Master , hee will that the new possessour , vnto whom hee hath giuen aide , hold the kingdome of his liberalitie ; but if the ancient possessour conquer his enemies , notwithstanding the Popes thundrings , then his Holinesse offers him all sorts of Indulgences , and out of his compassion receiueth him againe , whom hee was not able to destroy . Hitherto his Maiestie , then which nothing can bee spoken more fully and effectually to this purpose . For surely ( not to speake of the prosperitie of forraine countries , who haue broken off communion with the Roman Synagogue ) he is more then blind that cannot see , and too too enuious , that seeing will not acknowledge , how extraordinarily God hath blessed this our Realme with all kind of benedictions more then in former times , since it held the Pope to bee Antichrist , and Rome Babylon , and departed from them . x When the late Queene Elizabeth of blessed memorie vndertooke the protection of the Low-Countreys against so mightie a Prince as the King Catholike , all the world wondred at the greatnesse of her spirit , and the King of Sweden said , that so doing she had puld the Crowne from her owne head : yet so prosperous was she in all that she tooke in hand , so victorious in her w●rres , so beloued at home , so feared abroad , and in a word blessed with so continuall a course of happie successe in all things , euen to her liues end , that it hath forced euen from those , who almost hold it a sinne to giue the least commendation of Protestant Princes , an ingenuous and free acknowledgment thereof . [ A man may truely say of this Princesse ( saith y Florimond Raemond , otherwise a bitter enemie to these of our Religion , ) that excepting the matter of Religion , and for the world , she had as great glorie in her kingdome , continuing in all her affaires so well authorized , and carried matters with as great wisedome ▪ as any Prince that hath liued these many yeeres . ] But suppose we ( though we haue sufficiently proued it to be otherwise ) that the defenders of the Roman Sea haue had temporall prosperitie and felicitie , and that wee haue seldome thriued and prospered against them ; what would your Doctor hereupon inferre ? That therefore we should forsake the Church whereof we are members , and with him retire our selues into the bosome of the Romish Church , where temporall prosperitie and felicitie is to be found ? Indeede it may bee that this was the Doctors chiefest motiue vnto his Apostacie , and that perceiuing his ambitious hopes to quaile at home , hee would trie his fortunes there , where Abbeyes , and Bishoprickes , and perhappes also Cardinalshippes are promised to such , as with more diligence then others , negotiate for the Pope . But I would fa●e know of him how this agreeth with that which he saith elsewhere , that the Crosse is the most precious iewell of our Sauiour Christ , and that of this iewell hee alwayes giueth the greatest portion to his dearest friends : For if the dearest friends of Christ be those of whom the Church consisteth , and they haue the greatest portion of his Crosse , then is not temporall prosperitie and felicitie a note of your Church : and if it be , then is not the Crosse the portion thereof . But to conclude all , although * Pietie hauè the promise euen of this life , and the Church of God sometime abound in these worldly blessings , yet is it with condition of the Crosse , as God shall in his deepe wisedome thinke it fittest , and ●uch a blessing as euen the Church of the malignant may be , and euer hath been partaker of . For the * Sunne riseth , and the raine falleth indifferently vpon both : * And no man knoweth either loue or hatred by all that is before him . Yea euen the Iesuits of Rhemes on the place of Mathew before alledged confesse as much : We see ( say they ) that temporall prosperity of persons & countryes , is no signe of better men , or truer Religion ; but as z S. Austin saith , Temporall goods and euils are common both to the iust and wicked : which God therefore dispenseth in this sort , that neither we too greedily couet those goods which wee see the wicked haue , nor basely auoide those euils which light vpon the good . Wherfore all this discourse of the Dr. is impertinent and friuolous . As touching the Storie of Burden and his associates ( with which he concludes his vnsauorie collections ) how they went in Procession from Douer to Canterbury in dirision of Catholikes , and how grieuously God punished it vpon them , I hold it for no better then a meere Canterburie tale , or to speake in the Romish dialect , a godly fraud , or lie deuised for the aduantage of his holy Mother , such as is the baiting of Catholikes sewed vp in Beare-skins with Mastiues in Douer . And further answere then this I vouchsafe it not . Soli Deo immortali sit gloria . FINIS . Errata . THe Authour being farr● from the Presse whiles the Booke was in it ; the more faults in printing must needs escape , whereof the chiefe obserued are these : Pag. 22 and 23. the letters of reference in the Doctors text are mistaken . Pag. 47. lin . 6. marg . for , Chapt. 2 45. reade Chap. 1. Sect. 19. Pag. 59. lin . 27. for , Pa●ilian , read● Petilian . Pag. 72. lin . 17. for estate from , read● estate in her conceit from . Pag. 73. lin . 6. for was not more , reade was more . Pag. 99. the quotations are disorderly placed . Pag. 100. lin . 11. for of his booke , reade of his 5. booke . Pag. 109. lin . 17. for more that , reade more but that . Pag. 164. the marginall note to bee set against the 27. line . Pag. 191. lin . 33. for Stanley , reade Stucley . Pag. 197. lin . 32. f●r his owne , reade his owne neece . Pag. 219. lin . 12. marg . for is not , reade is . Pag. 235. marg . wants distance betwixt Suarez , and Beaumanoir . Pag. 256. lin . 2. marg . for your Preachers , read● our Preachers . Pag. 275. lin . 4. marg . for Monsieur Seruius , reade Monsieur Seruins . Pag. 277. lin . vl● . for alteration , reade Altercation . Pag. 279. lin . 35. for enuie , reade inueigh . Notes, typically marginal, from the original text Notes for div A02483-e10 * I cannot but marueile that M. Doctour in inueighing so much against that which hee cals the new religion should in quoting thereof forsake the old translation . Notes for div A02483-e170 1 Cap. 2. Sect. 41. 2 Cap. 2. Sect. 45. 3 Impia mysteria & instituta ad Caluini praescriptum a se suscepta & obseruata , etiam a subditis seruari mandauit , circa med . bull . 4 La charité que nous portons aux sieurs estats nos voisins & confederezfaisants profession de la mesme religion auecques nous . Declaration to●chant le faict de Conradus Vorstius , pag. 6. Messieurs les estats doncques estants non seulement nos alliez mais le principallion de nostre coniunction estant nostre vniformité en la vraye religion . pag. 40. Mais la religion dont moy & eux faisons profession n●a esté iugée ●n aucun concile ou nous ayons esté ouys : speaking of those of the reformed religion in France , desense du droit des Rois , pag. 82. Ce qu'●l dit que les heretiques de France , font leur profit de ceste diuision est fondée sur ceste proposition que ceux de la religion Christienne reformee cest a dire repurgée du papisme sont heretiques ce qui se prouuera quand vn aura fait vn autre euangile ou forgé vn au●re bible ▪ ib. p. 109 5 Cap. 1. Sect. 20. 6 Cap. 1. Sect. 13. 7 Cap. 2. Sect. 6. Notes for div A02483-e1310 1 Discours de la mort du Sieur Carter , &c. 2 Britannom . minist . lib. 3. cap. 5. part . 8. 3 This can ill be applyed to D. Car●●r , who often tooke the oath of Supremacie , & more often Recognized it in his prayer before his Sermons . 4 Pag. 220. Where among such famous Doctors as were conuerted lately to the Romish Religion hee reckons Dr. Bull for one . 5 See the late B. of Lincolnes answere to a namelesse Catholike , p. 115. 6 May 21. 1610 7 His Maiesty there speakes of the French King Henry the IV. 8 N●s● itaque idexp●ct●●ur a seren●ssimo Reg● , v● palam ●or am vniue● so mundo profiteatur s●met●● ad sidem cog● , non v●deo , quo modo a●imus Regius in t●m iusta 17a , & tanto per●●●lo suo & suorum , p●ssit ad corum par●es propius a●●edere . 9 See the relation of the state of religion in these Westerne parts which it were much to be wished , the Author himselfe would perfect and publish . 10 Britta●nom . 〈◊〉 pag. 324. Notes for div A02483-e2520 1 I can shew it in the Authors owne Letters , that he had a purpose of publishing it . 2 He hath now gotten more name and fame by running away from vs , then by any acte that euer hee did among vs. 3 The Credite he had in Court , was won by his hypocrisie . 4 He was like enough to aspire to higher preferment : but while he remained like himselfe , not like to attaine it . 5 What inti●ing baits could these be vnto him , who by his own acknowledgement , felt the state of his body such , that hee could not long enioy them . 6 The wauering was in his braine not in their opinions . 7 Hee professeth indeed that hee found a large opposition , betweene the new French , ( as he calleth it , ) and the old English : but betweene the English and the R●mish , none at all , or ●o small as it might easily be reconciled . Chap. 2. S●ct . 29. 8 Or rather a counterfeit light from him , who is transformed into an Angel of Light. 9 His owne relation shewes , how slowly he proceeded in this businesse , as being in hope of higher preferment , and yet in despaire of longer life . 10 Catholike Roman , I take to be as much as Kent and Christ●ndome . 11 Had Mr. Dr. done so , he had rested where he was . Notes for div A02483-e2920 Cap. 2. S●●t . 36. Notes for div A02483-e3490 1 You might haue named Scripture as well as art , but it seemes you purposely forbore it , lest you shou'd seeme a Caluinist . 2 In your 2. chap. & 21. Sect. you affirme the doctrine of the Church of Eng. to be that which is conteined in the cōmon prayer booke , and Church Catechisme , very nere agreeing with , or at least not contradicting the Church of Rome . 3 Had you brought any proofe from the Scriptures & ancient Fathers for the trueth of that Religion , which you call Cathol . you would haue thereby giuen vs some rea●on to thinke ●ou had indeed studied them . 4 Your reconc●liation of relig●ō was nothing else but a renouncing of the truth . 5 It is maruell you had not imparted ; knowledge by writing 6 Your place compelled you not to preach points of R●mish doctrine . 7 Catholike Religion is not hated in England , but the religion of pretended Catholikes is iustly restrained . 8 You might as fully and ●reely haue enioyed the pre●ence of our blessed Sauiour in the vnit●e of the English Church , as the R●mish . 9 How can there be a dayly oblation of that which himselfe offered once for all . Heb. 7. 27. & 9. 28. and 10. 10 10 When his Mai●sties reasons are answered why he should not bee already esteemed in the vnitie of the Catholike Church , prayer for his admission into it , will bee admitted . 11 Your due●ie would better haue appeared in writing somewhat in defence of his Maiesties writings . 12 Your auowed presence at the dayly oblation ( as you call it ) was a sufficient declaration of your reuolt . 13 How sufficiently either of these two bee shewed , I leaue it to the indifferent Reader to iudge . 14 I wonder that any hauing affiance in his Holiness● pardons , should desire his Ma●esties . 15 Hee is indeed likely to bee a faithfull seruant to his Maiestie , who flies to the tents , and pleads the cause of his sworne enemies . Notes for div A02483-e4060 1. P●t . 3. 4. Notes for div A02483-e4270 1 It was such a schisme as the Apostle practised , when certaine were hardened & disobeyed , speaking euill of the way of God , he departed from them , and separated the discsples , Acts 19. 9. and g●ue the like commandement to others , if any teach otherwise , and consenteth not to the wholsome words of the Lord Iesus , and from such separate thy selfe , 1. Tim. 6. 3 , 4 , 5. 2 This ambition of yours was it which being some what crossed ▪ or not fully satisfied , caused your apost●sie , as it did Arrius his heresie ▪ 3 Yet himselfe afterward iustifies it , chap. 2. s●ct . 21. 4 Doe men gather grapes of thornes , or figs of thistles ? and can either duety or loue be expected from such subiects and friends ? better is the h●tred of an open enemy , then the loue of such a friend . 5 Ab ouo vsqu● ad malu●● . He repeats the same phrase in diuers other places . * Col●ss . 2. 23. * Esai . 1. 12. 6 Great zeale and neutralitie in Religion seldome stand together , as neither doe g●eat ze●le and vehement ambition . 7 We grant as much , t●at the gates of hell shall neuer vtterly pr●uaile against it . Non bene c●n 〈…〉 vna sede morantur ambitio & zelus . * Iames 3. 16. * Rom. 10. 2 ▪ * L●ke 16. 8. * 2. Thes. 2. 7. * Matth. 10. 1● . 1 He indeede deliueredit to his Apostles and disciples to continue , but sure wee are , it continued not by that succession , and in that Church which you call visible and perpetuall , or at least not as he deliuered it : the enui●us man came in the night and sowed tares amongst it . * Matth. 19. 8. 2 Obserue here the great zeale of this man , which himselfe boasteth of in the 2. S●ction going before . * Matth. 13. 5. 25 1 It is to be noted that some of thes● Vniuersities professe in their published instruments , that they tooke an oath to deliuer and to study vpon the foresaid questions , as should be to the pleasure of God , and according to conscience , the copie whereof is to be seene in our English Chronicles . 2 After the determinations of these Vniuersites were read in open Parliament , there were shewen aboue a 100. bookes drawen by Doctours of strange regions , which all agreed the Kings mar●age to be vnlawfull . 1 How learnedly you vnderstood the state of the question betwixt vs , appeares afterward in setting downe the opinion of the Church of Rome touching Images . 2 No mention at all of reading the Scriptures , that was too base a worke for so great a Clerke . 1 How comes it to passe then , that the profoūd Doctors for proo●e of many doctrines of that Church , forsake the Scriptures , & flie to traditions ? 2 As if in your learning , the Gospel were not Scripture . 3 Belike then we in these colde Northerne Climats haue no Christian soules . 4 When those Preachers shal be named , and their current opinions specified , and the passages quoted , by which they are con●uted , I doubt not but the vnanswerable consequents will finde a sufficient answere , in the meane time you must giue vs leaue to suspect that Dolu● latet in vniuersalibus , falshood insists vpon generals . 5 Wee haue good reason to thinke you were not so much grieued for crossing those great preachers you speake of , as that thereby your prefe●ment was crossed . 1 Such a profound demonsration is that of Bellarmine out of Petrus Damianus , to shew the reason why in the Popes old Seales S. Paul was on the right hand of S. Peter , because forsooth Paul was of the tribe of Beniamin , and Beniamin signifies the sonne of the right hand , and for this he quotes Gen. 35. and 42. * Matth. 26. 27. * Iohn 18. 36. 1 It seemes then your Puritane ( for you tell vs before , those preachers were such ) may be a very honest man , yet afterwards you tell vs their principles are such as ouerthrow all honesty . 2 As loth as you were to oppose them in publike , yet you did as farre as you durst , as your selfe afterwards confesse . 3 The faith in which you were baptized , is the ●ame which now is professed in the Church of England , and that I am sure no man expected , you should oppugne . * Luke 16. 26. 1 I had thought before that a Puritane and a Caluenist , & a creature of Schisme in your language had bene all one . 2 If Dauid himselfe bee a Schismatike , as you make him , how were the creatures of Schisme to strong for him ? 3 Those whom you call temperate men , we may suspect to bee neutrals , made of lincie whoolsie , neither hote nor cold , but halting betweene two opinions , 1. Kings 18. 21. 4 That which you call honest preaching of the Trueth , wee take to be the neerest approching that may be to Rom● gates . 5 Herein you failed not , in that at last you vnmasked your owne hypocriosie . * 2. King. 9. ● . ●● . * Ierem. 51. 9. 1 You might more properly haue applied fiery to your desperate Cath. for such was their practise . 2 There needed no great violence to aggrauate the haynousnesse of that plot . 3 How comes it then to passe that notwithstanding all this in the next chap. you so earnestly labour the conuersion of his Maiestie , and the whole Realme . ▪ Ex ore●tu● condemnaberis , serue nequam , Luke 1● . 22. 1 What needed any great wit or learning for the iustification of that doctrine which by your owne confession holds no point expresly contrary to antiquity . 1 To allow the people images for religious vse , and then to admonish them that they take heed of idolatry , is as if a man should put an hungry horse into a goodly pasture , and then command him not to eate , or a child vpon the top of a l●dder , and then bid him take heed of a fall . 2 Why do they couer them in Lent then ? 3 We should indeed haue our conuersation amongst the Saints in heauen , but not amongst their images on earth . M. Hooker in his 5. booke of Ecclesiastical policie , Sect. 65. 1 I tolde you before you were prepossessed with preiudice , which made you obiect so weakely ▪ 2 Had it taken effect they would haue abhorred it as Sixtus did the Friars murthering of Henry the III. of France in the Consistorie of Cardinals , where he compares it to the worke of our Redemption . 3 A likely matter that his Maiestie should make complaint in a iudicial proceeding to him , in whom he professeth that he acknowledgeth no right of proceeding iudicially in the censure of his owne Subiects . 4 All those Writers whom you call Catholikes , doe so condemne it , as they seeme rather to thinke it vnfortunate in the successe , then mischieuous in the plot . 5 What authoritie this is , will appeare in Pius his Bull , whose words are these , And him alone hath hee made chiefe ouer all nations and kingdomes , who may alone root out , destroy , scatter , waste , plant , and build that the faithfull people knit together with the band of mutuall charitie , might be kept in the vnitie of the Spirit . 1 How could your hope bee such , since your resolution was to the contrary , as appeares by your own words in diuers passages before . 2 Your selfe within a fewe lines after , acknowledge you found many . 3 So that it seemes by your owne confession the greatest corruptions are to be found in the Church of Rome , seeing by Gods wheate field in your vnderstanding , can bee meant none other , but that Church , in which , in your opinion , grace most aboundeth . 4 Belike then you saw some broad difference in the circumstance . 5 You made sure worke for that , by carrying ouer store of monies with you , & by obtaining pensions from the Pope , the Q. Mother of France , and Cardinall Pe●●on . * Gal. 2. 21. * Col. 2. 20 , 21 , 22 * 1. Pet. 1. 19. 1 It may bee those afflictions serued to free you from Purgatorie , as you presume in the conclusion of your letter , otherwise I see not , why you should afflict your selfe for chusing the only supposed meanes of your saluation . 2 You disputed with such learned men as you could meet with , and yet auoided the companie of Catholiks , you promise his Maiesty to remember him at the dayly oblation , and yet you abstained from their Churches . 3 That which you call peace , is a betraying of 〈◊〉 the trueth , and 〈◊〉 that which you call a reconciliation , is a rent frō forreine reformed Churches . 4 I marueile who gaue you authoritie to bring M. Casaubon ouer from France . 5 Hauing receiued this answere , What moued you to be so saucie and importunate to mooue his Maiestie the second time to entertaine Societie with that Church . 6 Though you loued that Romish religion well , you loued your life better . 1 In what sense Rome may bee termed the mother ●hurch , see in mine answere to the 45. Section . 2 His Maiestie termeth him the Patriarch , but not the Primate of the West . 3 Where was your great zeale then to sweare against your conscience for fashion ? but did you not take it again when you came to yeres of discretion at the taking of your degrees , at your institution in your Benefices , at your admittance to your Prebendry and Chaplenship , and oft recognize the truth of the summe of the said oth in your prayer before euery sermon you made ? How then comes it now to passe that you would not take it again to gaine the greatest pre●ermēt in y● world , but that you were out of hope to get any , or by your owne confession long to enioy it ? 4 The Bishops in K. Hen. the 8. time thought themselues as good Christians as your selfe , yet they tooke it , or at least made a shew of taking it with a good conscience , besides you call th● consciences , or the Christianity of your honest brethren of the Clergy into question , who haue taken the same oath it may be more then once , and yet being good Schollers ( as you pretend ) they could not be ignorant what offence they incurred in taking it . 1 Master D●●lington in his inference vpō Guicciardines Degression , Page 3. 2 Page 200. 3 Which Dispensation was first granted contrarie to the opinion of all the Cardinals of R●me being Diuines . Hall. ann , H●nry 8. 4 In the yeere 1562. and againe in 1571. 5 Apol. for the Oath of alleagiance . p. 108. 6 Eusebius lib. 3 de vita Constant●i . * Psal. 91 , 11. 7 Such a precedenci● hath the Emperour before Christian kings , but no command ouer them . 8 B. Bilson part 2 of Christian subiection , p. 237. 1 This penalty was not inflicted for taking Orders , but for returning after Orders taken , such a penalty did Solomon impose and execute vpon Shimei , 1. King. 2. 2 There is lesse doubt of the Episcopall being of our Bishops , then of those that deriue their being from the Popes , in regard of their manifold schismes , and if it came to scanning , the Archbishop of Canterbury hath fai●er euidence to shew for his right to that See , then the Bishop of Rome to the Popedome ; nay the Pope to the Bishopricke of Rome . * Ro● . 11. 18 , &c. 1 He that examines the writings will easily find you wrote without booke . 2 Such a Catholike then as your selfe ( the S●ate standing as it doth ) can by your owne confession bee no good subiect . 3 As if onely Puritanes were at the making of those Statutes , or they alone make care and conscience of the execution of them . 4 A m●rueile it is that a man of your age and experience should conceiue or affirme that to belong to the office of a Iustice of Pe●c● , which appertaines to the Iudges or Iustices itenerant . 5 Your hope must needes be grounded vpon a vaine presumption of some strange and sudden alteration in his Maiestie considering his full resolution , and your many infirmities , but your hope is perished with your selfe , and so may all they who entertaine the like . 6 You speake as if the naturall birth of a man gaue him interest in the Saints of heauen ▪ whereas there they put off all carnall affections , and become like vnto the Angels . 7 The Saints of heauen haue no knowledge of the particular conuersion of a sinner , by any ordinary intuition , but by reu●lation extraordinary . 8 Many Saints no doubt are triumphant , which were neuer militant in that Church , which acknowledgeth the Pope her head . 9 Where no offence is committed , there needs no pardon to be either demanded or granted . 10 The seruice you intended , was nothing els but a plotting with the P●p● and his Factours , how you might betray the liberty of your Countrey , and submit your Soueraignes neck to the yoke of his seruice . 11 Vnlesse the Church of Rome draw neerer to vs , then hitherto shee hath made she● of , it cannot bee , but with the preiudice of all the honest men in England , and honesty it selfe , that a neerer vnion betwixt her and the Church of England should be concluded , then already there is . 1 Contr● liter●● Pat●● . 2. c. 92 ▪ 2 This Booke was written by my L. Burleigh ▪ L. Treasourer , wherein hee p●ou●s , that no Romish Catholikes were then executed , but for iustifying the Bul of P●us V. which Card. Allen replied vnto , but so weakely , as the trueth is thereby stre●gthened . 3 This sam● poi●t is again● confirmed by his Maiesty in his booke D● dro●● d●s R●ye● . Pag● 113. 4 Ego intraproximum ( trimestro ●el s●mestre ) tot ( puta quinque vel sex ) reconciliaui , pro quibus spondere ausi● quod quaecunque occasi● inciderit a parte n●stra ●●turi sint omnes , T●rt . Torti 138. 1 I suppose your meaning is to be accounted so . 2 I haue not met with any that teacheth it but holy Father Aristotle , in the entrance of his Politikes . 3 That which you call the malice of the times was the iust censure of your superiours procured by your own malice against the trueth . 4 What seruice could you do by dying , but by remouing a dangerous instrument . 5 So then you seeme to confesse that for religion you were of the same mind long before you went hence , as since you haue declared your selfe , which notwithstanding in diuers other places you contradict . 1 Pol. lib. 3. cap. ● . In method● hist● . vt apparet in 〈◊〉 ex purgat●ri● . 1 That is , you haue put off a Diuine to put on a Statesman , but the prouerbe is , Monachus in aula , piscis in arido , and your owne saying is , that false Religion is but a policie for the temporal seruice of Princes . 2 What securitie did it procure to Henry the IIII. and the 7. Emperours , or to Chilperike , Phil. leb●l , Lewis the XII . or the 2. last Hen. of France , and if there be no securitie , but in that religion , what religion is that , which will admit of no security in any but it selfe ? 3 They were aduanced by the grace of God , and their owne right , not by the Roman Religion , which in a maner is all one with the Bishop of Romes authoritie , by which Histories recorde how king Iohn and diuers other his Maiesties predecessours aswell of England as France , and Scotland haue bene aduanced and protected . 4 Why then , if the Roman Religion had remained amongst vs , should they still haue beene prayed for , as if they had remained in Purgatorie . 1 All this must be vnderstood of the Church of Rome , which first curseth , and then by all meanes laboureth to confound such as oppose against her , imputing her owne deuillish plots to Gods working . 1 See Lipsius his admiranda or de magnitudine Remani Imp. 1 It is rather Rome that is fallen from the vnitie of Christs Church . 2 You are somwhat more fauorable to her herein , then Bocius in his 12. booke and 3 chapter of the signes of the Church ; Terenixa passim pradicatur ex illicito coitu , ac propterea , fuitincemitijs Angliae publicis decretum vt illi defunctae in regno possent succedere ex huiusmodi concubinatunati . A most malicious lie . 3 She came vpon the religion professed and established in her sisters reigne , which you call remainders of deuotion , and wee denie it not : but how comes it to passe that her sister was so vnfortunate , if the onely comming vpon her remainders made Q. Elizabeth so happy ? 4 That which you cal maintaining of warre amongst her neighbours , his Maiestie in her ensuing Epitaph termes the relieuing of France , and supporting the Netherlands : hee might iustly haue called it the setting vp of a iust King in his owne kingdome , and the freeing of a free Estate from the vniust vsurpation of a forreine power . 5 For feare of failing , wee are yeerely supplied with a new Mission of shauelings from the fountaine : but sure I am perswaded if this current were stopped , our peace and prosperitie would be both more honourable and certaine then it is . 1 That is , as far as the drift of your reason proposed in the 2. and 3. Section of this Chapter . 2 To conferre is not properly by a bare permission , but by donation . 3 Kingdomes may be bestowed vpon wicked men for many other reasons besides the sinnes of the people : as to be a scourge to other States , or for some other temporall seruice which either their predecessors had done or thēselues might doe ▪ or lastly as S. Ierome notes , God thereby inuites them by his bounty that thēselues should bee conuerted from their owne sins . See T. Fitz●herbert of this poi●t in his treatise of Policie and Religion , part . 1. ca. 17. 4 His ordinary guarde in Constantinople , and there about , are but 24. thousand , and though many of them be taken from the breasts of their Christian mothers , yet is it not the greatest part as you auouch . 5 Their facilitie in admitting other religions aswell as their owne to hope of Saluation , should in reason rather weaken their Empire then fortifie it , and those other principles of great importance rather serue to make a tyrant , then to increase or maintaine a temporall Christian gouernement . Rom. 13. De Ciuit d●i . lib. 5. Cap. 21. 1 Since it was first a Church , there were neuer so many able labourers in it , nor religiō so sincerely preached and professed , as by Gods grac● it is at this day : so that it rather deserues the name of a body , and yours of a shadow . 2 By Schisme and Heresie you vnderstand schismatikes and heretikes , and among them you ranke his Maiestie : Such is the great ▪ honour you doe him , as the Iewes dealt with Christ , so doe you with his annointed , they said , Haile King of the Iewes , and they 〈◊〉 him with the●r rods . Iohn 19. 3. 1 Obserue the moderation of this reconciler , who would beare the world in hand that Christ is none otherwise present among vs in our Churches , then he is among the deuils in hell . 2 If they shall say vnto you , Behold he is in the secret chambers , beleeue it not . Mat. 24. 26. 1 Who are more guilty of this , then your Priests and Iesuites ? 2 Was not this the pretence of Thomas P●r●y Earle of Northumberland , and Charles Neuill Earle of Westmerland , when they tooke armes , and raised forces against their Soueraigne in the yeere 1569. and yet sent out Proclamations and Commissions in her name ? which notwithstanding they ceased not to bee Popish traitou●s , howbeit the Spanish expurgatory index labours to cleare them from that imputation , as also the Earle of Desmond , and a notorious traitour of Ireland , by rasing that ●estimonie of them in M. Cambden , who iustly records them so to posterity . 3 Who haue serued their own turnes most , and raised more sedition , the Clergy of Rome , by their vniust vsurpation , or the Clergie of England by their iust reformation , I leaue to the world to iudge . 1 This is the hope and prayer o● you all , as long as you want st●ength , but if you had that once , we should quickly heare you change your note , and sing another song . In the meane time we can account your prayer none other then as theirs in the last Psalme , saue one who haue the praise of God in their mouth , and a two edged sword in their hands , either be what you would seeme , or seeme to be what indeed you are . * Psal. 73. * Psal. 103. 1 In the front of this reason , you seeme to disstinguish it from the former , but in the pursuit of this Section you meerely confound them . 2 In saying so , you cannot but put his Maiestie to rebuke also , there being the like , & none other reason of him and of other Kings , who haue disclaimed vnion with Rome . 3 I meruaile much where those rules were to be found , for the space of the first 300. yeeres after Christ , and whether the greatnesse and Maiesty of the great Turke , or King of China be not beyond all the rules that Catholike Religion deliuereth in that kind . 4 What they are that despise gouernement , and speake euill of those that bee in authoritie , his Maiestie is not now to seeke . 1 De La●ci● ▪ cap. 7 2 De Ponti . Ro. lib. 1. cap. 7. 3 Ibidem . 4 Ibidem & de Cler. cap. 20. 5 De Pontif. lib. 3. cap. 16. * Lib. 5. cap. 8. 6 De Laicis , cap. 8. 7 De Pontif. lib. 5. cap. 8. 8 De Pontif. lib ▪ 2 ▪ cap. 26. 9 De Pontif. lib. 4. cap. 15. 10 D● Clericis , cap. 28. 11 Ibidem . 12 Ibidem . * 2. Sam. 7. 14. * Psal 82 6. * 1. Sam. 24. 11. * 2. Chro. 9. 8. * 2. Sam. 14. 20. * 2. Sam. 21. 17. * Isay 49. 23. * Rom. 13. 5. * 1 Tim. 2. 2. * Rom. 13. 4. Matth. 22. 11. 1 Neither the Dutch nor the French acknowledge his Maiestie their chiefe . 2 They ioyne together against the visible Monarchie of the church , or rather the tyranny of the Pope which you call order , but good it can not be , being not from God. 3 I desire to learne where you find that the deuils torment one another : once we are sure , if they did but helpe to cast out one another , their kingdome could not stand . 4 You seeme to intend the Netherlands , which notwithstanding was neuer a kingdome , nor their Bourgers Princes : but how the Pope hath turned the ancient kingdome of the Romanes into a new State , and made himselfe of a Priest , a temporall Prince , wee are not ignorant . 5 Neither can I perswade my selfe that your Catholikes will euer ioine together to make one King ouer them all , though the Iesuites it may be both desire and endeuour it . 1 The word Geuse in their language signifies a begger . 1 Bellarmine chargeth not only Calum with this opinion , but Zuinglius and Kellison , Melancthon , who were not Caluinists . 2 Surely that Pope who in his Conclaue told his Cardinals that the dominican Frier murdered the French King by the will of God , by his ordināce , by the aide of the Almighty , by his speciall helpe , spake litle lesse , yet is that oration verified by Warmington a Romish priest , sometimes Chapleine to Card. Allen , from whom himselfe got a copie . 3 They might quickly bee as learned as your selfe in the Scriptures , for any thing appeares in this Epistle . 4 Belike your selfe were present to take your part of the ale , or you had good intelligence with the alewise . 1 1 In his speech in Parliament after the Powder treason . * Iob. 12. 19. 21. In 1. 2. d. 129. n. 2. In 1. Iac. 10. reas . cap. 8. Demonst. 1 3 7. Lection . 8. par . ● . De sig . lib. 3. cap. 5. In h●● epist. to Cham. In his Suruay . l. 5. c. 2. Bib. sel. li. 8. c. 11 De amis . gra . lib. 2. cap. ● 3. Lib. 3. q. 12. de sac . l. 1. pa. 4. c. 12. 2. d. 34. q. 1. art . 3. 1. q. 13. art . 1. pa. 1 9 3. 1 2. q. 93. art . 6. pa. 4 96. 2. d. 37. q. 1. 1. par . q 49. ar . 2 Lib. 1. dist . 41. In 9. ad Rom. lect . 3. Torquet ac flectit in eis inuisibiliter operando . * Vers. 27. 28. * Vers. 5. * Cap. 1. 21. * Cap. 10. 15. 1 Foelix scelus virtus vocatur , had it taken effect , that which now is stiled an horrible treason had been a most honourable and meritorious acte . 2 It was the deuil indeed that wrought it , it being beyond all humane inuention , yet you canot denie , though you are vnwilling to grant it , that hee vsed none but pretended Catholikes for his instruments in that businesse . 3 The latter we easily beleeue , but leaue you to proue the former . 4 It may be by God you vnderstand him , who exalts himselfe aboue all that is called God , and by lawfull obedience as much , and as farre as he shall thinke fit . 5 Whether our religion or yours bind subiects , more to the performance of their duty , let my answere to your 12. section make proofe . 6 Indeed the fresh examples of the death of the 2. last Henr. of France , and the infinite tr●●●sons against Q. Elizabeth , and our present Soueraigne , cannot be but odious to all good Christians . 7 Perpetuity of kingdomes is onely from God , but yet may his Maiesty more iustly expect perpetuity frō his subiects , who acknowledge none other Soueraigne , then those Princes from theirs , who acknowledge them deposeable by a forreine power . 8 Their religion being grounded onely vpon the liuely oracles of God , cannot but tye them more effectually to it selfe then your humane traditions . 9 We assume no liberty of expounding articles of faith at our pleasure , as his Maiesty hath declared it in his booke against Vorst . but a freedome by Christ , from the rigour of the Law , from the guilt and punishment of sinne , and from obseruing humane traditions as religiously , as diuine ordinances . 1 Garnet by Eudaemon . 2 Greenwell and Gerrard . 1 It was the speech of Christopherus Thua●●●s reported by Iacobus Aug. his sonne . * Eccles. 49. 1. 1 You seeme to meane the ancient Romanes , who made more conscience of an Oath ( in which particular act of Religion you afterward insist ) then the Romish Catholikes at this day . * Ebr. 6. 16. * Iere. 4. 2. * Gen. 21. * Gen. 31. 1 Is not this Romish opinion which holds it sufficient to beleeue as y● Church beleeues , so that they liue morally well ? but for our selues we haue had experience , y● where our religion most preuaileth , and men are brought to the knowledge of the trueth , there barbarisme & inciuility are the more banished . 2 The words of the Poet are , nemo repente fuit turpissimus . 3 In stead of the arse●all , you should haue said the Capitole . Se●●c . frag . * 1. Cor. 13. 12. 1 By this it appeares you intended the publishing of your letter at the writing of it . 2 M. Doctour himselfe in the 8. Section of his 1. Chapter . confesseth , that hee knoweth diuers very honest men of these Preachers . 3 Hauing made them before the Seeds-men of Sedition , and Authours of all errour in doctrine , and corruption in manners , it is then good time of day to tell vs you will not accuse them . 4 Sir Francis Bacon is more beholding to you for quoting his Essayes , then S. Matth ▪ for alledging his Gospel , or S. Paul for his Epistles : but I am sure he is too noble a Gentleman , to hold it any commendation to be quoted or commended by such as your selfe . 5 If they vtterly faile in the Precepts of the first Table , they may well be called Heretikes , rather then Schismatikes . 6 Since the first reformation , aboue a generation hath passed , and yet by your owne acknowledgement there remaine diuers very honest men euen among those whome you labour most to disgrace . 7 In your construction a Puritan and a Caluinist are reciprocall ▪ and you make all the reformed Netherlanders , the Heluetians , the French , and the greatest part of the English to be Caluinists : so that the greatest part of all their sonnes must proue Papists or Atheists , or else your obseruation failes . 8 Reformers you tell ●s before commonly degenerate in the next generation , and here you shew vs , how by turning Papists or Atheists , as if Papi●me , and Atheisme were so neere of kinne , or ●o resembling in condition , that the one might easily be mistaken , for the other ; or th● one prepared away to the other . * 1. Cor. 14. 1 The same conceit hath Charron in his booke de trois v●r●te , lib. 3. c. 12. 2 I haue since found words to that purpose in his Meditation●s sacrae , but not as M. Doctor quoteth them . 1 You tell vs before of sure rules in policie , and mutinous Souldiers , and here you shewe your skill in Cowh●rdship , that wee may know you are aliquid in quolibet , though nihil in toto . 2 Notwithstanding those charmes your Romish Catholiks cannot be kept within their bounds , charme the charmer neuer so wisely . 3 Mutato nomine de tuis ●abula narratur . 1 D. Hall in his Roma irreconcili●●il●● . 1 If others might be good Subiects , your selfe could not be so , in as much as , in the last Sect. of the 1. cha . you confesse , that liuing in England , you could not choose but bee guilty of the breach of many of our Statutes . Lib. 5 de Iusti● . cap. 7. 1 Of this ranke was M. Doctour , as appeareth in the 19. Sect. of his first Chap. where he promiseth to iustifie all the present doctrine of the Church of Rome from point to point . 1 Here your rules of policy failed you , in as much as violence of affection is rather by time to be qualified , then withstood by force . 2 Who they are that blow the coales for the burning of others , and warming of themselues , if I were silent , the stones of the Parliamēt house would speake . 3 You might haue done well to haue perswaded the Pope or the King of Spaine , to haue held such a conference in their dominions . 4 How simply and euidently your Postillers and Friers vse to deliuer the trueth in their Sermons , we are not ignorant , but whom you should mean by your honest men , but your selfe and your companions , we know not . 5 Who they are that dazell mens eyes , and robbe their purses , your glorious outside in Gods worship , and your infinite trickes to get money , sufficiently testifie . 6 How reconciliable the differences betweene vs are , I haue declared in mine answere to the 18. Sect. of this chap. 1 Lib. 4. de mili . Eccles. cap. 5. 2 De salute Indorum , lib. 2. c. 18. 3 Lib. 4. epist. 1. 4 Lib. 5. epist. 30. See Lipsius in the conclusion of his booke de Mag. Rom. * 1. Tim. 6. 20. * Psal. 119. 105. * 2 Pet. 1. 19. * Luke 1. 79. * Iohn 1. 9. * Rom. 1. 18. 1 A most notorious vntruth , if by Caluinism● you vnderstand Caluins doctrine . 2 How Caluins doctrine ouerthrowes al these , or any of these , let his bookes testifie . 3 Will the Turke beleeue Christ to haue beene the Sonne of God by eternall generation ? or to haue beene conceiued by the holy Ghost ? or to haue risen from the graue by his owne power the third day after his buriall ? or visibly to haue ascended into heauen ? or that from thence hee shall returne againe , to iudge the quicke and the dead ? or is Caluin charged by any aduersary to ouerthrow any of these , so much as by consequence ? where then is M. Doctors moderation ? 4 I thinke we shall expect long before that leasure be offered . 5 If all English men , then your selfe were baptised in that doctrine , in which notwithstanding you were not confirmed as you ought , or at lea●t wise it was not sufficiently confirmed in you . 6 It was touched indeed but not prooued . 7 That iust treatise will prooue nothing els but an vniust calumnie , if by Caluinisme you vnderstand Caluins doctrine . 8 My Table of comparison here annexed to mine answere , will manifest many plaine contradictions , and that in the mainest points of doctrine . 9 Wee professe the patience of doues , but not of asses , such as you would prooue vs to bee , if you make vs in that to beleeue what you promise to prooue . 10 It is the obstinacie of the Church of Rome , that inforceth vs to be at warres with her . 11 Whether the contradiction of the doctrine ( which you here confesse , but denyed before ) rather argue the corruptions of State , from whence they come , then are argued by the grounds of that Religion , whereupon they stand , we shall haue fitter opportunitie to examine in the Sections following . 1 My Lord of Ely. 1 The words of the Bull are these , Impia mysteria & instituta ad Caluini praescriptum à se suscepta & obseruata etiam à sub ditis s●ruari mandauit . 2 Obserue their ye●rely Catalogues that come from the Mart of Frankeford . 3 I haue in mine hands Letters written frō Beza to Archbishop Whitgift , and from him againe to Beza , wherein they both acknowledge that we agree in the substance of true religion . Eliz. 13. Art. 35. 36. 1 How could it be for the ea●e of his later wiues and their children , since the breach was made vpon the taking of his second wife , or ●ather his first ( if his marriage with Queene K●ther●ne were a nullitie ) and that before hee had any childe by her . 2 Yet hereafter you goe about to prooue , that in temporall respects the Romish religion is the fittest to giue contentment to the seuerall members of the State. 3 That vntimely growing together , would rather haue beene a cause of festring and rankling , so that the breach is kept open rather vpon iudgement then vpon affection . 4 You make the King the authour of it , who should haue excluded him or called him to an account ? Gregory 7 Re●● lib. 7. ●pist . 1. 〈◊〉 3. concil . pa. 1244 , edit . B●●ij . 1 Were not those fauorites fauorers of the Romish religion ? 2 If they were Saints , why did you still pray for them , as if they had bene in Purgatory . 3 Of these two last you may say as they in the 19. of the Acts , who made siluer shrines for their great Goddesse Diana , By this craft we haue our wealth . 1 M. Cambden in his description of Worcestershire . 2 By the common lawes of England it is euid●nt , 〈◊〉 no man 〈◊〉 he be Ecclesiasticall ▪ or haue Ecclesiasticall iurisdiction , can haue inheritance of tythes . My L Cook● in his fi●t part of reports 2● Ed. 3. lib. Ass. pl. 75. 3 Were not the fire in Purga●ory ( in which the ●oules of those dead are supposed to be ) very hote , the fire in the Popes and Monks kitchins would quickely be very cold . 1 Your pompous and empty shewes in Gods seruice well deserue that title of goodly gay nothings . 2 Satisfaction and penance I take to be both one in the language of Rome , though you seem to put a differēce betweene them . 3 Whether the people were kept in obedience by the Popes authority , let the manifold troubles by his meanes raised , testifie ▪ 1 What carnall minded Priest or Monke would not rather entertaine varietie of Concubines then be tyed to one wife . Sacerdotibus magna ratione sublat●s nuptias , 〈◊〉 restitu●nd●● vider● . * 1 ▪ Tim. 5. 8. 1 Those doctrines being set on foote , and maintained ( as I haue shewed before ) long before our diuision from Rome , might well cause it ; but could not be caused by it . 1 You had smal reason to make him an enemie to Dukes , saue only for not betraying his Citie to the Duke of Sauoy . 2 Why his doctrine should bee so pleasing to the common people , I see no reason but onely the force of trueth , since it restraineth them of much liberty , which the Romish affordeth . 3 They were fallen out with their Duke , and yet pretended to him , whereas in trueth the Duke pretended to them , not they to him . Duke Amadius indeed got that donation from Pope Martin , but neither himselfe nor any of his successours could euer enioy the possession , and as I heare Philibertus their present Duke publikely renounced his pretence vnto it , in the last assembly of the Protestants of France at Grenoble . 4 Better an young reformer then an olde apostate . 5 Hee found the substance of it in the Scriptures , though not the forme or method . 6 Your faith of Rome comes not so farre as a strong imagination , it contents it selfe with a bare speculation or naked apprehension , some reprobates going as farre in beleeuing , and all diuels farther . 7 B●zaes words are , Eiurato pal●m Papatu , by which I take to be vnderstood , the renouncing of the Papacie or the Popes authority , not the swearing of all Poperie to be false : or the abi●●ing of a mans hope of attaining the Popedome , as a relapsed ●riar lately expounded himselfe . 8 That which was affected by Gods speciall prouidence in their often and miraculous deliuerances , you maliciously ascribe to fortune and the helpe of their neighbours . How could the Bishop and the Duke be both their ancient gouernours ? Method . hist. cap. 6. 1 Tom. 2. par● . 1. 2 In the 〈◊〉 part of his Sermons against Caluin preached at Thurin , 〈◊〉 ▪ 1582. 1 Th●u which teachest , another man should not steale , doest thou steale ? 4 So that a man might truely say of them as the O rator doth of some of his time , Prouenie●ant ad rompub . noui orator●● adolescentuli . 5 See no man despise thy youth . Tit. 6 Me non esse pecuniosum , si quibusdam viuus non persuadeo , mors tamen ostendet . 7 M. Hooker in his Preface to his Ecclesiasticall discipline . 8 B●zaes words are Pl●risque ex collegi● , timiditate turbas fugi●ntibus . * Ierem. 6. 16. 1 You haue made your obseruation good by your owne affecting of n●ueltie in the change of your religion . 2 There must needs be more libertie in that pr●fession where indu●gences are so rise , and dispensations so easie . 3 If by the old Clergie you meane the ancient forme of Ecclesiasticall gouernement , it remaines at this day vnaltered . 4 The admiring of all that comes from beyond seas , may better bee applied to your Romane Catholikes then any other to whom omn● longinquum pro magnifico est , as also their com●orting one another with reports . 5 But by the Papists it is condemned as heresie . 6 I cannot possibly conceiue what you should meane by the preface of the Gospel in this place , except your intent be aswell to scoffe at the Gospel , as at Caluins Instit. 7 I desire the sight of that Law which makes against the doctrine of it . 8 If it be cried vp by voyces , it is by the voyces of the grauest Bishops , and learnedst diuines of our land , as I shew in mine answere . 9 By other places belike you meane the Netherlands , which I haue already answered . * Ma●● . 1. 27. * Acts 17. 18. 1 Cons●nti●●us in eo quod conuenit , non in ●e quod ●eceptum est . Mor●sa● mori● retenti● res turbulent●●que ac nouitas . * Iosh. 9. 4 , 5. Cambden in vita Regi : Elizab. 〈◊〉 lib. in quo partim Belgarum motus exorts ▪ &c. 1 Tract . 2 cap. 4. 2 Tract . 8. cap. 3. diuis . 31. 3 Cap. 7 diuis . 4. 4 D. Whitakers duplicationis . cap. 1. 5 B. Bilson in his booke of the true difference betweene , &c. part . 3. pag. 509. 1 The multitude thē on your side are made fooles by your owne confession : but if any of vs should say so much , it were presently a slander . 2 How should his Maiestie comma●d them to turne , who are vnder the Popes command , and must looke which way please his H●linesse ? and he for his part will hardly be perswaded to permit them to looke so much as a quarter about . 3 There are some Purita●call Preachers then on your side , as well as on ours : belike you meane the Iesuits , with whom notwithstanding , if we may beleeue Pelit●●rs report , you sided at your comming to Pari● , and dyed amongst them . 4 How wel you vnderstood all sides , I made it appeare before in the Controuersie of Images , in the mean time you do wel to commend your own honestie and learning . 5 The difference betwixt these three , I haue alreadie set downe , and if the matter of doctrine may by his Maiestie be compounded , it must either be by abrogating the Trident Canons , or the English Articles , or by reconciling the one to the other , the impossibilitie whereof , things standing in the termes they doe , I haue alreadie proued . * 1. Cor. 4. 3. Verse 4. 1 In Cap. 9. ad Rom. disp . 5. 2 C●m ea tamen ip●issima sit D. Augustini sentantia . 3 Cal●in● Tur●is . lib. ● . cap. 7. 4 De Christo li. 2 cap. 19. 5 Lib. 1● . de Trinitate . 6 Secund● dialogo quem inscribit Dubitantius . 7 In Pr●fatione libri de Sancto Ioh. Baptista . 8 Demand 48. 9 Apol. cap. 1. * Iude. 9. * Acts ● . 60. * Luke 23. 34. 1 Yet in the next Section you assure vs that King Henry wished himselfe in the Church againe . 1 Were not those fauorites Roman Cath. 2 He dispensed not with himself , but the Archbishop of Canterbury dispensed with him by the consent of our owne & many forraine Vniuersities , all our Bishops concurring therein , onely Rochlster excepted . 3 His fathers chiefe foūdation I take to be the Chappel he built at Westminster ▪ and that he ouerthrew not . 1 Qui 〈◊〉 7. Sacramenta , 〈◊〉 quorum defe●s●nem Titulus datu● est , sed due v● tri● tanium es●e cont●●dit , Pag. 20. 2 Thus did hee intitle Philip the 2. King of Spain● to Irdand , in the yeere 1580. 3 Ad Card. B●ll . Respons . pag. 55. 4 Lib. de Priseis Anglorum legib●s , ●ol . 13● . The originall of which Treatise was preserued in the Library of the Citie of London , and there found and published by Mr. Lambert . 5 Besides all this hee bestowed the reuenues of the Gray Friars in London vpon the Citie of London , toward the reliefe of their poore , making of the Friery a Parish Church , whereunto hee gaue 500. marks yeerely of lands for euer : one thousand marks also he commanded to be giuen to the poore , and to twelue poore Knights at Windsore , each of them twelue pence a day for euer . * Act● 2. 29. * D●ut . 34. 6. 1 Out of this Bull , as out of the Tro●an horse , issued so many Conspiracies as followed after . Mich , Sands . * ● . Tim. 1. 5. 1 Cum accepis●●m quantum valeres ●ngeme , & qu●ntos progressi●s in literis Graecu & Latinis haberes . f. 2. p. 1. Quid admirab●lu●s quam in foemin● virilem constantiam , in virgine senilem prudentiam , in summa opum aff●uentia 〈◊〉 modestiae laude● emineres , pag. 2. Laudibus man●uetud●uis & lenitatis , quae cumistius formae venustate co●sentiunt excellis , fol. 3. p. 1. 2 M. Cambden in his Annals of Q. Eliz. fol. 58. where the copy of the letter is to be seene . 3 H●c curantibus ●liquot aurcorum millia fuisse promissa fama ob●inet , The same author . 4 Marquesse of North. Earle of Bedford . Thomas Parry Edward Rogers . Ambrose Caue . Francis Kn●lles . William Ce●ill . Nicholas Bacon 5 Will. Par●● Edward Sey●ur . Thomas Howard Henry Cary. Oliuer Saint-Iohns . 6 Bonner of London . Tunstall of Durham , White of Winchester , Watson of Lincolne , Thurby of Ely. Bourne of Bath & Wels , Christopherson of Cicester , Ba●●e of Cou. and Leich . Turberuile of Exeter , Pole of Peterborough . 7 By the Earle of Arran . 8 Adolphe duke of Holts . 9 By Erike king of Sweden . * Math. 7. 25. 1. Cor. 10. 4. * Psal. 22. 12. 13. * I●dg . 5. 21 10 His discontent arose for being put by the Gouernment of Wexford which he hoped for . 11 Bizar . hist. Gen●ens . pag. 568. 12 Quodlibet . pag. 269. 277. 13 D.R. of C.C.C. 14 Epist. 48. 1 That which you call the doctrine of diuision was taught long before the diuision you speake of , was made , as hath beene already shewed , and his Maiestie ; in regard of his father and grandfather , may aswell be called the fruit of Schisme as Queene Elizabeth 1 See the Relatition of the whole proceedings against the traitours Garnet and his consederates . 2 Who was herein touched so neere as his Maiestie . 3 From England . From Portugale . From France . From Austria . 4 Dominantibus semperinuisus qu●squis pr●●●i●us designatur . This Letter was sent by Sr. Robert Cary. 1 Mine answere touching wealth I leaue to the next Section which is the proper place for it . 2 That which you cal the vnity of the Church , is indeed the building of the kingdome of Antichrist . 3 How is he a Soueraigne , if hee haue aboue him an higher power to command him ? 4 That is his Holines of Rome . 5 Indirecte too ( at least ) and in o●dine ad spiritualia , they supply his place in ijs qu● sunt iuris human● . 6 We find that verified in the spreading of the Romish religion ▪ 7 What makes a great man but great power in commanding , & if a great king cannot gouerne them ▪ how shall a meane prince be able to command them . 8 For any thing I can finde in my reading of the Chronicles , of our own land or forraine histories , Princes had more adoe in gouerning their subiects before the reformation then since , I meane those Princes who haue imbraced that religion . 9 You might rather haue bene angry with them who standing least vpon his Mai●sties supremacie , not onely endeuor to crosse his desires , but to indanger his person , and to cut off himselfe and his posterity . 10 By the keyes doing the Crowne seruice ▪ belike you meane the triple Crowne ▪ 11 That the Keyes are tyed to the Scepter is false , his Mai●sty neither hauing , nor challenging the right of binding and loosing , but true that by the Pope both Scepter and sword too , are tyed to the Keyes . 12 If his M●●●sti●s title rather serue others then himselfe , we are sure his Holinesse title rather serues himselfe then others . Pag. 28. 29. 30. 31. 32. 1 Ex●mpti● Clericorum in rebus p●li●ici● , t●m quoad personas , tū quoad bona , introducta est iure human● parit●r & diuino , Bel. l. de cle . cap. 28 ▪ * 2. Sam. 17. 6 1. Chron. ●3 . 12. 2 Chr●n . 6. 2. King. 23. 2. 2. Ch●o . 20. 3. Nehem. 9. 38. 2. King. 18. 4. 2. Chron. 17. 8. 1. King. 2. 27. 2 Socr. 1. 9. 3 Theod. 1. 9. 4 Theodoretus l● . 5 cap. 9. 5 Euagri●● . lib. 1. cap. 2. 6 Le● Epist. 43. Gen. 14. 19. 7 Apud Sto● . de regn● . See to this purpose , Aristot. pol. lib. 3. cap. 11. 8 Ferdin . Lop●z . lib. 1. Hist. Iud. Cap. 14. 9 Quia in Ciuitate bellicosa , plures Romuli quam Numae similes reges putabat fore , iturosque ips●s ad bella , ne sacra desere●entur , flaminē I●ui assiduum Sacerdotem ●reauit Liu. lib. 1. * 2. P●t . 2. 9. * 1. Cor. 2. 15. 10 Maynard . de priui . Eccl. art . 9. 11 Bulla P●● Quin. ast; Ier. 1. 10. 12 See their book of Sacred Ceremonies . 13 Monit . Po●●● . * Matth. 28. 18. * 1. Sam. 13. 13. * 2. Cro. 26. 19. * Exod. 28. 14 Without all contradiction the lesse is blessed of the greater , Heb. 7. 7. * Exod. 4. 16. * 2. Chron. 19. * Deut. 17. 12. * Acts 25. 11. 1 It is more to be feared that Rome will doe what she can to make him poore : but neuer complaine that he is not rich . 2 The reason why God did not blesse it , I haue giuen in mine answere . 3 The Court of augmentation is annexed to the Exchequer , and yeelds yeerely to his Maiestie as much as euer , as I thinke . 4 As they were then in the hands of the Clergie , they yeelded nothing but at their pleasure . 5 You obiect to his Maiestie his empty Coffers , but labour to make them more emptie by subiecting him to Rome . 6 How diligently you haue perused the Statutes , I haue made it appeare in mine answere to the later part of your first chapter , and yet it seemes you are more skilfull in them then in the Satutes whereof Dauid speakes , I will delight my sel●e in thy Statutes . Psa. 119. 16. * Pro● . 14. ●● . * Exod. 36. 1 See the Statute . 2 Witnesse the Church of Saint Albons . 1 It seemes then that they whom you call Caluinists as touching the confession of his faith , are of the same iudgement with his Maiesty 2 To grant tha● which notwithstanding is not false as I haue shewed in mine answere to this Sect. yet are there many things in the same booke , which if his Mai●sty maintaine , as vpon his honor he is bound to doe , he can neuer turne Romane Cath. 3 K. Henry neuer contradicted his booke . 4 From thence it followes , that by your owne acknowledgement , what his Maiestie hath written is good . * Luke 22. 25. * Iohn 14. 26. * Iohn 21. 15. 16. 17. * Mat. 18. 18. * 1. Cor. 5. 4. * Acts 15. * 1. Cor. 1. 11. * Gal. 2. * Gal. 1. 18. 1 Bel. de Rom. p●nt . lib. 1. cap. 27. Can. 6. 2 In prefat . lib. de fide . 3 Pag. 89 , 90 , 91 , 92. 93. 4 Episc. Eli. in respons . ad Apol. Card. Bellar. pag. 167 , 168 , 169 , 170 ▪ 171 , 172. 5 Lib. 5. vltra med . in Apol. 1. & 2. sapius repetit . 6 In ha●●si Sethianorum in cap. vlt. 1. Pet. 7 De Sanct. b●atit . lib. 1. cap. 6. 8 Lib. 2. de purgat . cap. 8. 9 De S. beat . lib. 1. cap. 5. 10 Lib. 4 de R● . Pont. cap. 8. * Pag. 89. 11 Lib. 1. de Rom. Pont. cap. 8. 12 Cypr-Epist . ad Pompo . cont . Epist. Steph. 13 Pag. 474. * Iohn 19. 22. * Ecclus. 27. 11. 1 Indeed he cannot well bee a good subiect , who either reconciles himselfe or perswades others to be reconciled to that Church , which maintaines heretikes to be as infidels , if not worse , & his Maiesty an heretike . 2 I guesse at your meaning , your Cath , had cause to be angry that it succeeded not . 3 Belike you vnderstand the Parliament , who perswaded his Maiesty to the imposing of the oath of allegeance . 4 His Maiesty may both detest the fact , and punish the offendours , and endeuour by wholsome lawes to preuent the like mischiefe , and yet both liue and die in charity . 5 Where is that reason ? 6 God indeed is exorable , but vpon submission , and hearty contrition , which yet appeares not , either in the tongues or pens of Romanist . 7 Quid opus est verbis , quum facta se ostendunt ? 8 His Maiesty is as the Angel of God , wise to discerne who they are that labour to misinforme him , and misleade his people . 9 It should seeme then , you are fallen from the hope of perswading his Maiesty to become a Rom. Cath. to the toleration of that religion , which notwithstanding he cannot admit without double periury , See T●rtu●a Torti , pag. 82. 14 Christanouic Pacenius Becan Parsons Coqueus Eudamon Schoppius Reboule Coffeteau Peletier Gretser Suarez Beaumanoir * R●● . 3. 15. 2 Ad M. Torti lib. Resp. pag. 191 3 L. of Balmerinoch then his Maiesties Secretary . 1 Many of those passengers who iustly feare danger , haue greater experience in the guiding of this ship then your selfe could haue . 2 The attaining of your Hauen , we take not to bee the way to Heauen . * Acts 17. 10. 1 Defence du Droit des Rois , pag. 111. & 112. 1 Whether your Preachers , or your Friars , and ●esuites abuse the people more with lies in their Sermons let them iudge who haue heard both . 2 For morall and ciuill honestie there were among the ancient Romans and more learned then they . 3 Belike they condemned you for one among the rest , and were not much mistaken . 4 It is well you hold some honest men amongst them . least your selfe should bee accounted none . 5 The Romish Church , for many chiefe points , hath not so much as pretext of Scripture . 6 We might say the like of some of your followers , & more truly , in as much as we beare them record that they ▪ haue zeale , but not according to knowledge . 7 What makes you to crie out so against Puritane Preachers , but that most of the people are led by Sermons ? 8 I haue said it before , and I will be bold vpon this occasion giuen , to report it againe , not to boast of it , but to praise God for it , that his Maiesties Dominions afford as many sufficient and learned Preachers , and that in a more substantiall and conscionable fashion , then the Popes Hierarchie , and that London alone affords more then Rome it selfe : and their readinesse to supply Sermons , is not so much out of any good will they beare that exercise , as out of ill will they beare vs. Iohn . Aduen● . lib. 30. Anal. Boio . 1 So that in Mr. Doctors Logick an honest Protestant may thus be defined : One that can endure the State of England as it is , and could be content it were as it was , that he might receiue more benefit . 2 You tel vs before that all false religions in the world are but humane policies , and we as truely returne it vpon you , that this humane policie fauours of a false religion . 3 Many of them though they professed themselues dead to the world yet were they aliue to the flesh . Renulfus C●str . lib. 7. 1 Indeede by the forme of words yet extant in the masse booke and vsed by the Priest , it is supposed that a number should Communicate daily with him but it seldome is so . 2 If wee had no vse of confessours , yet might and ought inferiors be kept in awe of hell fire by their Preachers , and superiours be tolde of their errours in state by their Counsellers , but you seeme to assure his Maiestie that if hee will not be told of his errours in confession , he shall in rebellion . * 2. Cor. 5. 18. 1 Bell : de pe●●t . lib. 3. Cap. 2. 2 Epist : ad Front pag. 129. 3 Premon . 125 4 See nouell doct . in the ende of the Premon . the 3. 5 Epist. ad Front. p●g . 140. 6 Pag. 326. 7 That is , they doe not binde him to present the party confessing , as appeares both in the body , and title of the Canon . * Gal. 5. 1. 1 If in those middle times when all things ranne in a current course , there were not so many Statutes made in Church matters , it must be imputed rather to the want of occasion , then of power , the plantation or reformation of the Church , chiefly giuing occasion to the making of lawes in Church matters . 2 When the name of a Parliament began in England , is vncertaine : See my L. Coke in his Preface to the ninth part of his reports . 3 I take the raising of new houses to be no hinderance to the Common-we●lth the Lawyers themselues being a part of the Commons . 4 As 〈◊〉 the Ciuill Law came not from the Roman Infidels , ●hich notwithstand●ng stand well enough with the authoritie of the Ecclesiasticall Courts . 5 What you call Catholike I know not but sure I am , that since King Eth. time many Statutes haue been made for the restra●ning of the B●shop of Romes vniu●t vsurpation , neither do● finde that hee ●●●tered any thing in the lawes of the kingdome , saue onely by comma●ding them to be turned into his mother tongue . 6 I● by better times you meane the restitution of the Romish Religion , or the recōciliation of our Church to Rome , you had certainly ▪ very little reason to expect them from the learning , wisedome , and moderation of those that are now the chiefest in that profession , the chiefest of all , hauing both f●equently , and full● declared himselfe to the contrary , and suffred for it by the slanderous tongues and pennes of malicious Romanists , and namely , Eudaemon and Parsons . 1 Bod in lib. 1. de ●epub . cap. 8. 2 See Mons●ir Seruius , the Kings Attourney generals speach in the end of the reformation of the Vniue●sitie of Paris . 3 Sp●culum Iust. anno 712. 4 Statut. 21. R●● . 2. cap. 11. 5 Comment . cap. 49. 6 A God containes the Sea within his owne bounds and marches , so is it my office to make euery Court containe it selfe within its owne limits , see his Ma●●sties Speech in Parliament , 1609. 7 Cap. 17. 1 What tho●● Clergie men are , wee desire to know , and who in your sense are Caluinists . 2 What those points of doctrine are , wee shall see in the next Section . 3 That his Maiesties fauour to the Clergie is such , as not to giue way to their ouerthrow , and in stead of them to set vp a few stipendary Preachers , we haue had good triall , and are bound to blesse God for it : but sore against the will of all Romane Catholikes , it is that his Maiestie should fauour them so much . 1 How Caluin himselfe though he were a stipendary Minister , pleased Master Maior and his brethren , let his banishment more then once for his free preaching testifie . 2 We are assured that both his Maiesty , and his heire apparent , are so well resolued in this point , as they wil neuer put it to the question . 3 Our Sermons are not so cheape as your Masses , which notwithstanding are in a manner the very life and soule of your Priesthood . 4 The vntrueth of this assertion appeares in mine answere . 5 As if all those who are called Lords , and goe in Rochets , were not by their place conformable to the discipline , & had often before they come to that place , subscribed to the doctrine established by Law. 6 They may more easily turne Lay with you , where Lay men are admitted to the administration of the Sacrament . 7 These kinde of Clergie men desire no satisfaction from you , but wish you had bin as carefull to maintaine that trueth which once you professed , as to confute their pretended errours , which confutation notwithstanding you speake much of , but no where performe , nor so much as vndertake . 8 You may rather call them temporizing , then temperate . 9 It were well that others knew them too , ( if any such there bee , who in iudgmēt approoue the trueth of that religion which you call Cath. ) and yet pro●●sse themselues not onely members , but Ministers of our Church : but our hope is that their number is not such as you vaunt of ; it being vnpossible that honest men and good Schollers should take the oath of Supremacie , and subscribe to our articles of religion , and yet in iudgement approue the authority of the B. of Rome , which is in a maner the substance of that religion . 10 Had ours had the like temperate course held with them , or the like liberty afforded in Queene Maries dayes , they would haue thought themselues happy . 11 Their wiues and children are bound to pray for you , in regard of your fatherly care of them . 12 It is well that you account your selfe one of the honest men and good Schollers , but they are so farre I hope from accounting you one of them , as they vtterly condemne and mislike your courses . 13 But it pleased God you should die among strangers , and not liue to see that toleration you desired : neither shall any of them we hope , that yet liue and desire to see it . 14 As if the whole fortune of Greece depended vpon your submission to that Church . 15 What assurance can there bee on our parts from them , who hold y● faith is not to be held with heretikes : but you forgot your promise made to my Lords Grace of Cant. in your Letter dated from Colin the 17 of August 1613. that you neither were , nor euer would be wholly reconciled to the Church of Rome . 16 By Pope Gregories letter to Austin the Monke , it appeares that the other Churches were by him subordinated to Yorke and London , but by king Ethelbert to Canterbury , so that the L. Archbishop holds his iurisdiction by the Kings authority , and not by the Popes . 17 How then wil you make good our Sauiours words , M●ne house shal be called the house of prayer ? or of S. Paul , that he was sent to preach , and not to baptize ▪ that is as I take it chiefly to preach ? 18 How can he confirme them in Ecclesiastical liuings , who are no better then Lay men , hauing no lawful orders as is the currant opinion of Rome . 19 So that looking throgh the spectacles of that religion , all seemed golde to you that glistered , but you might as well haue for borne the asking of that , as ought else . 20 That is such , if any such there bee , who in iudgement approue the trueth of Catholike doctrine in your sense , for others you renounce as the greatest enemies to the Clergy , that is , your selfe and your supposed brethren . 1 1. di●t . 4. qu●●nic . §. potestaliter . 2 P. 1. q. 23. a. 5. ad 3. 3 De gratia & lib. arbitrio . lib. 2. cap. 9. * Ephes. 1. 4. 4 Annot. 251. 5 Dis●n Rom. 9. Num. 91. 6 Bas●l ▪ dor : pag. 1● . * Iam. 2. 19. * Ephes. 6. 16. * 1. Ioh. 5. 4. * Ch●● . 11. 1. 7 Inst it . ●ib . 3. cap. 2. ● 7. 8 See the 4. booke 14. chap. of his Institut . * 1. Cor. 11. 13 , 28. * 1. I●hn 4. 1. * H●b . 5. 4. * 2. P●● . 1. 20. * 1 Cor. 14. 32 , 33. 9 Basil. D●r . lib. 1. pag. 10. * Ta. 3. ● . 10 200. yeeres of which you cannot except against for freedome , if that be your meaning . 11 Pref. to his ●●sil . dor . fol. 6. 12 Pag. 78. 79. 13 Promp . Cath. f● . ● . p●st 〈◊〉 . 14 Bodin . lib. 3. cap. 7. pol. 15 In Ephes. 4. 16 D● 〈◊〉 is cap. 18. 19. * 1. T●● . 5. 22. 17 Quin●n 〈◊〉 cum p●ssit , i●b●t . 1 How then in your Doctrine doe children baptized with vs , which die instantly after their Baptisme , goe to heauen ? 1 Appointed for the day of our deliuerance from the Powder treason . 1 M. Doctour being but a nouice in his religion , it seemeth , had forgotten there was any such place as Purgatory . 2 Belike Master Doctor had now gotten him a knocking paire of beades , to keep him from sleeping , while he was at his Oraisons . * 2. Mac. 15. 39. 1 Maluit culpam d●pr●●ari , quam n●n committere . 2 M●d● abstinent pr●pter c●m●une b● num Ecclesi● , non propter bonum priuatum . 3 So Pelitier in his narration published of his death , witnesseth . * 〈◊〉 . 14. 13. * Gal. 16. 4. 4 See Widdringt●ns Supplication to the Pope . 1616. * 1. Cor. 4. 5. Notes for div A02483-e70490 Vers. 14. V●rs● 31. * Exed . 31. * Exod. 17. 14. ●sai . 8. 1. i●r . 30. 2 ●z●k . 37. 16. hab . 2. 2. * Phil. 3. 1. * Vers 3. * 1. Cor. 5. 9. * De C●●●il . auth . lib. 2. ca● . 12. * Rom. 2. 12. * Iohn 5. 45 ▪ * 1. Tim. 3. 15. Notes for div A02483-e73310 a Epist. ad Archiep . L●gd●n . b D●n●t . Eccl. c. 14. §. sed r●sp●n●●amus . c Desig . Eccl. lib. 23. c. 3. d Lonic●● . Th●atr . p. 246. e Lib. 2. 15 46. f Loco supra citato . g Apol. p. 3. c. 9. h Lib. 1. ann● . 1525. i De m●rt . O●col . praef●x . Annot. in proph . k Lib. 35. 1564. l In vita Cal. m Lib. 3. 1547. n Lib. 6. 1550. o Ibid. p Li● . 25. 1●60 . q Ibid. r Lib. 9. 1552. s P. Mat●h . hist. de Fr●n . lib. 1. nar . 4. t In B●ned . 4. Cron. l. 4. u Sum. de Eccl. l. 2. c. 103. x Camb. 〈◊〉 . y Lib. Hist. 6. cap. 10. * 1. Tim. 4. * Mat. 5. 45. * B●●lus . 9. 1. z D● Ciui● . Dei. Lib. 1. cap. 8.